14862 lines
676 KiB
Plaintext
14862 lines
676 KiB
Plaintext
The Project Gutenberg Etext of Sense and Sensibility, by Austen
|
|
|
|
Please take a look at the important information in this header.
|
|
We encourage you to keep this file on your own disk, keeping an
|
|
electronic path open for the next readers. Do not remove this.
|
|
|
|
**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
|
|
|
|
**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
|
|
|
|
*These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
|
|
|
|
Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
|
|
further information is included below. We need your donations.
|
|
|
|
Sense and Sensibility, by Jane Austen
|
|
|
|
September, 1994 [Etext #161]
|
|
|
|
*****The Project Gutenberg Etext of Sense and Sensibility*****
|
|
*****This file should be named sense10.txt or sense10.zip*****
|
|
|
|
Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, sense11.txt
|
|
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, sense10a.txt
|
|
|
|
Special thanks are due to Sharon Partridge for extensive
|
|
proofreading and correction of this etext.
|
|
|
|
We are now trying to release all our books one month in advance
|
|
of the official release dates, for time for better editing.
|
|
|
|
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
|
|
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
|
|
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
|
|
and editing by those who wish to do so. To be sure you have an
|
|
up to date first edition [xxxxx10x.xxx] please check file sizes
|
|
in the first week of the next month. Since our ftp program has
|
|
a bug in it that scrambles the date [tried to fix and failed] a
|
|
look at the file size will have to do, but we will try to see a
|
|
new copy has at least one byte more or less.
|
|
|
|
Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
|
|
|
|
We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
|
|
fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
|
|
to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
|
|
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
|
|
projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
|
|
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce 2
|
|
million dollars per hour this year we, will have to do four text
|
|
files per month: thus upping our productivity from one million.
|
|
The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
|
|
Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
|
|
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
|
|
which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
|
|
of the year 2001.
|
|
|
|
We need your donations more than ever!
|
|
|
|
All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
|
|
tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
|
|
to IBC, too)
|
|
|
|
For these and other matters, please mail to:
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg
|
|
P. O. Box 2782
|
|
Champaign, IL 61825
|
|
|
|
When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
|
|
Director:
|
|
hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
|
|
|
|
We would prefer to send you this information by email
|
|
(Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
|
|
|
|
******
|
|
If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
|
|
FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
|
|
[Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
|
|
|
|
ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
|
|
login: anonymous
|
|
password: your@login
|
|
cd etext/etext91
|
|
or cd etext92
|
|
or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
|
|
or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
|
|
dir [to see files]
|
|
get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
|
|
get INDEX100.GUT
|
|
get INDEX200.GUT
|
|
for a list of books
|
|
and
|
|
get NEW.GUT for general information
|
|
and
|
|
mget GUT* for newsletters.
|
|
|
|
**Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
|
|
(Three Pages)
|
|
|
|
***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
|
|
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
|
|
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
|
|
your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
|
|
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
|
|
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
|
|
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
|
|
you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
|
|
|
|
*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
|
|
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
|
|
etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
|
|
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
|
|
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
|
|
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
|
|
you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
|
|
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
|
|
|
|
ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
|
|
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
|
|
tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
|
|
Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
|
|
Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
|
|
things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
|
|
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
|
|
distribute it in the United States without permission and
|
|
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
|
|
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
|
|
under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
|
|
|
|
To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
|
|
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
|
|
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
|
|
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
|
|
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
|
|
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
|
|
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
|
|
disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
|
|
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
|
|
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
|
|
[1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
|
|
etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
|
|
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
|
|
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
|
|
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
|
|
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
|
|
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
|
|
|
|
If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
|
|
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
|
|
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
|
|
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
|
|
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
|
|
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
|
|
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
|
|
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive it electronically.
|
|
|
|
THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
|
|
TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
|
|
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
|
|
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
|
|
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
|
|
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
|
|
may have other legal rights.
|
|
|
|
INDEMNITY
|
|
You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
|
|
officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
|
|
and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
|
|
indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
|
|
[1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
|
|
or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
|
|
|
|
DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
|
|
You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
|
|
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
|
|
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
|
|
or:
|
|
|
|
[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
|
|
requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
|
|
etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
|
|
if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
|
|
binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
|
|
including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
|
|
cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
|
|
*EITHER*:
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
|
|
does *not* contain characters other than those
|
|
intended by the author of the work, although tilde
|
|
(~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
|
|
be used to convey punctuation intended by the
|
|
author, and additional characters may be used to
|
|
indicate hypertext links; OR
|
|
|
|
[*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
|
|
no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
|
|
form by the program that displays the etext (as is
|
|
the case, for instance, with most word processors);
|
|
OR
|
|
|
|
[*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
|
|
no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
|
|
etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
|
|
or other equivalent proprietary form).
|
|
|
|
[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
|
|
"Small Print!" statement.
|
|
|
|
[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
|
|
net profits you derive calculated using the method you
|
|
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
|
|
don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
|
|
payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
|
|
Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
|
|
date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
|
|
your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
|
|
|
|
WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
|
|
The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
|
|
scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
|
|
free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
|
|
you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
|
|
Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
|
|
|
|
This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
|
|
Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
|
|
*END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
|
|
|
|
SENSE AND SENSIBILITY
|
|
|
|
by Jane Austen
|
|
(1811)
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 1
|
|
|
|
The family of Dashwood had long been settled in Sussex.
|
|
Their estate was large, and their residence was at Norland Park,
|
|
in the centre of their property, where, for many generations,
|
|
they had lived in so respectable a manner as to engage
|
|
the general good opinion of their surrounding acquaintance.
|
|
The late owner of this estate was a single man, who lived
|
|
to a very advanced age, and who for many years of his life,
|
|
had a constant companion and housekeeper in his sister.
|
|
But her death, which happened ten years before his own,
|
|
produced a great alteration in his home; for to supply
|
|
her loss, he invited and received into his house the family
|
|
of his nephew Mr. Henry Dashwood, the legal inheritor
|
|
of the Norland estate, and the person to whom he intended
|
|
to bequeath it. In the society of his nephew and niece,
|
|
and their children, the old Gentleman's days were
|
|
comfortably spent. His attachment to them all increased.
|
|
The constant attention of Mr. and Mrs. Henry Dashwood
|
|
to his wishes, which proceeded not merely from interest,
|
|
but from goodness of heart, gave him every degree of solid
|
|
comfort which his age could receive; and the cheerfulness
|
|
of the children added a relish to his existence.
|
|
|
|
By a former marriage, Mr. Henry Dashwood had one
|
|
son: by his present lady, three daughters. The son,
|
|
a steady respectable young man, was amply provided
|
|
for by the fortune of his mother, which had been large,
|
|
and half of which devolved on him on his coming of age.
|
|
By his own marriage, likewise, which happened soon afterwards,
|
|
he added to his wealth. To him therefore the succession
|
|
to the Norland estate was not so really important as to
|
|
his sisters; for their fortune, independent of what might
|
|
arise to them from their father's inheriting that property,
|
|
could be but small. Their mother had nothing, and their
|
|
father only seven thousand pounds in his own disposal;
|
|
for the remaining moiety of his first wife's fortune was
|
|
also secured to her child, and he had only a life-interest
|
|
in it.
|
|
|
|
The old gentleman died: his will was read, and
|
|
like almost every other will, gave as much disappointment
|
|
as pleasure. He was neither so unjust, nor so ungrateful,
|
|
as to leave his estate from his nephew;--but he left it to him
|
|
on such terms as destroyed half the value of the bequest.
|
|
Mr. Dashwood had wished for it more for the sake of his
|
|
wife and daughters than for himself or his son;--but to
|
|
his son, and his son's son, a child of four years old,
|
|
it was secured, in such a way, as to leave to himself
|
|
no power of providing for those who were most dear
|
|
to him, and who most needed a provision by any charge
|
|
on the estate, or by any sale of its valuable woods.
|
|
The whole was tied up for the benefit of this child, who,
|
|
in occasional visits with his father and mother at Norland,
|
|
had so far gained on the affections of his uncle,
|
|
by such attractions as are by no means unusual in children
|
|
of two or three years old; an imperfect articulation,
|
|
an earnest desire of having his own way, many cunning tricks,
|
|
and a great deal of noise, as to outweigh all the value
|
|
of all the attention which, for years, he had received
|
|
from his niece and her daughters. He meant not to
|
|
be unkind, however, and, as a mark of his affection
|
|
for the three girls, he left them a thousand pounds a-piece.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Dashwood's disappointment was, at first, severe;
|
|
but his temper was cheerful and sanguine; and he might
|
|
reasonably hope to live many years, and by living economically,
|
|
lay by a considerable sum from the produce of an estate
|
|
already large, and capable of almost immediate improvement.
|
|
But the fortune, which had been so tardy in coming, was his
|
|
only one twelvemonth. He survived his uncle no longer;
|
|
and ten thousand pounds, including the late legacies,
|
|
was all that remained for his widow and daughters.
|
|
|
|
His son was sent for as soon as his danger was known,
|
|
and to him Mr. Dashwood recommended, with all the strength
|
|
and urgency which illness could command, the interest
|
|
of his mother-in-law and sisters.
|
|
|
|
Mr. John Dashwood had not the strong feelings of the
|
|
rest of the family; but he was affected by a recommendation
|
|
of such a nature at such a time, and he promised to do
|
|
every thing in his power to make them comfortable.
|
|
His father was rendered easy by such an assurance,
|
|
and Mr. John Dashwood had then leisure to consider how
|
|
much there might prudently be in his power to do for them.
|
|
|
|
He was not an ill-disposed young man, unless to
|
|
be rather cold hearted and rather selfish is to be
|
|
ill-disposed: but he was, in general, well respected;
|
|
for he conducted himself with propriety in the discharge
|
|
of his ordinary duties. Had he married a more amiable woman,
|
|
he might have been made still more respectable than he
|
|
was:--he might even have been made amiable himself; for he
|
|
was very young when he married, and very fond of his wife.
|
|
But Mrs. John Dashwood was a strong caricature of himself;--
|
|
more narrow-minded and selfish.
|
|
|
|
When he gave his promise to his father, he meditated
|
|
within himself to increase the fortunes of his sisters
|
|
by the present of a thousand pounds a-piece. He then
|
|
really thought himself equal to it. The prospect of four
|
|
thousand a-year, in addition to his present income,
|
|
besides the remaining half of his own mother's fortune,
|
|
warmed his heart, and made him feel capable of generosity.--
|
|
"Yes, he would give them three thousand pounds: it would
|
|
be liberal and handsome! It would be enough to make
|
|
them completely easy. Three thousand pounds! he could
|
|
spare so considerable a sum with little inconvenience."--
|
|
He thought of it all day long, and for many days successively,
|
|
and he did not repent.
|
|
|
|
No sooner was his father's funeral over, than Mrs. John
|
|
Dashwood, without sending any notice of her intention to her
|
|
mother-in-law, arrived with her child and their attendants.
|
|
No one could dispute her right to come; the house was
|
|
her husband's from the moment of his father's decease;
|
|
but the indelicacy of her conduct was so much the greater,
|
|
and to a woman in Mrs. Dashwood's situation, with only
|
|
common feelings, must have been highly unpleasing;--
|
|
but in HER mind there was a sense of honor so keen,
|
|
a generosity so romantic, that any offence of the kind,
|
|
by whomsoever given or received, was to her a source
|
|
of immoveable disgust. Mrs. John Dashwood had never
|
|
been a favourite with any of her husband's family;
|
|
but she had had no opportunity, till the present,
|
|
of shewing them with how little attention to the comfort
|
|
of other people she could act when occasion required it.
|
|
|
|
So acutely did Mrs. Dashwood feel this ungracious
|
|
behaviour, and so earnestly did she despise her
|
|
daughter-in-law for it, that, on the arrival of the latter,
|
|
she would have quitted the house for ever, had not the
|
|
entreaty of her eldest girl induced her first to reflect
|
|
on the propriety of going, and her own tender love for all
|
|
her three children determined her afterwards to stay,
|
|
and for their sakes avoid a breach with their brother.
|
|
|
|
Elinor, this eldest daughter, whose advice was
|
|
so effectual, possessed a strength of understanding,
|
|
and coolness of judgment, which qualified her,
|
|
though only nineteen, to be the counsellor of her mother,
|
|
and enabled her frequently to counteract, to the advantage
|
|
of them all, that eagerness of mind in Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
which must generally have led to imprudence. She had
|
|
an excellent heart;--her disposition was affectionate,
|
|
and her feelings were strong; but she knew how to govern
|
|
them: it was a knowledge which her mother had yet to learn;
|
|
and which one of her sisters had resolved never to be taught.
|
|
|
|
Marianne's abilities were, in many respects,
|
|
quite equal to Elinor's. She was sensible and clever;
|
|
but eager in everything: her sorrows, her joys, could have
|
|
no moderation. She was generous, amiable, interesting: she
|
|
was everything but prudent. The resemblance between
|
|
her and her mother was strikingly great.
|
|
|
|
Elinor saw, with concern, the excess of her
|
|
sister's sensibility; but by Mrs. Dashwood it was valued
|
|
and cherished. They encouraged each other now in the
|
|
violence of their affliction. The agony of grief
|
|
which overpowered them at first, was voluntarily renewed,
|
|
was sought for, was created again and again. They gave
|
|
themselves up wholly to their sorrow, seeking increase
|
|
of wretchedness in every reflection that could afford it,
|
|
and resolved against ever admitting consolation
|
|
in future. Elinor, too, was deeply afflicted; but still
|
|
she could struggle, she could exert herself. She could
|
|
consult with her brother, could receive her sister-in-law
|
|
on her arrival, and treat her with proper attention;
|
|
and could strive to rouse her mother to similar exertion,
|
|
and encourage her to similar forbearance.
|
|
|
|
Margaret, the other sister, was a good-humored,
|
|
well-disposed girl; but as she had already imbibed
|
|
a good deal of Marianne's romance, without having
|
|
much of her sense, she did not, at thirteen, bid fair
|
|
to equal her sisters at a more advanced period of life.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 2
|
|
|
|
Mrs. John Dashwood now installed herself mistress
|
|
of Norland; and her mother and sisters-in-law were degraded
|
|
to the condition of visitors. As such, however, they were
|
|
treated by her with quiet civility; and by her husband
|
|
with as much kindness as he could feel towards anybody
|
|
beyond himself, his wife, and their child. He really
|
|
pressed them, with some earnestness, to consider Norland
|
|
as their home; and, as no plan appeared so eligible
|
|
to Mrs. Dashwood as remaining there till she could
|
|
accommodate herself with a house in the neighbourhood,
|
|
his invitation was accepted.
|
|
|
|
A continuance in a place where everything reminded
|
|
her of former delight, was exactly what suited her mind.
|
|
In seasons of cheerfulness, no temper could be more cheerful
|
|
than hers, or possess, in a greater degree, that sanguine
|
|
expectation of happiness which is happiness itself.
|
|
But in sorrow she must be equally carried away by her fancy,
|
|
and as far beyond consolation as in pleasure she was
|
|
beyond alloy.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. John Dashwood did not at all approve of what her
|
|
husband intended to do for his sisters. To take three
|
|
thousand pounds from the fortune of their dear little boy
|
|
would be impoverishing him to the most dreadful degree.
|
|
She begged him to think again on the subject. How could
|
|
he answer it to himself to rob his child, and his only
|
|
child too, of so large a sum? And what possible claim
|
|
could the Miss Dashwoods, who were related to him only by
|
|
half blood, which she considered as no relationship at all,
|
|
have on his generosity to so large an amount. It was very
|
|
well known that no affection was ever supposed to exist
|
|
between the children of any man by different marriages;
|
|
and why was he to ruin himself, and their poor little Harry,
|
|
by giving away all his money to his half sisters?
|
|
|
|
"It was my father's last request to me," replied
|
|
her husband, "that I should assist his widow and daughters."
|
|
|
|
"He did not know what he was talking of, I dare say;
|
|
ten to one but he was light-headed at the time.
|
|
Had he been in his right senses, he could not have thought
|
|
of such a thing as begging you to give away half your
|
|
fortune from your own child."
|
|
|
|
"He did not stipulate for any particular sum,
|
|
my dear Fanny; he only requested me, in general terms,
|
|
to assist them, and make their situation more comfortable
|
|
than it was in his power to do. Perhaps it would
|
|
have been as well if he had left it wholly to myself.
|
|
He could hardly suppose I should neglect them.
|
|
But as he required the promise, I could not do less
|
|
than give it; at least I thought so at the time.
|
|
The promise, therefore, was given, and must be performed.
|
|
Something must be done for them whenever they leave Norland
|
|
and settle in a new home."
|
|
|
|
"Well, then, LET something be done for them;
|
|
but THAT something need not be three thousand pounds.
|
|
Consider," she added, "that when the money is once
|
|
parted with, it never can return. Your sisters will marry,
|
|
and it will be gone for ever. If, indeed, it could
|
|
be restored to our poor little boy--"
|
|
|
|
"Why, to be sure," said her husband, very gravely,
|
|
"that would make great difference. The time may come when
|
|
Harry will regret that so large a sum was parted with.
|
|
If he should have a numerous family, for instance, it would
|
|
be a very convenient addition."
|
|
|
|
"To be sure it would."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps, then, it would be better for all parties,
|
|
if the sum were diminished one half.--Five hundred pounds
|
|
would be a prodigious increase to their fortunes!"
|
|
|
|
"Oh! beyond anything great! What brother on earth
|
|
would do half so much for his sisters, even if REALLY
|
|
his sisters! And as it is--only half blood!--But you
|
|
have such a generous spirit!"
|
|
|
|
"I would not wish to do any thing mean," he replied.
|
|
"One had rather, on such occasions, do too much than
|
|
too little. No one, at least, can think I have not
|
|
done enough for them: even themselves, they can hardly
|
|
expect more."
|
|
|
|
"There is no knowing what THEY may expect,"
|
|
said the lady, "but we are not to think of their
|
|
expectations: the question is, what you can afford to do."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly--and I think I may afford to give them five
|
|
hundred pounds a-piece. As it is, without any addition
|
|
of mine, they will each have about three thousand pounds
|
|
on their mother's death--a very comfortable fortune
|
|
for any young woman."
|
|
|
|
"To be sure it is; and, indeed, it strikes me that
|
|
they can want no addition at all. They will have ten
|
|
thousand pounds divided amongst them. If they marry,
|
|
they will be sure of doing well, and if they do not,
|
|
they may all live very comfortably together on the interest
|
|
of ten thousand pounds."
|
|
|
|
"That is very true, and, therefore, I do not know whether,
|
|
upon the whole, it would not be more advisable to do
|
|
something for their mother while she lives, rather than
|
|
for them--something of the annuity kind I mean.--My sisters
|
|
would feel the good effects of it as well as herself.
|
|
A hundred a year would make them all perfectly comfortable."
|
|
|
|
His wife hesitated a little, however, in giving
|
|
her consent to this plan.
|
|
|
|
"To be sure," said she, "it is better than parting with
|
|
fifteen hundred pounds at once. But, then, if Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
should live fifteen years we shall be completely taken in."
|
|
|
|
"Fifteen years! my dear Fanny; her life cannot
|
|
be worth half that purchase."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly not; but if you observe, people always
|
|
live for ever when there is an annuity to be paid them;
|
|
and she is very stout and healthy, and hardly forty.
|
|
An annuity is a very serious business; it comes over
|
|
and over every year, and there is no getting rid
|
|
of it. You are not aware of what you are doing.
|
|
I have known a great deal of the trouble of annuities;
|
|
for my mother was clogged with the payment of three
|
|
to old superannuated servants by my father's will,
|
|
and it is amazing how disagreeable she found it.
|
|
Twice every year these annuities were to be paid; and then
|
|
there was the trouble of getting it to them; and then one
|
|
of them was said to have died, and afterwards it turned
|
|
out to be no such thing. My mother was quite sick of it.
|
|
Her income was not her own, she said, with such perpetual
|
|
claims on it; and it was the more unkind in my father,
|
|
because, otherwise, the money would have been entirely at
|
|
my mother's disposal, without any restriction whatever.
|
|
It has given me such an abhorrence of annuities, that I am
|
|
sure I would not pin myself down to the payment of one for
|
|
all the world."
|
|
|
|
"It is certainly an unpleasant thing," replied Mr. Dashwood,
|
|
"to have those kind of yearly drains on one's income.
|
|
One's fortune, as your mother justly says, is NOT one's own.
|
|
To be tied down to the regular payment of such a sum,
|
|
on every rent day, is by no means desirable: it takes away
|
|
one's independence."
|
|
|
|
"Undoubtedly; and after all you have no thanks for it.
|
|
They think themselves secure, you do no more than what
|
|
is expected, and it raises no gratitude at all. If I were you,
|
|
whatever I did should be done at my own discretion entirely.
|
|
I would not bind myself to allow them any thing yearly.
|
|
It may be very inconvenient some years to spare a hundred,
|
|
or even fifty pounds from our own expenses."
|
|
|
|
"I believe you are right, my love; it will be better
|
|
that there should by no annuity in the case; whatever I
|
|
may give them occasionally will be of far greater assistance
|
|
than a yearly allowance, because they would only enlarge
|
|
their style of living if they felt sure of a larger income,
|
|
and would not be sixpence the richer for it at the end
|
|
of the year. It will certainly be much the best way.
|
|
A present of fifty pounds, now and then, will prevent
|
|
their ever being distressed for money, and will, I think,
|
|
be amply discharging my promise to my father."
|
|
|
|
"To be sure it will. Indeed, to say the truth,
|
|
I am convinced within myself that your father had no idea
|
|
of your giving them any money at all. The assistance
|
|
he thought of, I dare say, was only such as might be
|
|
reasonably expected of you; for instance, such as looking
|
|
out for a comfortable small house for them, helping them
|
|
to move their things, and sending them presents of fish
|
|
and game, and so forth, whenever they are in season.
|
|
I'll lay my life that he meant nothing farther; indeed,
|
|
it would be very strange and unreasonable if he did.
|
|
Do but consider, my dear Mr. Dashwood, how excessively
|
|
comfortable your mother-in-law and her daughters may live
|
|
on the interest of seven thousand pounds, besides the
|
|
thousand pounds belonging to each of the girls, which brings
|
|
them in fifty pounds a year a-piece, and, of course,
|
|
they will pay their mother for their board out of it.
|
|
Altogether, they will have five hundred a-year amongst them,
|
|
and what on earth can four women want for more than
|
|
that?--They will live so cheap! Their housekeeping will
|
|
be nothing at all. They will have no carriage, no horses,
|
|
and hardly any servants; they will keep no company,
|
|
and can have no expenses of any kind! Only conceive
|
|
how comfortable they will be! Five hundred a year! I am
|
|
sure I cannot imagine how they will spend half of it;
|
|
and as to your giving them more, it is quite absurd to think
|
|
of it. They will be much more able to give YOU something."
|
|
|
|
"Upon my word," said Mr. Dashwood, "I believe you
|
|
are perfectly right. My father certainly could mean
|
|
nothing more by his request to me than what you say.
|
|
I clearly understand it now, and I will strictly fulfil
|
|
my engagement by such acts of assistance and kindness
|
|
to them as you have described. When my mother removes
|
|
into another house my services shall be readily given
|
|
to accommodate her as far as I can. Some little present
|
|
of furniture too may be acceptable then."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly," returned Mrs. John Dashwood. "But, however,
|
|
ONE thing must be considered. When your father and mother
|
|
moved to Norland, though the furniture of Stanhill
|
|
was sold, all the china, plate, and linen was saved,
|
|
and is now left to your mother. Her house will therefore
|
|
be almost completely fitted up as soon as she takes it."
|
|
|
|
"That is a material consideration undoubtedly.
|
|
A valuable legacy indeed! And yet some of the plate would
|
|
have been a very pleasant addition to our own stock here."
|
|
|
|
"Yes; and the set of breakfast china is twice
|
|
as handsome as what belongs to this house. A great
|
|
deal too handsome, in my opinion, for any place THEY
|
|
can ever afford to live in. But, however, so it is.
|
|
Your father thought only of THEM. And I must say this:
|
|
that you owe no particular gratitude to him, nor attention
|
|
to his wishes; for we very well know that if he could,
|
|
he would have left almost everything in the world to THEM."
|
|
|
|
This argument was irresistible. It gave to his
|
|
intentions whatever of decision was wanting before; and he
|
|
finally resolved, that it would be absolutely unnecessary,
|
|
if not highly indecorous, to do more for the widow
|
|
and children of his father, than such kind of neighbourly
|
|
acts as his own wife pointed out.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 3
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood remained at Norland several months;
|
|
not from any disinclination to move when the sight of every
|
|
well known spot ceased to raise the violent emotion which it
|
|
produced for a while; for when her spirits began to revive,
|
|
and her mind became capable of some other exertion than that
|
|
of heightening its affliction by melancholy remembrances,
|
|
she was impatient to be gone, and indefatigable in her inquiries
|
|
for a suitable dwelling in the neighbourhood of Norland;
|
|
for to remove far from that beloved spot was impossible.
|
|
But she could hear of no situation that at once answered
|
|
her notions of comfort and ease, and suited the prudence
|
|
of her eldest daughter, whose steadier judgment rejected
|
|
several houses as too large for their income, which her
|
|
mother would have approved.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood had been informed by her husband of the
|
|
solemn promise on the part of his son in their favour,
|
|
which gave comfort to his last earthly reflections.
|
|
She doubted the sincerity of this assurance no more than he
|
|
had doubted it himself, and she thought of it for her daughters'
|
|
sake with satisfaction, though as for herself she was
|
|
persuaded that a much smaller provision than 7000L would
|
|
support her in affluence. For their brother's sake, too,
|
|
for the sake of his own heart, she rejoiced; and she
|
|
reproached herself for being unjust to his merit before,
|
|
in believing him incapable of generosity. His attentive
|
|
behaviour to herself and his sisters convinced her that
|
|
their welfare was dear to him, and, for a long time,
|
|
she firmly relied on the liberality of his intentions.
|
|
|
|
The contempt which she had, very early in their acquaintance,
|
|
felt for her daughter-in-law, was very much increased
|
|
by the farther knowledge of her character, which half
|
|
a year's residence in her family afforded; and perhaps
|
|
in spite of every consideration of politeness or maternal
|
|
affection on the side of the former, the two ladies might
|
|
have found it impossible to have lived together so long,
|
|
had not a particular circumstance occurred to give
|
|
still greater eligibility, according to the opinions
|
|
of Mrs. Dashwood, to her daughters' continuance at Norland.
|
|
|
|
This circumstance was a growing attachment between
|
|
her eldest girl and the brother of Mrs. John Dashwood,
|
|
a gentleman-like and pleasing young man, who was introduced
|
|
to their acquaintance soon after his sister's establishment
|
|
at Norland, and who had since spent the greatest part
|
|
of his time there.
|
|
|
|
Some mothers might have encouraged the intimacy from
|
|
motives of interest, for Edward Ferrars was the eldest son
|
|
of a man who had died very rich; and some might have repressed
|
|
it from motives of prudence, for, except a trifling sum,
|
|
the whole of his fortune depended on the will of his mother.
|
|
But Mrs. Dashwood was alike uninfluenced by either consideration.
|
|
It was enough for her that he appeared to be amiable,
|
|
that he loved her daughter, and that Elinor returned
|
|
the partiality. It was contrary to every doctrine of
|
|
her's that difference of fortune should keep any couple
|
|
asunder who were attracted by resemblance of disposition;
|
|
and that Elinor's merit should not be acknowledged
|
|
by every one who knew her, was to her comprehension impossible.
|
|
|
|
Edward Ferrars was not recommended to their good
|
|
opinion by any peculiar graces of person or address.
|
|
He was not handsome, and his manners required intimacy
|
|
to make them pleasing. He was too diffident to do justice
|
|
to himself; but when his natural shyness was overcome,
|
|
his behaviour gave every indication of an open,
|
|
affectionate heart. His understanding was good,
|
|
and his education had given it solid improvement.
|
|
But he was neither fitted by abilities nor disposition
|
|
to answer the wishes of his mother and sister, who longed
|
|
to see him distinguished--as--they hardly knew what.
|
|
They wanted him to make a fine figure in the world in some
|
|
manner or other. His mother wished to interest him in
|
|
political concerns, to get him into parliament, or to see
|
|
him connected with some of the great men of the day.
|
|
Mrs. John Dashwood wished it likewise; but in the mean while,
|
|
till one of these superior blessings could be attained, it would
|
|
have quieted her ambition to see him driving a barouche.
|
|
But Edward had no turn for great men or barouches.
|
|
All his wishes centered in domestic comfort and the quiet
|
|
of private life. Fortunately he had a younger brother
|
|
who was more promising.
|
|
|
|
Edward had been staying several weeks in the house
|
|
before he engaged much of Mrs. Dashwood's attention;
|
|
for she was, at that time, in such affliction as rendered
|
|
her careless of surrounding objects. She saw only that he
|
|
was quiet and unobtrusive, and she liked him for it.
|
|
He did not disturb the wretchedness of her mind by
|
|
ill-timed conversation. She was first called to observe
|
|
and approve him farther, by a reflection which Elinor
|
|
chanced one day to make on the difference between him
|
|
and his sister. It was a contrast which recommended him
|
|
most forcibly to her mother.
|
|
|
|
"It is enough," said she; "to say that he is unlike
|
|
Fanny is enough. It implies everything amiable.
|
|
I love him already."
|
|
|
|
"I think you will like him," said Elinor, "when you
|
|
know more of him."
|
|
|
|
"Like him!" replied her mother with a smile.
|
|
"I feel no sentiment of approbation inferior to love."
|
|
|
|
"You may esteem him."
|
|
|
|
"I have never yet known what it was to separate
|
|
esteem and love."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood now took pains to get acquainted with him.
|
|
Her manners were attaching, and soon banished his reserve.
|
|
She speedily comprehended all his merits; the persuasion
|
|
of his regard for Elinor perhaps assisted her penetration;
|
|
but she really felt assured of his worth: and even that
|
|
quietness of manner, which militated against all her
|
|
established ideas of what a young man's address ought to be,
|
|
was no longer uninteresting when she knew his heart to be
|
|
warm and his temper affectionate.
|
|
|
|
No sooner did she perceive any symptom of love
|
|
in his behaviour to Elinor, than she considered their
|
|
serious attachment as certain, and looked forward
|
|
to their marriage as rapidly approaching.
|
|
|
|
"In a few months, my dear Marianne." said she,
|
|
"Elinor will, in all probability be settled for life.
|
|
We shall miss her; but SHE will be happy."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! Mamma, how shall we do without her?"
|
|
|
|
"My love, it will be scarcely a separation.
|
|
We shall live within a few miles of each other, and shall
|
|
meet every day of our lives. You will gain a brother,
|
|
a real, affectionate brother. I have the highest opinion
|
|
in the world of Edward's heart. But you look grave,
|
|
Marianne; do you disapprove your sister's choice?"
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps," said Marianne, "I may consider it
|
|
with some surprise. Edward is very amiable, and I love
|
|
him tenderly. But yet--he is not the kind of young
|
|
man--there is something wanting--his figure is not striking;
|
|
it has none of that grace which I should expect
|
|
in the man who could seriously attach my sister.
|
|
His eyes want all that spirit, that fire, which at once
|
|
announce virtue and intelligence. And besides all this,
|
|
I am afraid, Mamma, he has no real taste. Music seems
|
|
scarcely to attract him, and though he admires Elinor's
|
|
drawings very much, it is not the admiration of a person
|
|
who can understand their worth. It is evident, in spite of
|
|
his frequent attention to her while she draws, that in fact
|
|
he knows nothing of the matter. He admires as a lover,
|
|
not as a connoisseur. To satisfy me, those characters
|
|
must be united. I could not be happy with a man whose
|
|
taste did not in every point coincide with my own.
|
|
He must enter into all my feelings; the same books,
|
|
the same music must charm us both. Oh! mama, how spiritless,
|
|
how tame was Edward's manner in reading to us last night!
|
|
I felt for my sister most severely. Yet she bore it
|
|
with so much composure, she seemed scarcely to notice it.
|
|
I could hardly keep my seat. To hear those beautiful lines
|
|
which have frequently almost driven me wild, pronounced
|
|
with such impenetrable calmness, such dreadful indifference!"--
|
|
|
|
"He would certainly have done more justice to
|
|
simple and elegant prose. I thought so at the time;
|
|
but you WOULD give him Cowper."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, Mamma, if he is not to be animated by Cowper!--
|
|
but we must allow for difference of taste. Elinor has
|
|
not my feelings, and therefore she may overlook it, and
|
|
be happy with him. But it would have broke MY heart,
|
|
had I loved him, to hear him read with so little sensibility.
|
|
Mama, the more I know of the world, the more am I convinced
|
|
that I shall never see a man whom I can really love.
|
|
I require so much! He must have all Edward's virtues,
|
|
and his person and manners must ornament his goodness
|
|
with every possible charm."
|
|
|
|
"Remember, my love, that you are not seventeen.
|
|
It is yet too early in life to despair of such a happiness.
|
|
Why should you be less fortunate than your mother? In
|
|
one circumstance only, my Marianne, may your destiny be
|
|
different from her's!"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 4
|
|
|
|
"What a pity it is, Elinor," said Marianne,
|
|
"that Edward should have no taste for drawing."
|
|
|
|
"No taste for drawing!" replied Elinor, "why should
|
|
you think so? He does not draw himself, indeed, but he has
|
|
great pleasure in seeing the performances of other people,
|
|
and I assure you he is by no means deficient in natural taste,
|
|
though he has not had opportunities of improving it.
|
|
Had he ever been in the way of learning, I think he would
|
|
have drawn very well. He distrusts his own judgment
|
|
in such matters so much, that he is always unwilling
|
|
to give his opinion on any picture; but he has an innate
|
|
propriety and simplicity of taste, which in general
|
|
direct him perfectly right."
|
|
|
|
Marianne was afraid of offending, and said no more
|
|
on the subject; but the kind of approbation which Elinor
|
|
described as excited in him by the drawings of other
|
|
people, was very far from that rapturous delight, which,
|
|
in her opinion, could alone be called taste. Yet, though
|
|
smiling within herself at the mistake, she honoured
|
|
her sister for that blind partiality to Edward which produced it.
|
|
|
|
"I hope, Marianne," continued Elinor, "you do not
|
|
consider him as deficient in general taste. Indeed, I think
|
|
I may say that you cannot, for your behaviour to him
|
|
is perfectly cordial, and if THAT were your opinion,
|
|
I am sure you could never be civil to him."
|
|
|
|
Marianne hardly knew what to say. She would
|
|
not wound the feelings of her sister on any account,
|
|
and yet to say what she did not believe was impossible.
|
|
At length she replied:
|
|
|
|
"Do not be offended, Elinor, if my praise of him
|
|
is not in every thing equal to your sense of his merits.
|
|
I have not had so many opportunities of estimating the minuter
|
|
propensities of his mind, his inclinations and tastes,
|
|
as you have; but I have the highest opinion in the world
|
|
of his goodness and sense. I think him every thing that is
|
|
worthy and amiable."
|
|
|
|
"I am sure," replied Elinor, with a smile,
|
|
"that his dearest friends could not be dissatisfied
|
|
with such commendation as that. I do not perceive
|
|
how you could express yourself more warmly."
|
|
|
|
Marianne was rejoiced to find her sister so easily pleased.
|
|
|
|
"Of his sense and his goodness," continued Elinor,
|
|
"no one can, I think, be in doubt, who has seen him
|
|
often enough to engage him in unreserved conversation.
|
|
The excellence of his understanding and his principles
|
|
can be concealed only by that shyness which too often
|
|
keeps him silent. You know enough of him to do justice
|
|
to his solid worth. But of his minuter propensities,
|
|
as you call them you have from peculiar circumstances
|
|
been kept more ignorant than myself. He and I have
|
|
been at times thrown a good deal together, while you
|
|
have been wholly engrossed on the most affectionate
|
|
principle by my mother. I have seen a great deal of him,
|
|
have studied his sentiments and heard his opinion on
|
|
subjects of literature and taste; and, upon the whole,
|
|
I venture to pronounce that his mind is well-informed,
|
|
enjoyment of books exceedingly great, his imagination lively,
|
|
his observation just and correct, and his taste delicate
|
|
and pure. His abilities in every respect improve
|
|
as much upon acquaintance as his manners and person.
|
|
At first sight, his address is certainly not striking;
|
|
and his person can hardly be called handsome, till the
|
|
expression of his eyes, which are uncommonly good,
|
|
and the general sweetness of his countenance, is perceived.
|
|
At present, I know him so well, that I think him
|
|
really handsome; or at least, almost so. What say you,
|
|
Marianne?"
|
|
|
|
"I shall very soon think him handsome, Elinor, if I
|
|
do not now. When you tell me to love him as a brother,
|
|
I shall no more see imperfection in his face, than I now do
|
|
in his heart."
|
|
|
|
Elinor started at this declaration, and was sorry for
|
|
the warmth she had been betrayed into, in speaking of him.
|
|
She felt that Edward stood very high in her opinion.
|
|
She believed the regard to be mutual; but she required
|
|
greater certainty of it to make Marianne's conviction
|
|
of their attachment agreeable to her. She knew that
|
|
what Marianne and her mother conjectured one moment,
|
|
they believed the next--that with them, to wish was to hope,
|
|
and to hope was to expect. She tried to explain the real
|
|
state of the case to her sister.
|
|
|
|
"I do not attempt to deny," said she, "that I think
|
|
very highly of him--that I greatly esteem, that I like him."
|
|
|
|
Marianne here burst forth with indignation--
|
|
|
|
"Esteem him! Like him! Cold-hearted Elinor! Oh!
|
|
worse than cold-hearted! Ashamed of being otherwise.
|
|
Use those words again, and I will leave the room this moment."
|
|
|
|
Elinor could not help laughing. "Excuse me,"
|
|
said she; "and be assured that I meant no offence to you,
|
|
by speaking, in so quiet a way, of my own feelings.
|
|
Believe them to be stronger than I have declared;
|
|
believe them, in short, to be such as his merit, and the
|
|
suspicion--the hope of his affection for me may warrant,
|
|
without imprudence or folly. But farther than this you must
|
|
not believe. I am by no means assured of his regard for me.
|
|
There are moments when the extent of it seems doubtful;
|
|
and till his sentiments are fully known, you cannot wonder
|
|
at my wishing to avoid any encouragement of my own partiality,
|
|
by believing or calling it more than it is. In my heart
|
|
I feel little--scarcely any doubt of his preference.
|
|
But there are other points to be considered besides
|
|
his inclination. He is very far from being independent.
|
|
What his mother really is we cannot know; but, from Fanny's
|
|
occasional mention of her conduct and opinions, we have
|
|
never been disposed to think her amiable; and I am very
|
|
much mistaken if Edward is not himself aware that there
|
|
would be many difficulties in his way, if he were to wish
|
|
to marry a woman who had not either a great fortune or
|
|
high rank."
|
|
|
|
Marianne was astonished to find how much the imagination
|
|
of her mother and herself had outstripped the truth.
|
|
|
|
"And you really are not engaged to him!" said she.
|
|
"Yet it certainly soon will happen. But two advantages
|
|
will proceed from this delay. I shall not lose you so soon,
|
|
and Edward will have greater opportunity of improving
|
|
that natural taste for your favourite pursuit which must
|
|
be so indispensably necessary to your future felicity.
|
|
Oh! if he should be so far stimulated by your genius as to
|
|
learn to draw himself, how delightful it would be!"
|
|
|
|
Elinor had given her real opinion to her sister.
|
|
She could not consider her partiality for Edward
|
|
in so prosperous a state as Marianne had believed it.
|
|
There was, at times, a want of spirits about him which,
|
|
if it did not denote indifference, spoke a something almost
|
|
as unpromising. A doubt of her regard, supposing him
|
|
to feel it, need not give him more than inquietude.
|
|
It would not be likely to produce that dejection of mind
|
|
which frequently attended him. A more reasonable cause
|
|
might be found in the dependent situation which forbad
|
|
the indulgence of his affection. She knew that his mother
|
|
neither behaved to him so as to make his home comfortable
|
|
at present, nor to give him any assurance that he might form
|
|
a home for himself, without strictly attending to her views
|
|
for his aggrandizement. With such a knowledge as this,
|
|
it was impossible for Elinor to feel easy on the subject.
|
|
She was far from depending on that result of his preference
|
|
of her, which her mother and sister still considered
|
|
as certain. Nay, the longer they were together the more
|
|
doubtful seemed the nature of his regard; and sometimes,
|
|
for a few painful minutes, she believed it to be no more
|
|
than friendship.
|
|
|
|
But, whatever might really be its limits, it was enough,
|
|
when perceived by his sister, to make her uneasy,
|
|
and at the same time, (which was still more common,)
|
|
to make her uncivil. She took the first opportunity of
|
|
affronting her mother-in-law on the occasion, talking to
|
|
her so expressively of her brother's great expectations,
|
|
of Mrs. Ferrars's resolution that both her sons should
|
|
marry well, and of the danger attending any young woman
|
|
who attempted to DRAW HIM IN; that Mrs. Dashwood could
|
|
neither pretend to be unconscious, nor endeavor to be calm.
|
|
She gave her an answer which marked her contempt,
|
|
and instantly left the room, resolving that, whatever might
|
|
be the inconvenience or expense of so sudden a removal,
|
|
her beloved Elinor should not be exposed another week
|
|
to such insinuations.
|
|
|
|
In this state of her spirits, a letter was delivered
|
|
to her from the post, which contained a proposal
|
|
particularly well timed. It was the offer of a small house,
|
|
on very easy terms, belonging to a relation of her own,
|
|
a gentleman of consequence and property in Devonshire.
|
|
The letter was from this gentleman himself, and written
|
|
in the true spirit of friendly accommodation.
|
|
He understood that she was in need of a dwelling;
|
|
and though the house he now offered her was merely a cottage,
|
|
he assured her that everything should be done to it which
|
|
she might think necessary, if the situation pleased her.
|
|
He earnestly pressed her, after giving the particulars
|
|
of the house and garden, to come with her daughters to
|
|
Barton Park, the place of his own residence, from whence
|
|
she might judge, herself, whether Barton Cottage, for the
|
|
houses were in the same parish, could, by any alteration,
|
|
be made comfortable to her. He seemed really anxious to
|
|
accommodate them and the whole of his letter was written
|
|
in so friendly a style as could not fail of giving pleasure
|
|
to his cousin; more especially at a moment when she was
|
|
suffering under the cold and unfeeling behaviour of her
|
|
nearer connections. She needed no time for deliberation
|
|
or inquiry. Her resolution was formed as she read.
|
|
The situation of Barton, in a county so far distant from
|
|
Sussex as Devonshire, which, but a few hours before,
|
|
would have been a sufficient objection to outweigh every
|
|
possible advantage belonging to the place, was now its
|
|
first recommendation. To quit the neighbourhood of Norland
|
|
was no longer an evil; it was an object of desire;
|
|
it was a blessing, in comparison of the misery of continuing
|
|
her daughter-in-law's guest; and to remove for ever
|
|
from that beloved place would be less painful than to
|
|
inhabit or visit it while such a woman was its mistress.
|
|
She instantly wrote Sir John Middleton her acknowledgment
|
|
of his kindness, and her acceptance of his proposal;
|
|
and then hastened to shew both letters to her daughters,
|
|
that she might be secure of their approbation before her
|
|
answer were sent.
|
|
|
|
Elinor had always thought it would be more prudent
|
|
for them to settle at some distance from Norland,
|
|
than immediately amongst their present acquaintance.
|
|
On THAT head, therefore, it was not for her to oppose
|
|
her mother's intention of removing into Devonshire.
|
|
The house, too, as described by Sir John, was on so
|
|
simple a scale, and the rent so uncommonly moderate,
|
|
as to leave her no right of objection on either point;
|
|
and, therefore, though it was not a plan which brought
|
|
any charm to her fancy, though it was a removal from
|
|
the vicinity of Norland beyond her wishes, she made
|
|
no attempt to dissuade her mother from sending a letter
|
|
of acquiescence.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 5
|
|
|
|
No sooner was her answer dispatched, than Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
indulged herself in the pleasure of announcing to her
|
|
son-in-law and his wife that she was provided with a house,
|
|
and should incommode them no longer than till every thing were
|
|
ready for her inhabiting it. They heard her with surprise.
|
|
Mrs. John Dashwood said nothing; but her husband civilly
|
|
hoped that she would not be settled far from Norland.
|
|
She had great satisfaction in replying that she was going
|
|
into Devonshire.--Edward turned hastily towards her,
|
|
on hearing this, and, in a voice of surprise and concern,
|
|
which required no explanation to her, repeated,
|
|
"Devonshire! Are you, indeed, going there? So far from hence!
|
|
And to what part of it?" She explained the situation.
|
|
It was within four miles northward of Exeter.
|
|
|
|
"It is but a cottage," she continued, "but I hope
|
|
to see many of my friends in it. A room or two can
|
|
easily be added; and if my friends find no difficulty
|
|
in travelling so far to see me, I am sure I will find
|
|
none in accommodating them."
|
|
|
|
She concluded with a very kind invitation to
|
|
Mr. and Mrs. John Dashwood to visit her at Barton;
|
|
and to Edward she gave one with still greater affection.
|
|
Though her late conversation with her daughter-in-law had
|
|
made her resolve on remaining at Norland no longer than
|
|
was unavoidable, it had not produced the smallest effect
|
|
on her in that point to which it principally tended.
|
|
To separate Edward and Elinor was as far from being her
|
|
object as ever; and she wished to show Mrs. John Dashwood,
|
|
by this pointed invitation to her brother, how totally she
|
|
disregarded her disapprobation of the match.
|
|
|
|
Mr. John Dashwood told his mother again and again
|
|
how exceedingly sorry he was that she had taken a house at
|
|
such a distance from Norland as to prevent his being of any
|
|
service to her in removing her furniture. He really felt
|
|
conscientiously vexed on the occasion; for the very exertion
|
|
to which he had limited the performance of his promise to
|
|
his father was by this arrangement rendered impracticable.--
|
|
The furniture was all sent around by water. It chiefly
|
|
consisted of household linen, plate, china, and books,
|
|
with a handsome pianoforte of Marianne's. Mrs. John
|
|
Dashwood saw the packages depart with a sigh: she could
|
|
not help feeling it hard that as Mrs. Dashwood's income
|
|
would be so trifling in comparison with their own,
|
|
she should have any handsome article of furniture.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood took the house for a twelvemonth; it was
|
|
ready furnished, and she might have immediate possession.
|
|
No difficulty arose on either side in the agreement; and she
|
|
waited only for the disposal of her effects at Norland,
|
|
and to determine her future household, before she set
|
|
off for the west; and this, as she was exceedingly rapid
|
|
in the performance of everything that interested her,
|
|
was soon done.--The horses which were left her by her husband
|
|
had been sold soon after his death, and an opportunity
|
|
now offering of disposing of her carriage, she agreed
|
|
to sell that likewise at the earnest advice of her
|
|
eldest daughter. For the comfort of her children, had she
|
|
consulted only her own wishes, she would have kept it;
|
|
but the discretion of Elinor prevailed. HER wisdom
|
|
too limited the number of their servants to three;
|
|
two maids and a man, with whom they were speedily provided
|
|
from amongst those who had formed their establishment
|
|
at Norland.
|
|
|
|
The man and one of the maids were sent off immediately
|
|
into Devonshire, to prepare the house for their mistress's
|
|
arrival; for as Lady Middleton was entirely unknown
|
|
to Mrs. Dashwood, she preferred going directly to the
|
|
cottage to being a visitor at Barton Park; and she relied
|
|
so undoubtingly on Sir John's description of the house,
|
|
as to feel no curiosity to examine it herself till she
|
|
entered it as her own. Her eagerness to be gone from Norland
|
|
was preserved from diminution by the evident satisfaction
|
|
of her daughter-in-law in the prospect of her removal;
|
|
a satisfaction which was but feebly attempted to be concealed
|
|
under a cold invitation to her to defer her departure.
|
|
Now was the time when her son-in-law's promise to his
|
|
father might with particular propriety be fulfilled.
|
|
Since he had neglected to do it on first coming to
|
|
the estate, their quitting his house might be looked
|
|
on as the most suitable period for its accomplishment.
|
|
But Mrs. Dashwood began shortly to give over every
|
|
hope of the kind, and to be convinced, from the general
|
|
drift of his discourse, that his assistance extended no
|
|
farther than their maintenance for six months at Norland.
|
|
He so frequently talked of the increasing expenses
|
|
of housekeeping, and of the perpetual demands upon his purse,
|
|
which a man of any consequence in the world was beyond
|
|
calculation exposed to, that he seemed rather to stand
|
|
in need of more money himself than to have any design of
|
|
giving money away.
|
|
|
|
In a very few weeks from the day which brought Sir
|
|
John Middleton's first letter to Norland, every thing was
|
|
so far settled in their future abode as to enable
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters to begin their journey.
|
|
|
|
Many were the tears shed by them in their last
|
|
adieus to a place so much beloved. "Dear, dear Norland!"
|
|
said Marianne, as she wandered alone before the house,
|
|
on the last evening of their being there; "when shall I cease
|
|
to regret you!--when learn to feel a home elsewhere!--Oh!
|
|
happy house, could you know what I suffer in now viewing
|
|
you from this spot, from whence perhaps I may view
|
|
you no more!--And you, ye well-known trees!--but you
|
|
will continue the same.--No leaf will decay because we
|
|
are removed, nor any branch become motionless although we
|
|
can observe you no longer!--No; you will continue the same;
|
|
unconscious of the pleasure or the regret you occasion,
|
|
and insensible of any change in those who walk under your
|
|
shade!--But who will remain to enjoy you?"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 6
|
|
|
|
The first part of their journey was performed in too
|
|
melancholy a disposition to be otherwise than tedious
|
|
and unpleasant. But as they drew towards the end of it,
|
|
their interest in the appearance of a country which they
|
|
were to inhabit overcame their dejection, and a view of
|
|
Barton Valley as they entered it gave them cheerfulness.
|
|
It was a pleasant fertile spot, well wooded, and rich
|
|
in pasture. After winding along it for more than a mile,
|
|
they reached their own house. A small green court was
|
|
the whole of its demesne in front; and a neat wicket gate
|
|
admitted them into it.
|
|
|
|
As a house, Barton Cottage, though small, was comfortable
|
|
and compact; but as a cottage it was defective, for the
|
|
building was regular, the roof was tiled, the window
|
|
shutters were not painted green, nor were the walls covered
|
|
with honeysuckles. A narrow passage led directly through
|
|
the house into the garden behind. On each side of the
|
|
entrance was a sitting room, about sixteen feet square;
|
|
and beyond them were the offices and the stairs.
|
|
Four bed-rooms and two garrets formed the rest of the house.
|
|
It had not been built many years and was in good repair.
|
|
In comparison of Norland, it was poor and small indeed!--but
|
|
the tears which recollection called forth as they entered
|
|
the house were soon dried away. They were cheered
|
|
by the joy of the servants on their arrival, and each
|
|
for the sake of the others resolved to appear happy.
|
|
It was very early in September; the season was fine,
|
|
and from first seeing the place under the advantage
|
|
of good weather, they received an impression in its
|
|
favour which was of material service in recommending
|
|
it to their lasting approbation.
|
|
|
|
The situation of the house was good. High hills rose
|
|
immediately behind, and at no great distance on each side;
|
|
some of which were open downs, the others cultivated and woody.
|
|
The village of Barton was chiefly on one of these hills,
|
|
and formed a pleasant view from the cottage windows.
|
|
The prospect in front was more extensive; it commanded the
|
|
whole of the valley, and reached into the country beyond.
|
|
The hills which surrounded the cottage terminated
|
|
the valley in that direction; under another name,
|
|
and in another course, it branched out again between two
|
|
of the steepest of them.
|
|
|
|
With the size and furniture of the house Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
was upon the whole well satisfied; for though her former
|
|
style of life rendered many additions to the latter
|
|
indispensable, yet to add and improve was a delight to her;
|
|
and she had at this time ready money enough to supply all
|
|
that was wanted of greater elegance to the apartments.
|
|
"As for the house itself, to be sure," said she, "it is
|
|
too small for our family, but we will make ourselves
|
|
tolerably comfortable for the present, as it is too late
|
|
in the year for improvements. Perhaps in the spring,
|
|
if I have plenty of money, as I dare say I shall, we may
|
|
think about building. These parlors are both too small
|
|
for such parties of our friends as I hope to see often
|
|
collected here; and I have some thoughts of throwing the
|
|
passage into one of them with perhaps a part of the other,
|
|
and so leave the remainder of that other for an entrance;
|
|
this, with a new drawing room which may be easily added,
|
|
and a bed-chamber and garret above, will make it a very snug
|
|
little cottage. I could wish the stairs were handsome.
|
|
But one must not expect every thing; though I suppose it
|
|
would be no difficult matter to widen them. I shall see
|
|
how much I am before-hand with the world in the spring,
|
|
and we will plan our improvements accordingly."
|
|
|
|
In the mean time, till all these alterations could
|
|
be made from the savings of an income of five hundred
|
|
a-year by a woman who never saved in her life, they were
|
|
wise enough to be contented with the house as it was;
|
|
and each of them was busy in arranging their particular
|
|
concerns, and endeavoring, by placing around them books
|
|
and other possessions, to form themselves a home.
|
|
Marianne's pianoforte was unpacked and properly disposed of;
|
|
and Elinor's drawings were affixed to the walls of their
|
|
sitting room.
|
|
|
|
In such employments as these they were interrupted
|
|
soon after breakfast the next day by the entrance of
|
|
their landlord, who called to welcome them to Barton,
|
|
and to offer them every accommodation from his own house
|
|
and garden in which theirs might at present be deficient.
|
|
Sir John Middleton was a good looking man about forty.
|
|
He had formerly visited at Stanhill, but it was too long
|
|
for his young cousins to remember him. His countenance
|
|
was thoroughly good-humoured; and his manners were
|
|
as friendly as the style of his letter. Their arrival
|
|
seemed to afford him real satisfaction, and their comfort
|
|
to be an object of real solicitude to him. He said much
|
|
of his earnest desire of their living in the most sociable
|
|
terms with his family, and pressed them so cordially
|
|
to dine at Barton Park every day till they were better
|
|
settled at home, that, though his entreaties were carried
|
|
to a point of perseverance beyond civility, they could
|
|
not give offence. His kindness was not confined to words;
|
|
for within an hour after he left them, a large basket
|
|
full of garden stuff and fruit arrived from the park,
|
|
which was followed before the end of the day by a present
|
|
of game. He insisted, moreover, on conveying all their
|
|
letters to and from the post for them, and would not be
|
|
denied the satisfaction of sending them his newspaper
|
|
every day.
|
|
|
|
Lady Middleton had sent a very civil message by him,
|
|
denoting her intention of waiting on Mrs. Dashwood as soon as
|
|
she could be assured that her visit would be no inconvenience;
|
|
and as this message was answered by an invitation
|
|
equally polite, her ladyship was introduced to them the next day.
|
|
|
|
They were, of course, very anxious to see a person on
|
|
whom so much of their comfort at Barton must depend; and the
|
|
elegance of her appearance was favourable to their wishes.
|
|
Lady Middleton was not more than six or seven and twenty;
|
|
her face was handsome, her figure tall and striking,
|
|
and her address graceful. Her manners had all the elegance
|
|
which her husband's wanted. But they would have been
|
|
improved by some share of his frankness and warmth;
|
|
and her visit was long enough to detract something from
|
|
their first admiration, by shewing that, though perfectly
|
|
well-bred, she was reserved, cold, and had nothing to say
|
|
for herself beyond the most common-place inquiry or remark.
|
|
|
|
Conversation however was not wanted, for Sir John
|
|
was very chatty, and Lady Middleton had taken the wise
|
|
precaution of bringing with her their eldest child, a fine
|
|
little boy about six years old, by which means there was
|
|
one subject always to be recurred to by the ladies in case
|
|
of extremity, for they had to enquire his name and age,
|
|
admire his beauty, and ask him questions which his mother
|
|
answered for him, while he hung about her and held
|
|
down his head, to the great surprise of her ladyship,
|
|
who wondered at his being so shy before company, as he
|
|
could make noise enough at home. On every formal visit
|
|
a child ought to be of the party, by way of provision
|
|
for discourse. In the present case it took up ten minutes
|
|
to determine whether the boy were most like his father
|
|
or mother, and in what particular he resembled either,
|
|
for of course every body differed, and every body was
|
|
astonished at the opinion of the others.
|
|
|
|
An opportunity was soon to be given to the Dashwoods
|
|
of debating on the rest of the children, as Sir John
|
|
would not leave the house without securing their promise
|
|
of dining at the park the next day.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 7
|
|
|
|
Barton Park was about half a mile from the cottage.
|
|
The ladies had passed near it in their way along the valley,
|
|
but it was screened from their view at home by the
|
|
projection of a hill. The house was large and handsome;
|
|
and the Middletons lived in a style of equal hospitality
|
|
and elegance. The former was for Sir John's gratification,
|
|
the latter for that of his lady. They were scarcely
|
|
ever without some friends staying with them in the house,
|
|
and they kept more company of every kind than any other
|
|
family in the neighbourhood. It was necessary to the
|
|
happiness of both; for however dissimilar in temper
|
|
and outward behaviour, they strongly resembled each other
|
|
in that total want of talent and taste which confined
|
|
their employments, unconnected with such as society produced,
|
|
within a very narrow compass. Sir John was a sportsman,
|
|
Lady Middleton a mother. He hunted and shot, and she
|
|
humoured her children; and these were their only resources.
|
|
Lady Middleton had the advantage of being able to spoil her
|
|
children all the year round, while Sir John's independent
|
|
employments were in existence only half the time.
|
|
Continual engagements at home and abroad, however,
|
|
supplied all the deficiencies of nature and education;
|
|
supported the good spirits of Sir John, and gave exercise
|
|
to the good breeding of his wife.
|
|
|
|
Lady Middleton piqued herself upon the elegance
|
|
of her table, and of all her domestic arrangements;
|
|
and from this kind of vanity was her greatest enjoyment
|
|
in any of their parties. But Sir John's satisfaction
|
|
in society was much more real; he delighted in collecting
|
|
about him more young people than his house would hold,
|
|
and the noisier they were the better was he pleased.
|
|
He was a blessing to all the juvenile part of the neighbourhood,
|
|
for in summer he was for ever forming parties to eat cold
|
|
ham and chicken out of doors, and in winter his private
|
|
balls were numerous enough for any young lady who was not
|
|
suffering under the unsatiable appetite of fifteen.
|
|
|
|
The arrival of a new family in the country was always
|
|
a matter of joy to him, and in every point of view he was
|
|
charmed with the inhabitants he had now procured for his
|
|
cottage at Barton. The Miss Dashwoods were young, pretty,
|
|
and unaffected. It was enough to secure his good opinion;
|
|
for to be unaffected was all that a pretty girl could
|
|
want to make her mind as captivating as her person.
|
|
The friendliness of his disposition made him happy in
|
|
accommodating those, whose situation might be considered,
|
|
in comparison with the past, as unfortunate. In showing
|
|
kindness to his cousins therefore he had the real satisfaction
|
|
of a good heart; and in settling a family of females only
|
|
in his cottage, he had all the satisfaction of a sportsman;
|
|
for a sportsman, though he esteems only those of his sex who
|
|
are sportsmen likewise, is not often desirous of encouraging
|
|
their taste by admitting them to a residence within his own manor.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters were met at the door
|
|
of the house by Sir John, who welcomed them to Barton
|
|
Park with unaffected sincerity; and as he attended them
|
|
to the drawing room repeated to the young ladies the concern
|
|
which the same subject had drawn from him the day before,
|
|
at being unable to get any smart young men to meet them.
|
|
They would see, he said, only one gentleman there
|
|
besides himself; a particular friend who was staying at
|
|
the park, but who was neither very young nor very gay.
|
|
He hoped they would all excuse the smallness of the party,
|
|
and could assure them it should never happen so again.
|
|
He had been to several families that morning in hopes
|
|
of procuring some addition to their number, but it
|
|
was moonlight and every body was full of engagements.
|
|
Luckily Lady Middleton's mother had arrived at Barton
|
|
within the last hour, and as she was a very cheerful
|
|
agreeable woman, he hoped the young ladies would not find
|
|
it so very dull as they might imagine. The young ladies,
|
|
as well as their mother, were perfectly satisfied with
|
|
having two entire strangers of the party, and wished for
|
|
no more.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings, Lady Middleton's mother, was a
|
|
good-humoured, merry, fat, elderly woman, who talked a
|
|
great deal, seemed very happy, and rather vulgar. She was full
|
|
of jokes and laughter, and before dinner was over had said
|
|
many witty things on the subject of lovers and husbands;
|
|
hoped they had not left their hearts behind them in Sussex,
|
|
and pretended to see them blush whether they did or not.
|
|
Marianne was vexed at it for her sister's sake, and turned
|
|
her eyes towards Elinor to see how she bore these attacks,
|
|
with an earnestness which gave Elinor far more pain than
|
|
could arise from such common-place raillery as Mrs. Jennings's.
|
|
|
|
Colonel Brandon, the friend of Sir John, seemed no
|
|
more adapted by resemblance of manner to be his friend,
|
|
than Lady Middleton was to be his wife, or Mrs. Jennings
|
|
to be Lady Middleton's mother. He was silent and grave.
|
|
His appearance however was not unpleasing, in spite
|
|
of his being in the opinion of Marianne and Margaret
|
|
an absolute old bachelor, for he was on the wrong side
|
|
of five and thirty; but though his face was not handsome,
|
|
his countenance was sensible, and his address was
|
|
particularly gentlemanlike.
|
|
|
|
There was nothing in any of the party which could
|
|
recommend them as companions to the Dashwoods; but the cold
|
|
insipidity of Lady Middleton was so particularly repulsive,
|
|
that in comparison of it the gravity of Colonel Brandon,
|
|
and even the boisterous mirth of Sir John and his
|
|
mother-in-law was interesting. Lady Middleton seemed
|
|
to be roused to enjoyment only by the entrance of her
|
|
four noisy children after dinner, who pulled her about,
|
|
tore her clothes, and put an end to every kind of discourse
|
|
except what related to themselves.
|
|
|
|
In the evening, as Marianne was discovered to be musical,
|
|
she was invited to play. The instrument was unlocked,
|
|
every body prepared to be charmed, and Marianne,
|
|
who sang very well, at their request went through the
|
|
chief of the songs which Lady Middleton had brought into
|
|
the family on her marriage, and which perhaps had lain
|
|
ever since in the same position on the pianoforte,
|
|
for her ladyship had celebrated that event by giving
|
|
up music, although by her mother's account, she had
|
|
played extremely well, and by her own was very fond of it.
|
|
|
|
Marianne's performance was highly applauded.
|
|
Sir John was loud in his admiration at the end of every song,
|
|
and as loud in his conversation with the others while every
|
|
song lasted. Lady Middleton frequently called him to order,
|
|
wondered how any one's attention could be diverted from music
|
|
for a moment, and asked Marianne to sing a particular song
|
|
which Marianne had just finished. Colonel Brandon alone,
|
|
of all the party, heard her without being in raptures.
|
|
He paid her only the compliment of attention; and she felt
|
|
a respect for him on the occasion, which the others had
|
|
reasonably forfeited by their shameless want of taste.
|
|
His pleasure in music, though it amounted not to that
|
|
ecstatic delight which alone could sympathize with her own,
|
|
was estimable when contrasted against the horrible
|
|
insensibility of the others; and she was reasonable enough
|
|
to allow that a man of five and thirty might well have
|
|
outlived all acuteness of feeling and every exquisite
|
|
power of enjoyment. She was perfectly disposed to make
|
|
every allowance for the colonel's advanced state of life
|
|
which humanity required.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 8
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings was a widow with an ample jointure.
|
|
She had only two daughters, both of whom she had lived
|
|
to see respectably married, and she had now therefore
|
|
nothing to do but to marry all the rest of the world.
|
|
In the promotion of this object she was zealously active,
|
|
as far as her ability reached; and missed no opportunity
|
|
of projecting weddings among all the young people
|
|
of her acquaintance. She was remarkably quick in the
|
|
discovery of attachments, and had enjoyed the advantage
|
|
of raising the blushes and the vanity of many a young
|
|
lady by insinuations of her power over such a young man;
|
|
and this kind of discernment enabled her soon after her
|
|
arrival at Barton decisively to pronounce that Colonel
|
|
Brandon was very much in love with Marianne Dashwood.
|
|
She rather suspected it to be so, on the very first
|
|
evening of their being together, from his listening
|
|
so attentively while she sang to them; and when the visit
|
|
was returned by the Middletons' dining at the cottage,
|
|
the fact was ascertained by his listening to her again.
|
|
It must be so. She was perfectly convinced of it.
|
|
It would be an excellent match, for HE was rich, and SHE
|
|
was handsome. Mrs. Jennings had been anxious to see
|
|
Colonel Brandon well married, ever since her connection
|
|
with Sir John first brought him to her knowledge;
|
|
and she was always anxious to get a good husband for every
|
|
pretty girl.
|
|
|
|
The immediate advantage to herself was by no means
|
|
inconsiderable, for it supplied her with endless jokes
|
|
against them both. At the park she laughed at the colonel,
|
|
and in the cottage at Marianne. To the former her
|
|
raillery was probably, as far as it regarded only himself,
|
|
perfectly indifferent; but to the latter it was at
|
|
first incomprehensible; and when its object was understood,
|
|
she hardly knew whether most to laugh at its absurdity,
|
|
or censure its impertinence, for she considered it as an
|
|
unfeeling reflection on the colonel's advanced years,
|
|
and on his forlorn condition as an old bachelor.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood, who could not think a man five years
|
|
younger than herself, so exceedingly ancient as he appeared
|
|
to the youthful fancy of her daughter, ventured to clear
|
|
Mrs. Jennings from the probability of wishing to throw
|
|
ridicule on his age.
|
|
|
|
"But at least, Mamma, you cannot deny the absurdity
|
|
of the accusation, though you may not think it intentionally
|
|
ill-natured. Colonel Brandon is certainly younger than
|
|
Mrs. Jennings, but he is old enough to be MY father;
|
|
and if he were ever animated enough to be in love,
|
|
must have long outlived every sensation of the kind.
|
|
It is too ridiculous! When is a man to be safe from such wit,
|
|
if age and infirmity will not protect him?"
|
|
|
|
"Infirmity!" said Elinor, "do you call Colonel Brandon
|
|
infirm? I can easily suppose that his age may appear much
|
|
greater to you than to my mother; but you can hardly
|
|
deceive yourself as to his having the use of his limbs!"
|
|
|
|
"Did not you hear him complain of the rheumatism?
|
|
and is not that the commonest infirmity of declining life?"
|
|
|
|
"My dearest child," said her mother, laughing,
|
|
"at this rate you must be in continual terror of MY decay;
|
|
and it must seem to you a miracle that my life has been
|
|
extended to the advanced age of forty."
|
|
|
|
"Mamma, you are not doing me justice. I know very well
|
|
that Colonel Brandon is not old enough to make his friends
|
|
yet apprehensive of losing him in the course of nature.
|
|
He may live twenty years longer. But thirty-five has
|
|
nothing to do with matrimony."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps," said Elinor, "thirty-five and seventeen had
|
|
better not have any thing to do with matrimony together.
|
|
But if there should by any chance happen to be a woman
|
|
who is single at seven and twenty, I should not think
|
|
Colonel Brandon's being thirty-five any objection to his
|
|
marrying HER."
|
|
|
|
"A woman of seven and twenty," said Marianne,
|
|
after pausing a moment, "can never hope to feel or inspire
|
|
affection again, and if her home be uncomfortable,
|
|
or her fortune small, I can suppose that she might
|
|
bring herself to submit to the offices of a nurse,
|
|
for the sake of the provision and security of a wife.
|
|
In his marrying such a woman therefore there would be
|
|
nothing unsuitable. It would be a compact of convenience,
|
|
and the world would be satisfied. In my eyes it would
|
|
be no marriage at all, but that would be nothing.
|
|
To me it would seem only a commercial exchange, in which
|
|
each wished to be benefited at the expense of the other."
|
|
|
|
"It would be impossible, I know," replied Elinor,
|
|
"to convince you that a woman of seven and twenty could
|
|
feel for a man of thirty-five anything near enough
|
|
to love, to make him a desirable companion to her.
|
|
But I must object to your dooming Colonel Brandon and
|
|
his wife to the constant confinement of a sick chamber,
|
|
merely because he chanced to complain yesterday (a
|
|
very cold damp day) of a slight rheumatic feel in one
|
|
of his shoulders."
|
|
|
|
"But he talked of flannel waistcoats," said Marianne;
|
|
"and with me a flannel waistcoat is invariably connected
|
|
with aches, cramps, rheumatisms, and every species of
|
|
ailment that can afflict the old and the feeble."
|
|
|
|
"Had he been only in a violent fever, you would not
|
|
have despised him half so much. Confess, Marianne, is not
|
|
there something interesting to you in the flushed cheek,
|
|
hollow eye, and quick pulse of a fever?"
|
|
|
|
Soon after this, upon Elinor's leaving the room,
|
|
"Mamma," said Marianne, "I have an alarm on the subject
|
|
of illness which I cannot conceal from you. I am sure
|
|
Edward Ferrars is not well. We have now been here almost
|
|
a fortnight, and yet he does not come. Nothing but real
|
|
indisposition could occasion this extraordinary delay.
|
|
What else can detain him at Norland?"
|
|
|
|
"Had you any idea of his coming so soon?"
|
|
said Mrs. Dashwood. "I had none. On the contrary,
|
|
if I have felt any anxiety at all on the subject, it has
|
|
been in recollecting that he sometimes showed a want
|
|
of pleasure and readiness in accepting my invitation,
|
|
when I talked of his coming to Barton. Does Elinor
|
|
expect him already?"
|
|
|
|
"I have never mentioned it to her, but of course
|
|
she must."
|
|
|
|
"I rather think you are mistaken, for when I
|
|
was talking to her yesterday of getting a new grate
|
|
for the spare bedchamber, she observed that there
|
|
was no immediate hurry for it, as it was not likely
|
|
that the room would be wanted for some time."
|
|
|
|
"How strange this is! what can be the meaning of it!
|
|
But the whole of their behaviour to each other has been
|
|
unaccountable! How cold, how composed were their last
|
|
adieus! How languid their conversation the last evening
|
|
of their being together! In Edward's farewell there was no
|
|
distinction between Elinor and me: it was the good wishes
|
|
of an affectionate brother to both. Twice did I leave
|
|
them purposely together in the course of the last morning,
|
|
and each time did he most unaccountably follow me out
|
|
of the room. And Elinor, in quitting Norland and Edward,
|
|
cried not as I did. Even now her self-command is invariable.
|
|
When is she dejected or melancholy? When does she try
|
|
to avoid society, or appear restless and dissatisfied
|
|
in it?"
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 9
|
|
|
|
The Dashwoods were now settled at Barton with tolerable
|
|
comfort to themselves. The house and the garden, with all
|
|
the objects surrounding them, were now become familiar,
|
|
and the ordinary pursuits which had given to Norland
|
|
half its charms were engaged in again with far greater
|
|
enjoyment than Norland had been able to afford, since the
|
|
loss of their father. Sir John Middleton, who called
|
|
on them every day for the first fortnight, and who was
|
|
not in the habit of seeing much occupation at home,
|
|
could not conceal his amazement on finding them always employed.
|
|
|
|
Their visitors, except those from Barton Park,
|
|
were not many; for, in spite of Sir John's urgent entreaties
|
|
that they would mix more in the neighbourhood, and repeated
|
|
assurances of his carriage being always at their service,
|
|
the independence of Mrs. Dashwood's spirit overcame the
|
|
wish of society for her children; and she was resolute
|
|
in declining to visit any family beyond the distance
|
|
of a walk. There were but few who could be so classed;
|
|
and it was not all of them that were attainable.
|
|
About a mile and a half from the cottage, along the narrow
|
|
winding valley of Allenham, which issued from that of Barton,
|
|
as formerly described, the girls had, in one of their
|
|
earliest walks, discovered an ancient respectable looking
|
|
mansion which, by reminding them a little of Norland,
|
|
interested their imagination and made them wish to be
|
|
better acquainted with it. But they learnt, on enquiry,
|
|
that its possessor, an elderly lady of very good character,
|
|
was unfortunately too infirm to mix with the world,
|
|
and never stirred from home.
|
|
|
|
The whole country about them abounded in beautiful walks.
|
|
The high downs which invited them from almost every window
|
|
of the cottage to seek the exquisite enjoyment of air
|
|
on their summits, were a happy alternative when the dirt
|
|
of the valleys beneath shut up their superior beauties;
|
|
and towards one of these hills did Marianne and Margaret
|
|
one memorable morning direct their steps, attracted by the
|
|
partial sunshine of a showery sky, and unable longer to bear
|
|
the confinement which the settled rain of the two preceding
|
|
days had occasioned. The weather was not tempting enough
|
|
to draw the two others from their pencil and their book,
|
|
in spite of Marianne's declaration that the day would
|
|
be lastingly fair, and that every threatening cloud would
|
|
be drawn off from their hills; and the two girls set off together.
|
|
|
|
They gaily ascended the downs, rejoicing in their own
|
|
penetration at every glimpse of blue sky; and when they
|
|
caught in their faces the animating gales of a high
|
|
south-westerly wind, they pitied the fears which had prevented
|
|
their mother and Elinor from sharing such delightful sensations.
|
|
|
|
"Is there a felicity in the world," said Marianne,
|
|
"superior to this?--Margaret, we will walk here at least
|
|
two hours."
|
|
|
|
Margaret agreed, and they pursued their way against
|
|
the wind, resisting it with laughing delight for about
|
|
twenty minutes longer, when suddenly the clouds united over
|
|
their heads, and a driving rain set full in their face.--
|
|
Chagrined and surprised, they were obliged, though unwillingly,
|
|
to turn back, for no shelter was nearer than their own house.
|
|
One consolation however remained for them, to which the
|
|
exigence of the moment gave more than usual propriety;
|
|
it was that of running with all possible speed down the steep
|
|
side of the hill which led immediately to their garden gate.
|
|
|
|
They set off. Marianne had at first the advantage,
|
|
but a false step brought her suddenly to the ground;
|
|
and Margaret, unable to stop herself to assist her,
|
|
was involuntarily hurried along, and reached the bottom
|
|
in safety.
|
|
|
|
A gentleman carrying a gun, with two pointers
|
|
playing round him, was passing up the hill and within
|
|
a few yards of Marianne, when her accident happened.
|
|
He put down his gun and ran to her assistance. She had
|
|
raised herself from the ground, but her foot had been
|
|
twisted in her fall, and she was scarcely able to stand.
|
|
The gentleman offered his services; and perceiving that her
|
|
modesty declined what her situation rendered necessary,
|
|
took her up in his arms without farther delay, and carried
|
|
her down the hill. Then passing through the garden,
|
|
the gate of which had been left open by Margaret, he bore her
|
|
directly into the house, whither Margaret was just arrived,
|
|
and quitted not his hold till he had seated her in a chair
|
|
in the parlour.
|
|
|
|
Elinor and her mother rose up in amazement at
|
|
their entrance, and while the eyes of both were fixed
|
|
on him with an evident wonder and a secret admiration
|
|
which equally sprung from his appearance, he apologized
|
|
for his intrusion by relating its cause, in a manner
|
|
so frank and so graceful that his person, which was
|
|
uncommonly handsome, received additional charms from his voice
|
|
and expression. Had he been even old, ugly, and vulgar,
|
|
the gratitude and kindness of Mrs. Dashwood would
|
|
have been secured by any act of attention to her child;
|
|
but the influence of youth, beauty, and elegance,
|
|
gave an interest to the action which came home to her feelings.
|
|
|
|
She thanked him again and again; and, with a sweetness
|
|
of address which always attended her, invited him to
|
|
be seated. But this he declined, as he was dirty and wet.
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood then begged to know to whom she was obliged.
|
|
His name, he replied, was Willoughby, and his present
|
|
home was at Allenham, from whence he hoped she would
|
|
allow him the honour of calling tomorrow to enquire
|
|
after Miss Dashwood. The honour was readily granted,
|
|
and he then departed, to make himself still more interesting,
|
|
in the midst of an heavy rain.
|
|
|
|
His manly beauty and more than common gracefulness
|
|
were instantly the theme of general admiration,
|
|
and the laugh which his gallantry raised against Marianne
|
|
received particular spirit from his exterior attractions.--
|
|
Marianne herself had seen less of his person that the rest,
|
|
for the confusion which crimsoned over her face, on his
|
|
lifting her up, had robbed her of the power of regarding
|
|
him after their entering the house. But she had seen
|
|
enough of him to join in all the admiration of the others,
|
|
and with an energy which always adorned her praise.
|
|
His person and air were equal to what her fancy had ever
|
|
drawn for the hero of a favourite story; and in his carrying
|
|
her into the house with so little previous formality, there
|
|
was a rapidity of thought which particularly recommended
|
|
the action to her. Every circumstance belonging to him
|
|
was interesting. His name was good, his residence was in
|
|
their favourite village, and she soon found out that of all
|
|
manly dresses a shooting-jacket was the most becoming.
|
|
Her imagination was busy, her reflections were pleasant,
|
|
and the pain of a sprained ankle was disregarded.
|
|
|
|
Sir John called on them as soon as the next interval
|
|
of fair weather that morning allowed him to get out
|
|
of doors; and Marianne's accident being related to him,
|
|
he was eagerly asked whether he knew any gentleman
|
|
of the name of Willoughby at Allenham.
|
|
|
|
"Willoughby!" cried Sir John; "what, is HE
|
|
in the country? That is good news however; I will
|
|
ride over tomorrow, and ask him to dinner on Thursday."
|
|
|
|
"You know him then," said Mrs. Dashwood.
|
|
|
|
"Know him! to be sure I do. Why, he is down here
|
|
every year."
|
|
|
|
"And what sort of a young man is he?"
|
|
|
|
"As good a kind of fellow as ever lived, I assure you.
|
|
A very decent shot, and there is not a bolder rider
|
|
in England."
|
|
|
|
"And is that all you can say for him?" cried Marianne,
|
|
indignantly. "But what are his manners on more intimate
|
|
acquaintance? What his pursuits, his talents, and genius?"
|
|
|
|
Sir John was rather puzzled.
|
|
|
|
"Upon my soul," said he, "I do not know much about him
|
|
as to all THAT. But he is a pleasant, good humoured fellow,
|
|
and has got the nicest little black bitch of a pointer
|
|
I ever saw. Was she out with him today?"
|
|
|
|
But Marianne could no more satisfy him as to the
|
|
colour of Mr. Willoughby's pointer, than he could
|
|
describe to her the shades of his mind.
|
|
|
|
"But who is he?" said Elinor. "Where does he come
|
|
from? Has he a house at Allenham?"
|
|
|
|
On this point Sir John could give more certain intelligence;
|
|
and he told them that Mr. Willoughby had no property
|
|
of his own in the country; that he resided there only
|
|
while he was visiting the old lady at Allenham Court,
|
|
to whom he was related, and whose possessions he was
|
|
to inherit; adding, "Yes, yes, he is very well worth
|
|
catching I can tell you, Miss Dashwood; he has a pretty
|
|
little estate of his own in Somersetshire besides;
|
|
and if I were you, I would not give him up to my
|
|
younger sister, in spite of all this tumbling down hills.
|
|
Miss Marianne must not expect to have all the men to herself.
|
|
Brandon will be jealous, if she does not take care."
|
|
|
|
"I do not believe," said Mrs. Dashwood, with a
|
|
good humoured smile, "that Mr. Willoughby will be incommoded
|
|
by the attempts of either of MY daughters towards what
|
|
you call CATCHING him. It is not an employment to which
|
|
they have been brought up. Men are very safe with us,
|
|
let them be ever so rich. I am glad to find, however,
|
|
from what you say, that he is a respectable young man,
|
|
and one whose acquaintance will not be ineligible."
|
|
|
|
"He is as good a sort of fellow, I believe,
|
|
as ever lived," repeated Sir John. "I remember
|
|
last Christmas at a little hop at the park, he danced
|
|
from eight o'clock till four, without once sitting down."
|
|
|
|
"Did he indeed?" cried Marianne with sparkling eyes,
|
|
"and with elegance, with spirit?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; and he was up again at eight to ride to covert."
|
|
|
|
"That is what I like; that is what a young man ought
|
|
to be. Whatever be his pursuits, his eagerness in them
|
|
should know no moderation, and leave him no sense of fatigue."
|
|
|
|
"Aye, aye, I see how it will be," said Sir John, "I see
|
|
how it will be. You will be setting your cap at him now,
|
|
and never think of poor Brandon."
|
|
|
|
"That is an expression, Sir John," said Marianne,
|
|
warmly, "which I particularly dislike. I abhor every
|
|
common-place phrase by which wit is intended; and 'setting
|
|
one's cap at a man,' or 'making a conquest,' are the most
|
|
odious of all. Their tendency is gross and illiberal;
|
|
and if their construction could ever be deemed clever,
|
|
time has long ago destroyed all its ingenuity."
|
|
|
|
Sir John did not much understand this reproof;
|
|
but he laughed as heartily as if he did, and then replied,
|
|
|
|
"Ay, you will make conquests enough, I dare say,
|
|
one way or other. Poor Brandon! he is quite smitten already,
|
|
and he is very well worth setting your cap at, I can
|
|
tell you, in spite of all this tumbling about and spraining
|
|
of ankles."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 10
|
|
|
|
Marianne's preserver, as Margaret, with more elegance
|
|
than precision, styled Willoughby, called at the cottage
|
|
early the next morning to make his personal enquiries.
|
|
He was received by Mrs. Dashwood with more than politeness;
|
|
with a kindness which Sir John's account of him and her own
|
|
gratitude prompted; and every thing that passed during
|
|
the visit tended to assure him of the sense, elegance,
|
|
mutual affection, and domestic comfort of the family
|
|
to whom accident had now introduced him. Of their
|
|
personal charms he had not required a second interview
|
|
to be convinced.
|
|
|
|
Miss Dashwood had a delicate complexion,
|
|
regular features, and a remarkably pretty figure.
|
|
Marianne was still handsomer. Her form, though not so
|
|
correct as her sister's, in having the advantage of height,
|
|
was more striking; and her face was so lovely, that when
|
|
in the common cant of praise, she was called a beautiful girl,
|
|
truth was less violently outraged than usually happens.
|
|
Her skin was very brown, but, from its transparency,
|
|
her complexion was uncommonly brilliant; her features
|
|
were all good; her smile was sweet and attractive;
|
|
and in her eyes, which were very dark, there was a life,
|
|
a spirit, an eagerness, which could hardily be seen
|
|
without delight. From Willoughby their expression was at
|
|
first held back, by the embarrassment which the remembrance
|
|
of his assistance created. But when this passed away,
|
|
when her spirits became collected, when she saw that to the
|
|
perfect good-breeding of the gentleman, he united frankness
|
|
and vivacity, and above all, when she heard him declare,
|
|
that of music and dancing he was passionately fond,
|
|
she gave him such a look of approbation as secured the
|
|
largest share of his discourse to herself for the rest
|
|
of his stay.
|
|
|
|
It was only necessary to mention any favourite
|
|
amusement to engage her to talk. She could not be
|
|
silent when such points were introduced, and she
|
|
had neither shyness nor reserve in their discussion.
|
|
They speedily discovered that their enjoyment of dancing
|
|
and music was mutual, and that it arose from a general
|
|
conformity of judgment in all that related to either.
|
|
Encouraged by this to a further examination of his opinions,
|
|
she proceeded to question him on the subject of books;
|
|
her favourite authors were brought forward and dwelt
|
|
upon with so rapturous a delight, that any young man of
|
|
five and twenty must have been insensible indeed, not to
|
|
become an immediate convert to the excellence of such works,
|
|
however disregarded before. Their taste was strikingly alike.
|
|
The same books, the same passages were idolized by each--
|
|
or if any difference appeared, any objection arose,
|
|
it lasted no longer than till the force of her arguments
|
|
and the brightness of her eyes could be displayed.
|
|
He acquiesced in all her decisions, caught all her enthusiasm;
|
|
and long before his visit concluded, they conversed
|
|
with the familiarity of a long-established acquaintance.
|
|
|
|
"Well, Marianne," said Elinor, as soon as he had left them,
|
|
"for ONE morning I think you have done pretty well.
|
|
You have already ascertained Mr. Willoughby's opinion in
|
|
almost every matter of importance. You know what he thinks
|
|
of Cowper and Scott; you are certain of his estimating
|
|
their beauties as he ought, and you have received every
|
|
assurance of his admiring Pope no more than is proper.
|
|
But how is your acquaintance to be long supported, under such
|
|
extraordinary despatch of every subject for discourse?
|
|
You will soon have exhausted each favourite topic.
|
|
Another meeting will suffice to explain his sentiments
|
|
on picturesque beauty, and second marriages, and then
|
|
you can have nothing farther to ask."--
|
|
|
|
"Elinor," cried Marianne, "is this fair? is this
|
|
just? are my ideas so scanty? But I see what you mean.
|
|
I have been too much at my ease, too happy, too frank.
|
|
I have erred against every common-place notion of decorum;
|
|
I have been open and sincere where I ought to have
|
|
been reserved, spiritless, dull, and deceitful--had
|
|
I talked only of the weather and the roads, and had I
|
|
spoken only once in ten minutes, this reproach would have
|
|
been spared."
|
|
|
|
"My love," said her mother, "you must not be offended
|
|
with Elinor--she was only in jest. I should scold
|
|
her myself, if she were capable of wishing to check
|
|
the delight of your conversation with our new friend."--
|
|
Marianne was softened in a moment.
|
|
|
|
Willoughby, on his side, gave every proof of his
|
|
pleasure in their acquaintance, which an evident wish
|
|
of improving it could offer. He came to them every day.
|
|
To enquire after Marianne was at first his excuse; but the
|
|
encouragement of his reception, to which every day gave
|
|
greater kindness, made such an excuse unnecessary before it
|
|
had ceased to be possible, by Marianne's perfect recovery.
|
|
She was confined for some days to the house; but never had
|
|
any confinement been less irksome. Willoughby was a young
|
|
man of good abilities, quick imagination, lively spirits,
|
|
and open, affectionate manners. He was exactly formed
|
|
to engage Marianne's heart, for with all this, he joined
|
|
not only a captivating person, but a natural ardour
|
|
of mind which was now roused and increased by the example
|
|
of her own, and which recommended him to her affection
|
|
beyond every thing else.
|
|
|
|
His society became gradually her most exquisite enjoyment.
|
|
They read, they talked, they sang together; his musical
|
|
talents were considerable; and he read with all the
|
|
sensibility and spirit which Edward had unfortunately wanted.
|
|
|
|
In Mrs. Dashwood's estimation he was as faultless
|
|
as in Marianne's; and Elinor saw nothing to censure in him
|
|
but a propensity, in which he strongly resembled and peculiarly
|
|
delighted her sister, of saying too much what he thought on
|
|
every occasion, without attention to persons or circumstances.
|
|
In hastily forming and giving his opinion of other people,
|
|
in sacrificing general politeness to the enjoyment
|
|
of undivided attention where his heart was engaged,
|
|
and in slighting too easily the forms of worldly propriety,
|
|
he displayed a want of caution which Elinor could not approve,
|
|
in spite of all that he and Marianne could say in its support.
|
|
|
|
Marianne began now to perceive that the desperation
|
|
which had seized her at sixteen and a half, of ever
|
|
seeing a man who could satisfy her ideas of perfection,
|
|
had been rash and unjustifiable. Willoughby was all
|
|
that her fancy had delineated in that unhappy hour
|
|
and in every brighter period, as capable of attaching her;
|
|
and his behaviour declared his wishes to be in that respect
|
|
as earnest, as his abilities were strong.
|
|
|
|
Her mother too, in whose mind not one speculative
|
|
thought of their marriage had been raised, by his prospect
|
|
of riches, was led before the end of a week to hope and
|
|
expect it; and secretly to congratulate herself on having
|
|
gained two such sons-in-law as Edward and Willoughby.
|
|
|
|
Colonel Brandon's partiality for Marianne, which had
|
|
so early been discovered by his friends, now first became
|
|
perceptible to Elinor, when it ceased to be noticed
|
|
by them. Their attention and wit were drawn off to his
|
|
more fortunate rival; and the raillery which the other
|
|
had incurred before any partiality arose, was removed
|
|
when his feelings began really to call for the ridicule
|
|
so justly annexed to sensibility. Elinor was obliged,
|
|
though unwillingly, to believe that the sentiments which
|
|
Mrs. Jennings had assigned him for her own satisfaction,
|
|
were now actually excited by her sister; and that however
|
|
a general resemblance of disposition between the parties
|
|
might forward the affection of Mr. Willoughby, an equally
|
|
striking opposition of character was no hindrance to the
|
|
regard of Colonel Brandon. She saw it with concern;
|
|
for what could a silent man of five and thirty hope,
|
|
when opposed to a very lively one of five and twenty? and as
|
|
she could not even wish him successful, she heartily wished
|
|
him indifferent. She liked him--in spite of his gravity
|
|
and reserve, she beheld in him an object of interest.
|
|
His manners, though serious, were mild; and his reserve
|
|
appeared rather the result of some oppression of spirits
|
|
than of any natural gloominess of temper. Sir John
|
|
had dropped hints of past injuries and disappointments,
|
|
which justified her belief of his being an unfortunate man,
|
|
and she regarded him with respect and compassion.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps she pitied and esteemed him the more
|
|
because he was slighted by Willoughby and Marianne,
|
|
who, prejudiced against him for being neither lively
|
|
nor young, seemed resolved to undervalue his merits.
|
|
|
|
"Brandon is just the kind of man," said Willoughby
|
|
one day, when they were talking of him together,
|
|
"whom every body speaks well of, and nobody cares about;
|
|
whom all are delighted to see, and nobody remembers
|
|
to talk to."
|
|
|
|
"That is exactly what I think of him," cried Marianne.
|
|
|
|
"Do not boast of it, however," said Elinor, "for it
|
|
is injustice in both of you. He is highly esteemed
|
|
by all the family at the park, and I never see him myself
|
|
without taking pains to converse with him."
|
|
|
|
"That he is patronised by YOU," replied Willoughby,
|
|
"is certainly in his favour; but as for the esteem
|
|
of the others, it is a reproach in itself. Who would
|
|
submit to the indignity of being approved by such a woman
|
|
as Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings, that could command
|
|
the indifference of any body else?"
|
|
|
|
"But perhaps the abuse of such people as yourself
|
|
and Marianne will make amends for the regard of Lady
|
|
Middleton and her mother. If their praise is censure,
|
|
your censure may be praise, for they are not more undiscerning,
|
|
than you are prejudiced and unjust."
|
|
|
|
"In defence of your protege you can even be saucy."
|
|
|
|
"My protege, as you call him, is a sensible man;
|
|
and sense will always have attractions for me.
|
|
Yes, Marianne, even in a man between thirty and forty.
|
|
He has seen a great deal of the world; has been abroad,
|
|
has read, and has a thinking mind. I have found him
|
|
capable of giving me much information on various subjects;
|
|
and he has always answered my inquiries with readiness of
|
|
good-breeding and good nature."
|
|
|
|
"That is to say," cried Marianne contemptuously,
|
|
"he has told you, that in the East Indies the climate is hot,
|
|
and the mosquitoes are troublesome."
|
|
|
|
"He WOULD have told me so, I doubt not, had I made
|
|
any such inquiries, but they happened to be points
|
|
on which I had been previously informed."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps," said Willoughby, "his observations may
|
|
have extended to the existence of nabobs, gold mohrs,
|
|
and palanquins."
|
|
|
|
"I may venture to say that HIS observations
|
|
have stretched much further than your candour.
|
|
But why should you dislike him?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not dislike him. I consider him, on the contrary,
|
|
as a very respectable man, who has every body's good word,
|
|
and nobody's notice; who, has more money than he can spend,
|
|
more time than he knows how to employ, and two new coats
|
|
every year."
|
|
|
|
"Add to which," cried Marianne, "that he has
|
|
neither genius, taste, nor spirit. That his understanding
|
|
has no brilliancy, his feelings no ardour, and his voice
|
|
no expression."
|
|
|
|
"You decide on his imperfections so much in the mass,"
|
|
replied Elinor, "and so much on the strength of your
|
|
own imagination, that the commendation I am able to give
|
|
of him is comparatively cold and insipid. I can only
|
|
pronounce him to be a sensible man, well-bred, well-informed,
|
|
of gentle address, and, I believe, possessing an amiable heart."
|
|
|
|
"Miss Dashwood," cried Willoughby, "you are now using
|
|
me unkindly. You are endeavouring to disarm me by reason,
|
|
and to convince me against my will. But it will not do.
|
|
You shall find me as stubborn as you can be artful. I have
|
|
three unanswerable reasons for disliking Colonel Brandon;
|
|
he threatened me with rain when I wanted it to be fine;
|
|
he has found fault with the hanging of my curricle,
|
|
and I cannot persuade him to buy my brown mare. If it
|
|
will be any satisfaction to you, however, to be told,
|
|
that I believe his character to be in other respects
|
|
irreproachable, I am ready to confess it. And in return
|
|
for an acknowledgment, which must give me some pain,
|
|
you cannot deny me the privilege of disliking him as much
|
|
as ever."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 11
|
|
|
|
Little had Mrs. Dashwood or her daughters imagined
|
|
when they first came into Devonshire, that so many
|
|
engagements would arise to occupy their time as shortly
|
|
presented themselves, or that they should have such frequent
|
|
invitations and such constant visitors as to leave them little
|
|
leisure for serious employment. Yet such was the case.
|
|
When Marianne was recovered, the schemes of amusement at home
|
|
and abroad, which Sir John had been previously forming,
|
|
were put into execution. The private balls at the park
|
|
then began; and parties on the water were made and
|
|
accomplished as often as a showery October would allow.
|
|
In every meeting of the kind Willoughby was included;
|
|
and the ease and familiarity which naturally attended
|
|
these parties were exactly calculated to give increasing
|
|
intimacy to his acquaintance with the Dashwoods, to afford
|
|
him opportunity of witnessing the excellencies of Marianne,
|
|
of marking his animated admiration of her, and of receiving,
|
|
in her behaviour to himself, the most pointed assurance
|
|
of her affection.
|
|
|
|
Elinor could not be surprised at their attachment.
|
|
She only wished that it were less openly shewn; and once
|
|
or twice did venture to suggest the propriety of some
|
|
self-command to Marianne. But Marianne abhorred all
|
|
concealment where no real disgrace could attend unreserve;
|
|
and to aim at the restraint of sentiments which were not
|
|
in themselves illaudable, appeared to her not merely
|
|
an unnecessary effort, but a disgraceful subjection
|
|
of reason to common-place and mistaken notions.
|
|
Willoughby thought the same; and their behaviour at
|
|
all times, was an illustration of their opinions.
|
|
|
|
When he was present she had no eyes for any one else.
|
|
Every thing he did, was right. Every thing he said, was clever.
|
|
If their evenings at the park were concluded with cards,
|
|
he cheated himself and all the rest of the party to get
|
|
her a good hand. If dancing formed the amusement
|
|
of the night, they were partners for half the time;
|
|
and when obliged to separate for a couple of dances,
|
|
were careful to stand together and scarcely spoke a word
|
|
to any body else. Such conduct made them of course
|
|
most exceedingly laughed at; but ridicule could not shame,
|
|
and seemed hardly to provoke them.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood entered into all their feelings with
|
|
a warmth which left her no inclination for checking this
|
|
excessive display of them. To her it was but the natural
|
|
consequence of a strong affection in a young and ardent mind.
|
|
|
|
This was the season of happiness to Marianne.
|
|
Her heart was devoted to Willoughby, and the fond attachment
|
|
to Norland, which she brought with her from Sussex,
|
|
was more likely to be softened than she had thought it
|
|
possible before, by the charms which his society bestowed
|
|
on her present home.
|
|
|
|
Elinor's happiness was not so great. Her heart was not
|
|
so much at ease, nor her satisfaction in their amusements
|
|
so pure. They afforded her no companion that could make
|
|
amends for what she had left behind, nor that could teach
|
|
her to think of Norland with less regret than ever.
|
|
Neither Lady Middleton nor Mrs. Jennings could supply
|
|
to her the conversation she missed; although the latter
|
|
was an everlasting talker, and from the first had regarded
|
|
her with a kindness which ensured her a large share of
|
|
her discourse. She had already repeated her own history
|
|
to Elinor three or four times; and had Elinor's memory been
|
|
equal to her means of improvement, she might have known
|
|
very early in their acquaintance all the particulars of
|
|
Mr. Jenning's last illness, and what he said to his wife
|
|
a few minutes before he died. Lady Middleton was more
|
|
agreeable than her mother only in being more silent.
|
|
Elinor needed little observation to perceive that her
|
|
reserve was a mere calmness of manner with which sense
|
|
had nothing to do. Towards her husband and mother she
|
|
was the same as to them; and intimacy was therefore
|
|
neither to be looked for nor desired. She had nothing
|
|
to say one day that she had not said the day before.
|
|
Her insipidity was invariable, for even her spirits were
|
|
always the same; and though she did not oppose the parties
|
|
arranged by her husband, provided every thing were conducted
|
|
in style and her two eldest children attended her,
|
|
she never appeared to receive more enjoyment from them
|
|
than she might have experienced in sitting at home;--
|
|
and so little did her presence add to the pleasure
|
|
of the others, by any share in their conversation,
|
|
that they were sometimes only reminded of her being
|
|
amongst them by her solicitude about her troublesome boys.
|
|
|
|
In Colonel Brandon alone, of all her new acquaintance,
|
|
did Elinor find a person who could in any degree claim the
|
|
respect of abilities, excite the interest of friendship,
|
|
or give pleasure as a companion. Willoughby was out
|
|
of the question. Her admiration and regard, even her
|
|
sisterly regard, was all his own; but he was a lover;
|
|
his attentions were wholly Marianne's, and a far less
|
|
agreeable man might have been more generally pleasing.
|
|
Colonel Brandon, unfortunately for himself, had no such
|
|
encouragement to think only of Marianne, and in conversing
|
|
with Elinor he found the greatest consolation for the
|
|
indifference of her sister.
|
|
|
|
Elinor's compassion for him increased, as she had reason
|
|
to suspect that the misery of disappointed love had already
|
|
been known to him. This suspicion was given by some words
|
|
which accidently dropped from him one evening at the park,
|
|
when they were sitting down together by mutual consent,
|
|
while the others were dancing. His eyes were fixed
|
|
on Marianne, and, after a silence of some minutes,
|
|
he said, with a faint smile, "Your sister, I understand,
|
|
does not approve of second attachments."
|
|
|
|
"No," replied Elinor, "her opinions are all romantic."
|
|
|
|
"Or rather, as I believe, she considers them
|
|
impossible to exist."
|
|
|
|
"I believe she does. But how she contrives it
|
|
without reflecting on the character of her own father,
|
|
who had himself two wives, I know not. A few years
|
|
however will settle her opinions on the reasonable basis
|
|
of common sense and observation; and then they may be
|
|
more easy to define and to justify than they now are,
|
|
by any body but herself."
|
|
|
|
"This will probably be the case," he replied;
|
|
"and yet there is something so amiable in the prejudices
|
|
of a young mind, that one is sorry to see them give way
|
|
to the reception of more general opinions."
|
|
|
|
"I cannot agree with you there," said Elinor.
|
|
"There are inconveniences attending such feelings
|
|
as Marianne's, which all the charms of enthusiasm and
|
|
ignorance of the world cannot atone for. Her systems have
|
|
all the unfortunate tendency of setting propriety at nought;
|
|
and a better acquaintance with the world is what I look
|
|
forward to as her greatest possible advantage."
|
|
|
|
After a short pause he resumed the conversation
|
|
by saying,--
|
|
|
|
"Does your sister make no distinction in her objections
|
|
against a second attachment? or is it equally criminal
|
|
in every body? Are those who have been disappointed
|
|
in their first choice, whether from the inconstancy
|
|
of its object, or the perverseness of circumstances,
|
|
to be equally indifferent during the rest of their lives?"
|
|
|
|
"Upon my word, I am not acquainted with the minutiae
|
|
of her principles. I only know that I never yet heard her
|
|
admit any instance of a second attachment's being pardonable."
|
|
|
|
"This," said he, "cannot hold; but a change,
|
|
a total change of sentiments--No, no, do not desire it;
|
|
for when the romantic refinements of a young mind
|
|
are obliged to give way, how frequently are they
|
|
succeeded by such opinions as are but too common, and too
|
|
dangerous! I speak from experience. I once knew a lady
|
|
who in temper and mind greatly resembled your sister,
|
|
who thought and judged like her, but who from an inforced
|
|
change--from a series of unfortunate circumstances"--
|
|
Here he stopt suddenly; appeared to think that he had said
|
|
too much, and by his countenance gave rise to conjectures,
|
|
which might not otherwise have entered Elinor's head.
|
|
The lady would probably have passed without suspicion,
|
|
had he not convinced Miss Dashwood that what concerned
|
|
her ought not to escape his lips. As it was,
|
|
it required but a slight effort of fancy to connect his
|
|
emotion with the tender recollection of past regard.
|
|
Elinor attempted no more. But Marianne, in her place,
|
|
would not have done so little. The whole story would
|
|
have been speedily formed under her active imagination;
|
|
and every thing established in the most melancholy order
|
|
of disastrous love.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 12
|
|
|
|
As Elinor and Marianne were walking together the
|
|
next morning the latter communicated a piece of news
|
|
to her sister, which in spite of all that she knew
|
|
before of Marianne's imprudence and want of thought,
|
|
surprised her by its extravagant testimony of both.
|
|
Marianne told her, with the greatest delight, that
|
|
Willoughby had given her a horse, one that he had bred
|
|
himself on his estate in Somersetshire, and which was
|
|
exactly calculated to carry a woman. Without considering
|
|
that it was not in her mother's plan to keep any horse,
|
|
that if she were to alter her resolution in favour of
|
|
this gift, she must buy another for the servant, and
|
|
keep a servant to ride it, and after all, build a stable
|
|
to receive them, she had accepted the present without
|
|
hesitation, and told her sister of it in raptures.
|
|
|
|
"He intends to send his groom into Somersetshire
|
|
immediately for it," she added, "and when it arrives we
|
|
will ride every day. You shall share its use with me.
|
|
Imagine to yourself, my dear Elinor, the delight of a gallop
|
|
on some of these downs."
|
|
|
|
Most unwilling was she to awaken from such a dream of
|
|
felicity to comprehend all the unhappy truths which attended
|
|
the affair; and for some time she refused to submit to them.
|
|
As to an additional servant, the expense would be a trifle;
|
|
Mamma she was sure would never object to it; and any horse
|
|
would do for HIM; he might always get one at the park;
|
|
as to a stable, the merest shed would be sufficient.
|
|
Elinor then ventured to doubt the propriety of her receiving
|
|
such a present from a man so little, or at least so lately
|
|
known to her. This was too much.
|
|
|
|
"You are mistaken, Elinor," said she warmly,
|
|
"in supposing I know very little of Willoughby.
|
|
I have not known him long indeed, but I am much better
|
|
acquainted with him, than I am with any other creature
|
|
in the world, except yourself and mama. It is not
|
|
time or opportunity that is to determine intimacy;--
|
|
it is disposition alone. Seven years would be insufficient
|
|
to make some people acquainted with each other, and seven
|
|
days are more than enough for others. I should hold
|
|
myself guilty of greater impropriety in accepting a horse
|
|
from my brother, than from Willoughby. Of John I know
|
|
very little, though we have lived together for years;
|
|
but of Willoughby my judgment has long been formed."
|
|
|
|
Elinor thought it wisest to touch that point no more.
|
|
She knew her sister's temper. Opposition on so tender a
|
|
subject would only attach her the more to her own opinion.
|
|
But by an appeal to her affection for her mother,
|
|
by representing the inconveniences which that indulgent
|
|
mother must draw on herself, if (as would probably be
|
|
the case) she consented to this increase of establishment,
|
|
Marianne was shortly subdued; and she promised not to
|
|
tempt her mother to such imprudent kindness by mentioning
|
|
the offer, and to tell Willoughby when she saw him next,
|
|
that it must be declined.
|
|
|
|
She was faithful to her word; and when Willoughby
|
|
called at the cottage, the same day, Elinor heard her
|
|
express her disappointment to him in a low voice, on
|
|
being obliged to forego the acceptance of his present.
|
|
The reasons for this alteration were at the same time related,
|
|
and they were such as to make further entreaty on his
|
|
side impossible. His concern however was very apparent;
|
|
and after expressing it with earnestness, he added,
|
|
in the same low voice,--"But, Marianne, the horse is
|
|
still yours, though you cannot use it now. I shall keep
|
|
it only till you can claim it. When you leave Barton
|
|
to form your own establishment in a more lasting home,
|
|
Queen Mab shall receive you."
|
|
|
|
This was all overheard by Miss Dashwood; and in the
|
|
whole of the sentence, in his manner of pronouncing it,
|
|
and in his addressing her sister by her christian name alone,
|
|
she instantly saw an intimacy so decided, a meaning
|
|
so direct, as marked a perfect agreement between them.
|
|
>From that moment she doubted not of their being engaged
|
|
to each other; and the belief of it created no other surprise
|
|
than that she, or any of their friends, should be left
|
|
by tempers so frank, to discover it by accident.
|
|
|
|
Margaret related something to her the next day,
|
|
which placed this matter in a still clearer light.
|
|
Willoughby had spent the preceding evening with them,
|
|
and Margaret, by being left some time in the parlour
|
|
with only him and Marianne, had had opportunity
|
|
for observations, which, with a most important face,
|
|
she communicated to her eldest sister, when they were
|
|
next by themselves.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Elinor!" she cried, "I have such a secret to
|
|
tell you about Marianne. I am sure she will be married
|
|
to Mr. Willoughby very soon."
|
|
|
|
"You have said so," replied Elinor, "almost every
|
|
day since they first met on High-church Down; and they
|
|
had not known each other a week, I believe, before you
|
|
were certain that Marianne wore his picture round her neck;
|
|
but it turned out to be only the miniature of our great uncle."
|
|
|
|
"But indeed this is quite another thing. I am sure
|
|
they will be married very soon, for he has got a lock
|
|
of her hair."
|
|
|
|
"Take care, Margaret. It may be only the hair
|
|
of some great uncle of HIS."
|
|
|
|
"But, indeed, Elinor, it is Marianne's. I am almost
|
|
sure it is, for I saw him cut it off. Last night
|
|
after tea, when you and mama went out of the room,
|
|
they were whispering and talking together as fast as
|
|
could be, and he seemed to be begging something of her,
|
|
and presently he took up her scissors and cut off a long
|
|
lock of her hair, for it was all tumbled down her back;
|
|
and he kissed it, and folded it up in a piece of white paper;
|
|
and put it into his pocket-book."
|
|
|
|
For such particulars, stated on such authority,
|
|
Elinor could not withhold her credit; nor was she disposed
|
|
to it, for the circumstance was in perfect unison with
|
|
what she had heard and seen herself.
|
|
|
|
Margaret's sagacity was not always displayed in a
|
|
way so satisfactory to her sister. When Mrs. Jennings
|
|
attacked her one evening at the park, to give the name
|
|
of the young man who was Elinor's particular favourite,
|
|
which had been long a matter of great curiosity to her,
|
|
Margaret answered by looking at her sister, and saying,
|
|
"I must not tell, may I, Elinor?"
|
|
|
|
This of course made every body laugh; and Elinor
|
|
tried to laugh too. But the effort was painful.
|
|
She was convinced that Margaret had fixed on a person
|
|
whose name she could not bear with composure to become
|
|
a standing joke with Mrs. Jennings.
|
|
|
|
Marianne felt for her most sincerely; but she did
|
|
more harm than good to the cause, by turning very red
|
|
and saying in an angry manner to Margaret,
|
|
|
|
"Remember that whatever your conjectures may be,
|
|
you have no right to repeat them."
|
|
|
|
"I never had any conjectures about it," replied Margaret;
|
|
"it was you who told me of it yourself."
|
|
|
|
This increased the mirth of the company, and Margaret
|
|
was eagerly pressed to say something more.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! pray, Miss Margaret, let us know all about it,"
|
|
said Mrs. Jennings. "What is the gentleman's name?"
|
|
|
|
"I must not tell, ma'am. But I know very well what it is;
|
|
and I know where he is too."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes, we can guess where he is; at his own house
|
|
at Norland to be sure. He is the curate of the parish
|
|
I dare say."
|
|
|
|
"No, THAT he is not. He is of no profession at all."
|
|
|
|
"Margaret," said Marianne with great warmth,
|
|
"you know that all this is an invention of your own,
|
|
and that there is no such person in existence."
|
|
|
|
"Well, then, he is lately dead, Marianne, for I
|
|
am sure there was such a man once, and his name begins
|
|
with an F."
|
|
|
|
Most grateful did Elinor feel to Lady Middleton
|
|
for observing, at this moment, "that it rained very hard,"
|
|
though she believed the interruption to proceed less from
|
|
any attention to her, than from her ladyship's great dislike
|
|
of all such inelegant subjects of raillery as delighted
|
|
her husband and mother. The idea however started by her,
|
|
was immediately pursued by Colonel Brandon, who was
|
|
on every occasion mindful of the feelings of others;
|
|
and much was said on the subject of rain by both of them.
|
|
Willoughby opened the piano-forte, and asked Marianne
|
|
to sit down to it; and thus amidst the various endeavours
|
|
of different people to quit the topic, it fell to the ground.
|
|
But not so easily did Elinor recover from the alarm into
|
|
which it had thrown her.
|
|
|
|
A party was formed this evening for going on the
|
|
following day to see a very fine place about twelve miles
|
|
from Barton, belonging to a brother-in-law of Colonel Brandon,
|
|
without whose interest it could not be seen, as the proprietor,
|
|
who was then abroad, had left strict orders on that head.
|
|
The grounds were declared to be highly beautiful,
|
|
and Sir John, who was particularly warm in their praise,
|
|
might be allowed to be a tolerable judge, for he had
|
|
formed parties to visit them, at least, twice every summer
|
|
for the last ten years. They contained a noble piece
|
|
of water; a sail on which was to a form a great part of
|
|
the morning's amusement; cold provisions were to be taken,
|
|
open carriages only to be employed, and every thing
|
|
conducted in the usual style of a complete party of pleasure.
|
|
|
|
To some few of the company it appeared rather
|
|
a bold undertaking, considering the time of year,
|
|
and that it had rained every day for the last fortnight;--
|
|
and Mrs. Dashwood, who had already a cold, was persuaded
|
|
by Elinor to stay at home.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 13
|
|
|
|
Their intended excursion to Whitwell turned out
|
|
very different from what Elinor had expected. She was
|
|
prepared to be wet through, fatigued, and frightened;
|
|
but the event was still more unfortunate, for they did
|
|
not go at all.
|
|
|
|
By ten o'clock the whole party was assembled at
|
|
the park, where they were to breakfast. The morning
|
|
was rather favourable, though it had rained all night,
|
|
as the clouds were then dispersing across the sky,
|
|
and the sun frequently appeared. They were all in high
|
|
spirits and good humour, eager to be happy, and determined
|
|
to submit to the greatest inconveniences and hardships
|
|
rather than be otherwise.
|
|
|
|
While they were at breakfast the letters were brought in.
|
|
Among the rest there was one for Colonel Brandon;--he
|
|
took it, looked at the direction, changed colour,
|
|
and immediately left the room.
|
|
|
|
"What is the matter with Brandon?" said Sir John.
|
|
|
|
Nobody could tell.
|
|
|
|
"I hope he has had no bad news," said Lady Middleton.
|
|
"It must be something extraordinary that could make Colonel
|
|
Brandon leave my breakfast table so suddenly."
|
|
|
|
In about five minutes he returned.
|
|
|
|
"No bad news, Colonel, I hope;" said Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
as soon as he entered the room.
|
|
|
|
"None at all, ma'am, I thank you."
|
|
|
|
"Was it from Avignon? I hope it is not to say
|
|
that your sister is worse."
|
|
|
|
"No, ma'am. It came from town, and is merely
|
|
a letter of business."
|
|
|
|
"But how came the hand to discompose you so much,
|
|
if it was only a letter of business? Come, come,
|
|
this won't do, Colonel; so let us hear the truth of it."
|
|
|
|
"My dear madam," said Lady Middleton, "recollect what
|
|
you are saying."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps it is to tell you that your cousin Fanny
|
|
is married?" said Mrs. Jennings, without attending
|
|
to her daughter's reproof.
|
|
|
|
"No, indeed, it is not."
|
|
|
|
"Well, then, I know who it is from, Colonel. And I
|
|
hope she is well."
|
|
|
|
"Whom do you mean, ma'am?" said he, colouring a little.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! you know who I mean."
|
|
|
|
"I am particularly sorry, ma'am," said he,
|
|
addressing Lady Middleton, "that I should receive this
|
|
letter today, for it is on business which requires
|
|
my immediate attendance in town."
|
|
|
|
"In town!" cried Mrs. Jennings. "What can you
|
|
have to do in town at this time of year?"
|
|
|
|
"My own loss is great," be continued, "in being obliged
|
|
to leave so agreeable a party; but I am the more concerned,
|
|
as I fear my presence is necessary to gain your admittance
|
|
at Whitwell."
|
|
|
|
What a blow upon them all was this!
|
|
|
|
"But if you write a note to the housekeeper, Mr. Brandon,"
|
|
said Marianne, eagerly, "will it not be sufficient?"
|
|
|
|
He shook his head.
|
|
|
|
"We must go," said Sir John.--"It shall not be put
|
|
off when we are so near it. You cannot go to town till
|
|
tomorrow, Brandon, that is all."
|
|
|
|
"I wish it could be so easily settled. But it
|
|
is not in my power to delay my journey for one day!"
|
|
|
|
"If you would but let us know what your business is,"
|
|
said Mrs. Jennings, "we might see whether it could be put
|
|
off or not."
|
|
|
|
"You would not be six hours later," said Willoughby,
|
|
"if you were to defer your journey till our return."
|
|
|
|
"I cannot afford to lose ONE hour."--
|
|
|
|
Elinor then heard Willoughby say, in a low voice to Marianne,
|
|
"There are some people who cannot bear a party of pleasure.
|
|
Brandon is one of them. He was afraid of catching cold
|
|
I dare say, and invented this trick for getting out of it.
|
|
I would lay fifty guineas the letter was of his own writing."
|
|
|
|
"I have no doubt of it," replied Marianne.
|
|
|
|
"There is no persuading you to change your mind,
|
|
Brandon, I know of old," said Sir John, "when once you
|
|
are determined on anything. But, however, I hope you
|
|
will think better of it. Consider, here are the two Miss
|
|
Careys come over from Newton, the three Miss Dashwoods
|
|
walked up from the cottage, and Mr. Willoughby got up
|
|
two hours before his usual time, on purpose to go to Whitwell."
|
|
|
|
Colonel Brandon again repeated his sorrow at being
|
|
the cause of disappointing the party; but at the same
|
|
time declared it to be unavoidable.
|
|
|
|
"Well, then, when will you come back again?"
|
|
|
|
"I hope we shall see you at Barton," added her ladyship,
|
|
"as soon as you can conveniently leave town; and we must
|
|
put off the party to Whitwell till you return."
|
|
|
|
"You are very obliging. But it is so uncertain,
|
|
when I may have it in my power to return, that I dare
|
|
not engage for it at all."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! he must and shall come back," cried Sir John.
|
|
"If he is not here by the end of the week, I shall go
|
|
after him."
|
|
|
|
"Ay, so do, Sir John," cried Mrs. Jennings, "and then
|
|
perhaps you may find out what his business is."
|
|
|
|
"I do not want to pry into other men's concerns.
|
|
I suppose it is something he is ashamed of."
|
|
|
|
Colonel Brandon's horses were announced.
|
|
|
|
"You do not go to town on horseback, do you?"
|
|
added Sir John.
|
|
|
|
"No. Only to Honiton. I shall then go post."
|
|
|
|
"Well, as you are resolved to go, I wish you
|
|
a good journey. But you had better change your mind."
|
|
|
|
"I assure you it is not in my power."
|
|
|
|
He then took leave of the whole party.
|
|
|
|
"Is there no chance of my seeing you and your sisters
|
|
in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?"
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid, none at all."
|
|
|
|
"Then I must bid you farewell for a longer time
|
|
than I should wish to do."
|
|
|
|
To Marianne, he merely bowed and said nothing.
|
|
|
|
"Come Colonel," said Mrs. Jennings, "before you go,
|
|
do let us know what you are going about."
|
|
|
|
He wished her a good morning, and, attended by Sir John,
|
|
left the room.
|
|
|
|
The complaints and lamentations which politeness
|
|
had hitherto restrained, now burst forth universally;
|
|
and they all agreed again and again how provoking it was
|
|
to be so disappointed.
|
|
|
|
"I can guess what his business is, however,"
|
|
said Mrs. Jennings exultingly.
|
|
|
|
"Can you, ma'am?" said almost every body.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; it is about Miss Williams, I am sure."
|
|
|
|
"And who is Miss Williams?" asked Marianne.
|
|
|
|
"What! do not you know who Miss Williams is? I am
|
|
sure you must have heard of her before. She is a relation
|
|
of the Colonel's, my dear; a very near relation. We will
|
|
not say how near, for fear of shocking the young ladies."
|
|
Then, lowering her voice a little, she said to Elinor,
|
|
"She is his natural daughter."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed!"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes; and as like him as she can stare.
|
|
I dare say the Colonel will leave her all his fortune."
|
|
|
|
When Sir John returned, he joined most heartily
|
|
in the general regret on so unfortunate an event;
|
|
concluding however by observing, that as they were
|
|
all got together, they must do something by way of
|
|
being happy; and after some consultation it was agreed,
|
|
that although happiness could only be enjoyed at Whitwell,
|
|
they might procure a tolerable composure of mind by driving
|
|
about the country. The carriages were then ordered;
|
|
Willoughby's was first, and Marianne never looked
|
|
happier than when she got into it. He drove through
|
|
the park very fast, and they were soon out of sight;
|
|
and nothing more of them was seen till their return,
|
|
which did not happen till after the return of all the rest.
|
|
They both seemed delighted with their drive; but said
|
|
only in general terms that they had kept in the lanes,
|
|
while the others went on the downs.
|
|
|
|
It was settled that there should be a dance in the evening,
|
|
and that every body should be extremely merry all day long.
|
|
Some more of the Careys came to dinner, and they had the
|
|
pleasure of sitting down nearly twenty to table, which Sir
|
|
John observed with great contentment. Willoughby took
|
|
his usual place between the two elder Miss Dashwoods.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings sat on Elinor's right hand; and they had not
|
|
been long seated, before she leant behind her and Willoughby,
|
|
and said to Marianne, loud enough for them both to hear,
|
|
"I have found you out in spite of all your tricks.
|
|
I know where you spent the morning."
|
|
|
|
Marianne coloured, and replied very hastily,
|
|
"Where, pray?"--
|
|
|
|
"Did not you know," said Willoughby, "that we had
|
|
been out in my curricle?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes, Mr. Impudence, I know that very well,
|
|
and I was determined to find out WHERE you had been to.--
|
|
I hope you like your house, Miss Marianne. It is a very
|
|
large one, I know; and when I come to see you, I hope you
|
|
will have new-furnished it, for it wanted it very much
|
|
when I was there six years ago."
|
|
|
|
Marianne turned away in great confusion.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings laughed heartily; and Elinor found that in her
|
|
resolution to know where they had been, she had actually
|
|
made her own woman enquire of Mr. Willoughby's groom;
|
|
and that she had by that method been informed that they
|
|
had gone to Allenham, and spent a considerable time there
|
|
in walking about the garden and going all over the house.
|
|
|
|
Elinor could hardly believe this to be true,
|
|
as it seemed very unlikely that Willoughby should propose,
|
|
or Marianne consent, to enter the house while Mrs. Smith was
|
|
in it, with whom Marianne had not the smallest acquaintance.
|
|
|
|
As soon as they left the dining-room, Elinor enquired
|
|
of her about it; and great was her surprise when she
|
|
found that every circumstance related by Mrs. Jennings
|
|
was perfectly true. Marianne was quite angry with her
|
|
for doubting it.
|
|
|
|
"Why should you imagine, Elinor, that we did not
|
|
go there, or that we did not see the house? Is not it
|
|
what you have often wished to do yourself?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, Marianne, but I would not go while Mrs. Smith
|
|
was there, and with no other companion than Mr. Willoughby."
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Willoughby however is the only person who can
|
|
have a right to shew that house; and as he went in an open
|
|
carriage, it was impossible to have any other companion.
|
|
I never spent a pleasanter morning in my life."
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid," replied Elinor, "that the pleasantness
|
|
of an employment does not always evince its propriety."
|
|
|
|
"On the contrary, nothing can be a stronger proof
|
|
of it, Elinor; for if there had been any real impropriety
|
|
in what I did, I should have been sensible of it at
|
|
the time, for we always know when we are acting wrong,
|
|
and with such a conviction I could have had no pleasure."
|
|
|
|
"But, my dear Marianne, as it has already exposed you
|
|
to some very impertinent remarks, do you not now begin
|
|
to doubt the discretion of your own conduct?"
|
|
|
|
"If the impertinent remarks of Mrs. Jennings are
|
|
to be the proof of impropriety in conduct, we are all
|
|
offending every moment of our lives. I value not her
|
|
censure any more than I should do her commendation.
|
|
I am not sensible of having done anything wrong in walking
|
|
over Mrs. Smith's grounds, or in seeing her house.
|
|
They will one day be Mr. Willoughby's, and--"
|
|
|
|
"If they were one day to be your own, Marianne,
|
|
you would not be justified in what you have done."
|
|
|
|
She blushed at this hint; but it was even visibly
|
|
gratifying to her; and after a ten minutes' interval of
|
|
earnest thought, she came to her sister again, and said
|
|
with great good humour, "Perhaps, Elinor, it WAS rather
|
|
ill-judged in me to go to Allenham; but Mr. Willoughby wanted
|
|
particularly to shew me the place; and it is a charming house,
|
|
I assure you.--There is one remarkably pretty sitting room
|
|
up stairs; of a nice comfortable size for constant use,
|
|
and with modern furniture it would be delightful.
|
|
It is a corner room, and has windows on two sides.
|
|
On one side you look across the bowling-green, behind
|
|
the house, to a beautiful hanging wood, and on the other you
|
|
have a view of the church and village, and, beyond them,
|
|
of those fine bold hills that we have so often admired.
|
|
I did not see it to advantage, for nothing could be
|
|
more forlorn than the furniture,--but if it were newly
|
|
fitted up--a couple of hundred pounds, Willoughby says,
|
|
would make it one of the pleasantest summer-rooms
|
|
in England."
|
|
|
|
Could Elinor have listened to her without interruption
|
|
from the others, she would have described every room
|
|
in the house with equal delight.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 14
|
|
|
|
The sudden termination of Colonel Brandon's visit
|
|
at the park, with his steadiness in concealing its cause,
|
|
filled the mind, and raised the wonder of Mrs. Jennings
|
|
for two or three days; she was a great wonderer, as every
|
|
one must be who takes a very lively interest in all the
|
|
comings and goings of all their acquaintance. She wondered,
|
|
with little intermission what could be the reason of it;
|
|
was sure there must be some bad news, and thought over
|
|
every kind of distress that could have befallen him,
|
|
with a fixed determination that he should not escape
|
|
them all.
|
|
|
|
"Something very melancholy must be the matter,
|
|
I am sure," said she. "I could see it in his face.
|
|
Poor man! I am afraid his circumstances may be bad.
|
|
The estate at Delaford was never reckoned more than two thousand
|
|
a year, and his brother left everything sadly involved.
|
|
I do think he must have been sent for about money matters,
|
|
for what else can it be? I wonder whether it is so.
|
|
I would give anything to know the truth of it. Perhaps it
|
|
is about Miss Williams and, by the bye, I dare say it is,
|
|
because he looked so conscious when I mentioned her.
|
|
May be she is ill in town; nothing in the world more likely,
|
|
for I have a notion she is always rather sickly.
|
|
I would lay any wager it is about Miss Williams.
|
|
It is not so very likely he should be distressed in
|
|
his circumstances NOW, for he is a very prudent man,
|
|
and to be sure must have cleared the estate by this time.
|
|
I wonder what it can be! May be his sister is worse
|
|
at Avignon, and has sent for him over. His setting off
|
|
in such a hurry seems very like it. Well, I wish him out
|
|
of all his trouble with all my heart, and a good wife into
|
|
the bargain."
|
|
|
|
So wondered, so talked Mrs. Jennings. Her opinion
|
|
varying with every fresh conjecture, and all seeming
|
|
equally probable as they arose. Elinor, though she felt
|
|
really interested in the welfare of Colonel Brandon,
|
|
could not bestow all the wonder on his going so suddenly
|
|
away, which Mrs. Jennings was desirous of her feeling;
|
|
for besides that the circumstance did not in her opinion
|
|
justify such lasting amazement or variety of speculation,
|
|
her wonder was otherwise disposed of. It was engossed
|
|
by the extraordinary silence of her sister and Willoughby
|
|
on the subject, which they must know to be peculiarly
|
|
interesting to them all. As this silence continued,
|
|
every day made it appear more strange and more incompatible
|
|
with the disposition of both. Why they should not openly
|
|
acknowledge to her mother and herself, what their constant
|
|
behaviour to each other declared to have taken place,
|
|
Elinor could not imagine.
|
|
|
|
She could easily conceive that marriage might not
|
|
be immediately in their power; for though Willoughby
|
|
was independent, there was no reason to believe him rich.
|
|
His estate had been rated by Sir John at about six or seven
|
|
hundred a year; but he lived at an expense to which that income
|
|
could hardly be equal, and he had himself often complained
|
|
of his poverty. But for this strange kind of secrecy
|
|
maintained by them relative to their engagement, which
|
|
in fact concealed nothing at all, she could not account;
|
|
and it was so wholly contradictory to their general
|
|
opinions and practice, that a doubt sometimes entered
|
|
her mind of their being really engaged, and this doubt
|
|
was enough to prevent her making any inquiry of Marianne.
|
|
|
|
Nothing could be more expressive of attachment
|
|
to them all, than Willoughby's behaviour. To Marianne
|
|
it had all the distinguishing tenderness which a lover's
|
|
heart could give, and to the rest of the family it was the
|
|
affectionate attention of a son and a brother. The cottage
|
|
seemed to be considered and loved by him as his home;
|
|
many more of his hours were spent there than at Allenham;
|
|
and if no general engagement collected them at the park,
|
|
the exercise which called him out in the morning was
|
|
almost certain of ending there, where the rest of the day
|
|
was spent by himself at the side of Marianne, and by his
|
|
favourite pointer at her feet.
|
|
|
|
One evening in particular, about a week after
|
|
Colonel Brandon left the country, his heart seemed
|
|
more than usually open to every feeling of attachment
|
|
to the objects around him; and on Mrs. Dashwood's
|
|
happening to mention her design of improving the cottage
|
|
in the spring, he warmly opposed every alteration
|
|
of a place which affection had established as perfect with him.
|
|
|
|
"What!" he exclaimed--"Improve this dear cottage!
|
|
No. THAT I will never consent to. Not a stone must
|
|
be added to its walls, not an inch to its size,
|
|
if my feelings are regarded."
|
|
|
|
"Do not be alarmed," said Miss Dashwood,
|
|
"nothing of the kind will be done; for my mother
|
|
will never have money enough to attempt it."
|
|
|
|
"I am heartily glad of it", he cried. "May she
|
|
always be poor, if she can employ her riches no better."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, Willoughby. But you may be assured that I
|
|
would not sacrifice one sentiment of local attachment
|
|
of yours, or of any one whom I loved, for all the improvements
|
|
in the world. Depend upon it that whatever unemployed
|
|
sum may remain, when I make up my accounts in the spring,
|
|
I would even rather lay it uselessly by than dispose
|
|
of it in a manner so painful to you. But are you really
|
|
so attached to this place as to see no defect in it?"
|
|
|
|
"I am," said he. "To me it is faultless. Nay, more,
|
|
I consider it as the only form of building in which happiness
|
|
is attainable, and were I rich enough I would instantly pull
|
|
Combe down, and build it up again in the exact plan of this cottage."
|
|
|
|
"With dark narrow stairs and a kitchen that smokes,
|
|
I suppose," said Elinor.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," cried he in the same eager tone, "with all
|
|
and every thing belonging to it;--in no one convenience
|
|
or INconvenience about it, should the least variation
|
|
be perceptible. Then, and then only, under such a roof, I
|
|
might perhaps be as happy at Combe as I have been at Barton."
|
|
|
|
"I flatter myself," replied Elinor, "that even under
|
|
the disadvantage of better rooms and a broader staircase,
|
|
you will hereafter find your own house as faultless as you
|
|
now do this."
|
|
|
|
"There certainly are circumstances," said Willoughby,
|
|
"which might greatly endear it to me; but this place will
|
|
always have one claim of my affection, which no other can
|
|
possibly share."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood looked with pleasure at Marianne,
|
|
whose fine eyes were fixed so expressively on Willoughby,
|
|
as plainly denoted how well she understood him.
|
|
|
|
"How often did I wish," added he, "when I was at
|
|
Allenham this time twelvemonth, that Barton cottage were
|
|
inhabited! I never passed within view of it without admiring
|
|
its situation, and grieving that no one should live in it.
|
|
How little did I then think that the very first news
|
|
I should hear from Mrs. Smith, when I next came into
|
|
the country, would be that Barton cottage was taken: and I
|
|
felt an immediate satisfaction and interest in the event,
|
|
which nothing but a kind of prescience of what happiness I
|
|
should experience from it, can account for. Must it not have
|
|
been so, Marianne?" speaking to her in a lowered voice.
|
|
Then continuing his former tone, he said, "And yet this
|
|
house you would spoil, Mrs. Dashwood? You would rob it
|
|
of its simplicity by imaginary improvement! and this dear
|
|
parlour in which our acquaintance first began, and in which
|
|
so many happy hours have been since spent by us together,
|
|
you would degrade to the condition of a common entrance,
|
|
and every body would be eager to pass through the room
|
|
which has hitherto contained within itself more real
|
|
accommodation and comfort than any other apartment of
|
|
the handsomest dimensions in the world could possibly afford."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood again assured him that no alteration
|
|
of the kind should be attempted.
|
|
|
|
"You are a good woman," he warmly replied.
|
|
"Your promise makes me easy. Extend it a little farther,
|
|
and it will make me happy. Tell me that not only your
|
|
house will remain the same, but that I shall ever find
|
|
you and yours as unchanged as your dwelling; and that you
|
|
will always consider me with the kindness which has made
|
|
everything belonging to you so dear to me."
|
|
|
|
The promise was readily given, and Willoughby's
|
|
behaviour during the whole of the evening declared
|
|
at once his affection and happiness.
|
|
|
|
"Shall we see you tomorrow to dinner?" said Mrs. Dashwood,
|
|
when he was leaving them. "I do not ask you to come in
|
|
the morning, for we must walk to the park, to call on Lady Middleton."
|
|
|
|
He engaged to be with them by four o'clock.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 15
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood's visit to Lady Middleton took place
|
|
the next day, and two of her daughters went with her;
|
|
but Marianne excused herself from being of the party,
|
|
under some trifling pretext of employment; and her mother,
|
|
who concluded that a promise had been made by Willoughby
|
|
the night before of calling on her while they were absent,
|
|
was perfectly satisfied with her remaining at home.
|
|
|
|
On their return from the park they found Willoughby's
|
|
curricle and servant in waiting at the cottage,
|
|
and Mrs. Dashwood was convinced that her conjecture
|
|
had been just. So far it was all as she had foreseen;
|
|
but on entering the house she beheld what no foresight
|
|
had taught her to expect. They were no sooner in the
|
|
passage than Marianne came hastily out of the parlour
|
|
apparently in violent affliction, with her handkerchief
|
|
at her eyes; and without noticing them ran up stairs.
|
|
Surprised and alarmed they proceeded directly into the room
|
|
she had just quitted, where they found only Willoughby,
|
|
who was leaning against the mantel-piece with his back
|
|
towards them. He turned round on their coming in,
|
|
and his countenance shewed that he strongly partook
|
|
of the emotion which over-powered Marianne.
|
|
|
|
"Is anything the matter with her?" cried Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
as she entered--"is she ill?"
|
|
|
|
"I hope not," he replied, trying to look cheerful;
|
|
and with a forced smile presently added, "It is I who may
|
|
rather expect to be ill--for I am now suffering under a
|
|
very heavy disappointment!"
|
|
|
|
"Disappointment?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, for I am unable to keep my engagement with you.
|
|
Mrs. Smith has this morning exercised the privilege
|
|
of riches upon a poor dependent cousin, by sending me on
|
|
business to London. I have just received my dispatches,
|
|
and taken my farewell of Allenham; and by way of exhilaration
|
|
I am now come to take my farewell of you."
|
|
|
|
"To London!--and are you going this morning?"
|
|
|
|
"Almost this moment."
|
|
|
|
"This is very unfortunate. But Mrs. Smith must
|
|
be obliged;--and her business will not detain you from
|
|
us long I hope."
|
|
|
|
He coloured as he replied, "You are very kind, but I
|
|
have no idea of returning into Devonshire immediately.
|
|
My visits to Mrs. Smith are never repeated within
|
|
the twelvemonth."
|
|
|
|
"And is Mrs. Smith your only friend? Is Allenham the only
|
|
house in the neighbourhood to which you will be welcome?
|
|
For shame, Willoughby, can you wait for an invitation here?"
|
|
|
|
His colour increased; and with his eyes fixed
|
|
on the ground he only replied, "You are too good."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood looked at Elinor with surprise.
|
|
Elinor felt equal amazement. For a few moments every one
|
|
was silent. Mrs. Dashwood first spoke.
|
|
|
|
"I have only to add, my dear Willoughby, that at
|
|
Barton cottage you will always be welcome; for I will not
|
|
press you to return here immediately, because you only
|
|
can judge how far THAT might be pleasing to Mrs. Smith;
|
|
and on this head I shall be no more disposed to question
|
|
your judgment than to doubt your inclination."
|
|
|
|
"My engagements at present," replied Willoughby,
|
|
confusedly, "are of such a nature--that--I dare not flatter myself"--
|
|
|
|
He stopt. Mrs. Dashwood was too much astonished
|
|
to speak, and another pause succeeded. This was broken
|
|
by Willoughby, who said with a faint smile, "It is folly
|
|
to linger in this manner. I will not torment myself
|
|
any longer by remaining among friends whose society
|
|
it is impossible for me now to enjoy."
|
|
|
|
He then hastily took leave of them all and left
|
|
the room. They saw him step into his carriage,
|
|
and in a minute it was out of sight.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood felt too much for speech, and instantly
|
|
quitted the parlour to give way in solitude to the concern
|
|
and alarm which this sudden departure occasioned.
|
|
|
|
Elinor's uneasiness was at least equal to her mother's.
|
|
She thought of what had just passed with anxiety and distrust.
|
|
Willoughby's behaviour in taking leave of them, his embarrassment,
|
|
and affectation of cheerfulness, and, above all, his unwillingness
|
|
to accept her mother's invitation, a backwardness so unlike a lover,
|
|
so unlike himself, greatly disturbed her. One moment she feared
|
|
that no serious design had ever been formed on his side; and the
|
|
next that some unfortunate quarrel had taken place between him and
|
|
her sister;--the distress in which Marianne had quitted the room
|
|
was such as a serious quarrel could most reasonably account for,
|
|
though when she considered what Marianne's love for him was,
|
|
a quarrel seemed almost impossible.
|
|
|
|
But whatever might be the particulars of their separation,
|
|
her sister's affliction was indubitable; and she thought
|
|
with the tenderest compassion of that violent sorrow
|
|
which Marianne was in all probability not merely giving
|
|
way to as a relief, but feeding and encouraging as a duty.
|
|
|
|
In about half an hour her mother returned, and though
|
|
her eyes were red, her countenance was not uncheerful.
|
|
|
|
"Our dear Willoughby is now some miles from Barton, Elinor,"
|
|
said she, as she sat down to work, "and with how heavy a heart
|
|
does he travel?"
|
|
|
|
"It is all very strange. So suddenly to be gone! It
|
|
seems but the work of a moment. And last night he was
|
|
with us so happy, so cheerful, so affectionate? And now,
|
|
after only ten minutes notice--Gone too without intending
|
|
to return!--Something more than what be owned to us must
|
|
have happened. He did not speak, he did not behave
|
|
like himself. YOU must have seen the difference as well as I.
|
|
What can it be? Can they have quarrelled? Why else should he
|
|
have shewn such unwillingness to accept your invitation here?"--
|
|
|
|
"It was not inclination that he wanted, Elinor; I could
|
|
plainly see THAT. He had not the power of accepting it.
|
|
I have thought it all over I assure you, and I can
|
|
perfectly account for every thing that at first seemed
|
|
strange to me as well as to you."
|
|
|
|
"Can you, indeed!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes. I have explained it to myself in the most
|
|
satisfactory way;--but you, Elinor, who love to doubt
|
|
where you can--it will not satisfy YOU, I know; but you
|
|
shall not talk ME out of my trust in it. I am persuaded
|
|
that Mrs. Smith suspects his regard for Marianne,
|
|
disapproves of it, (perhaps because she has other views
|
|
for him,) and on that account is eager to get him away;--
|
|
and that the business which she sends him off to transact
|
|
is invented as an excuse to dismiss him. This is what I
|
|
believe to have happened. He is, moreover, aware that she
|
|
DOES disapprove the connection, he dares not therefore
|
|
at present confess to her his engagement with Marianne,
|
|
and he feels himself obliged, from his dependent situation,
|
|
to give into her schemes, and absent himself from
|
|
Devonshire for a while. You will tell me, I know,
|
|
that this may or may NOT have happened; but I will listen
|
|
to no cavil, unless you can point out any other method
|
|
of understanding the affair as satisfactory at this.
|
|
And now, Elinor, what have you to say?"
|
|
|
|
"Nothing, for you have anticipated my answer."
|
|
|
|
"Then you would have told me, that it might or might not
|
|
have happened. Oh, Elinor, how incomprehensible are your
|
|
feelings! You had rather take evil upon credit than good.
|
|
You had rather look out for misery for Marianne, and guilt
|
|
for poor Willoughby, than an apology for the latter.
|
|
You are resolved to think him blameable, because he took
|
|
leave of us with less affection than his usual behaviour
|
|
has shewn. And is no allowance to be made for inadvertence,
|
|
or for spirits depressed by recent disappointment? Are
|
|
no probabilities to be accepted, merely because they
|
|
are not certainties? Is nothing due to the man whom we
|
|
have all such reason to love, and no reason in the world
|
|
to think ill of? To the possibility of motives unanswerable
|
|
in themselves, though unavoidably secret for a while? And,
|
|
after all, what is it you suspect him of?"
|
|
|
|
"I can hardly tell myself. But suspicion of
|
|
something unpleasant is the inevitable consequence
|
|
of such an alteration as we just witnessed in him.
|
|
There is great truth, however, in what you have now urged
|
|
of the allowances which ought to be made for him, and it
|
|
is my wish to be candid in my judgment of every body.
|
|
Willoughby may undoubtedly have very sufficient
|
|
reasons for his conduct, and I will hope that he has.
|
|
But it would have been more like Willoughby to acknowledge
|
|
them at once. Secrecy may be advisable; but still I
|
|
cannot help wondering at its being practiced by him."
|
|
|
|
"Do not blame him, however, for departing from
|
|
his character, where the deviation is necessary.
|
|
But you really do admit the justice of what I have said
|
|
in his defence?--I am happy--and he is acquitted."
|
|
|
|
"Not entirely. It may be proper to conceal their
|
|
engagement (if they ARE engaged) from Mrs. Smith--
|
|
and if that is the case, it must be highly expedient
|
|
for Willoughby to be but little in Devonshire at present.
|
|
But this is no excuse for their concealing it from us."
|
|
|
|
"Concealing it from us! my dear child, do you accuse
|
|
Willoughby and Marianne of concealment? This is strange
|
|
indeed, when your eyes have been reproaching them every day
|
|
for incautiousness."
|
|
|
|
"I want no proof of their affection," said Elinor;
|
|
"but of their engagement I do."
|
|
|
|
"I am perfectly satisfied of both."
|
|
|
|
"Yet not a syllable has been said to you on the
|
|
subject, by either of them."
|
|
|
|
"I have not wanted syllables where actions have
|
|
spoken so plainly. Has not his behaviour to Marianne
|
|
and to all of us, for at least the last fortnight,
|
|
declared that he loved and considered her as his future wife,
|
|
and that he felt for us the attachment of the nearest
|
|
relation? Have we not perfectly understood each other?
|
|
Has not my consent been daily asked by his looks, his manner,
|
|
his attentive and affectionate respect? My Elinor,
|
|
is it possible to doubt their engagement? How could
|
|
such a thought occur to you? How is it to be supposed
|
|
that Willoughby, persuaded as he must be of your
|
|
sister's love, should leave her, and leave her perhaps
|
|
for months, without telling her of his affection;--that
|
|
they should part without a mutual exchange of confidence?"
|
|
|
|
"I confess," replied Elinor, "that every circumstance
|
|
except ONE is in favour of their engagement;
|
|
but that ONE is the total silence of both on the subject,
|
|
and with me it almost outweighs every other."
|
|
|
|
"How strange this is! You must think wretchedly indeed
|
|
of Willoughby, if, after all that has openly passed between them,
|
|
you can doubt the nature of the terms on which they are together.
|
|
Has he been acting a part in his behaviour to your sister
|
|
all this time? Do you suppose him really indifferent to her?"
|
|
|
|
"No, I cannot think that. He must and does love her
|
|
I am sure."
|
|
|
|
"But with a strange kind of tenderness, if he can
|
|
leave her with such indifference, such carelessness
|
|
of the future, as you attribute to him."
|
|
|
|
"You must remember, my dear mother, that I have never
|
|
considered this matter as certain. I have had my doubts,
|
|
I confess; but they are fainter than they were, and they
|
|
may soon be entirely done away. If we find they correspond,
|
|
every fear of mine will be removed."
|
|
|
|
"A mighty concession indeed! If you were to see
|
|
them at the altar, you would suppose they were going to
|
|
be married. Ungracious girl! But I require no such proof.
|
|
Nothing in my opinion has ever passed to justify doubt;
|
|
no secrecy has been attempted; all has been uniformly open
|
|
and unreserved. You cannot doubt your sister's wishes.
|
|
It must be Willoughby therefore whom you suspect. But why?
|
|
Is he not a man of honour and feeling? Has there been any
|
|
inconsistency on his side to create alarm? can he be deceitful?"
|
|
|
|
"I hope not, I believe not," cried Elinor.
|
|
"I love Willoughby, sincerely love him; and suspicion of his
|
|
integrity cannot be more painful to yourself than to me.
|
|
It has been involuntary, and I will not encourage it.
|
|
I was startled, I confess, by the alteration in his
|
|
manners this morning;--he did not speak like himself,
|
|
and did not return your kindness with any cordiality.
|
|
But all this may be explained by such a situation of his
|
|
affairs as you have supposed. He had just parted from
|
|
my sister, had seen her leave him in the greatest affliction;
|
|
and if he felt obliged, from a fear of offending Mrs. Smith,
|
|
to resist the temptation of returning here soon, and yet
|
|
aware that by declining your invitation, by saying
|
|
that he was going away for some time, he should seem
|
|
to act an ungenerous, a suspicious part by our family,
|
|
be might well be embarrassed and disturbed. In such a case,
|
|
a plain and open avowal of his difficulties would have been
|
|
more to his honour I think, as well as more consistent
|
|
with his general character;--but I will not raise objections
|
|
against any one's conduct on so illiberal a foundation,
|
|
as a difference in judgment from myself, or a deviation from
|
|
what I may think right and consistent."
|
|
|
|
"You speak very properly. Willoughby certainly does
|
|
not deserve to be suspected. Though WE have not known
|
|
him long, he is no stranger in this part of the world;
|
|
and who has ever spoken to his disadvantage? Had he been
|
|
in a situation to act independently and marry immediately,
|
|
it might have been odd that he should leave us without
|
|
acknowledging everything to me at once: but this is not the case.
|
|
It is an engagement in some respects not prosperously begun,
|
|
for their marriage must be at a very uncertain distance;
|
|
and even secrecy, as far as it can be observed, may now
|
|
be very advisable."
|
|
|
|
They were interrupted by the entrance of Margaret;
|
|
and Elinor was then at liberty to think over the representations
|
|
of her mother, to acknowledge the probability of many,
|
|
and hope for the justice of all.
|
|
|
|
They saw nothing of Marianne till dinner time,
|
|
when she entered the room and took her place at the table
|
|
without saying a word. Her eyes were red and swollen;
|
|
and it seemed as if her tears were even then restrained
|
|
with difficulty. She avoided the looks of them all,
|
|
could neither eat nor speak, and after some time, on her
|
|
mother's silently pressing her hand with tender compassion,
|
|
her small degree of fortitude was quite overcome, she burst
|
|
into tears and left the room.
|
|
|
|
This violent oppression of spirits continued the
|
|
whole evening. She was without any power, because she
|
|
was without any desire of command over herself.
|
|
The slightest mention of anything relative to Willoughby
|
|
overpowered her in an instant; and though her family
|
|
were most anxiously attentive to her comfort, it was
|
|
impossible for them, if they spoke at all, to keep clear
|
|
of every subject which her feelings connected with him.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 16
|
|
|
|
Marianne would have thought herself very inexcusable
|
|
had she been able to sleep at all the first night
|
|
after parting from Willoughby. She would have been
|
|
ashamed to look her family in the face the next morning,
|
|
had she not risen from her bed in more need of repose
|
|
than when she lay down in it. But the feelings which
|
|
made such composure a disgrace, left her in no danger
|
|
of incurring it. She was awake the whole night, and she
|
|
wept the greatest part of it. She got up with a headache,
|
|
was unable to talk, and unwilling to take any nourishment;
|
|
giving pain every moment to her mother and sisters,
|
|
and forbidding all attempt at consolation from either.
|
|
Her sensibility was potent enough!
|
|
|
|
When breakfast was over she walked out by herself,
|
|
and wandered about the village of Allenham, indulging the
|
|
recollection of past enjoyment and crying over the present
|
|
reverse for the chief of the morning.
|
|
|
|
The evening passed off in the equal indulgence of feeling.
|
|
She played over every favourite song that she had been used
|
|
to play to Willoughby, every air in which their voices
|
|
had been oftenest joined, and sat at the instrument gazing
|
|
on every line of music that he had written out for her,
|
|
till her heart was so heavy that no farther sadness
|
|
could be gained; and this nourishment of grief was every
|
|
day applied. She spent whole hours at the pianoforte
|
|
alternately singing and crying; her voice often totally
|
|
suspended by her tears. In books too, as well as in music,
|
|
she courted the misery which a contrast between the past
|
|
and present was certain of giving. She read nothing
|
|
but what they had been used to read together.
|
|
|
|
Such violence of affliction indeed could not be supported
|
|
for ever; it sunk within a few days into a calmer melancholy;
|
|
but these employments, to which she daily recurred,
|
|
her solitary walks and silent meditations, still produced
|
|
occasional effusions of sorrow as lively as ever.
|
|
|
|
No letter from Willoughby came; and none seemed expected
|
|
by Marianne. Her mother was surprised, and Elinor again
|
|
became uneasy. But Mrs. Dashwood could find explanations
|
|
whenever she wanted them, which at least satisfied herself.
|
|
|
|
"Remember, Elinor," said she, "how very often Sir John
|
|
fetches our letters himself from the post, and carries them
|
|
to it. We have already agreed that secrecy may be necessary,
|
|
and we must acknowledge that it could not be maintained if
|
|
their correspondence were to pass through Sir John's hands."
|
|
|
|
Elinor could not deny the truth of this, and she tried
|
|
to find in it a motive sufficient for their silence.
|
|
But there was one method so direct, so simple, and in
|
|
her opinion so eligible of knowing the real state
|
|
of the affair, and of instantly removing all mystery,
|
|
that she could not help suggesting it to her mother.
|
|
|
|
"Why do you not ask Marianne at once," said she,
|
|
"whether she is or she is not engaged to Willoughby? From you,
|
|
her mother, and so kind, so indulgent a mother, the question
|
|
could not give offence. It would be the natural result
|
|
of your affection for her. She used to be all unreserve,
|
|
and to you more especially."
|
|
|
|
"I would not ask such a question for the world.
|
|
Supposing it possible that they are not engaged,
|
|
what distress would not such an enquiry inflict! At any
|
|
rate it would be most ungenerous. I should never deserve
|
|
her confidence again, after forcing from her a confession
|
|
of what is meant at present to be unacknowledged to any one.
|
|
I know Marianne's heart: I know that she dearly loves me,
|
|
and that I shall not be the last to whom the affair is made known,
|
|
when circumstances make the revealment of it eligible.
|
|
I would not attempt to force the confidence of any one;
|
|
of a child much less; because a sense of duty would prevent
|
|
the denial which her wishes might direct."
|
|
|
|
Elinor thought this generosity overstrained,
|
|
considering her sister's youth, and urged the matter farther,
|
|
but in vain; common sense, common care, common prudence,
|
|
were all sunk in Mrs. Dashwood's romantic delicacy.
|
|
|
|
It was several days before Willoughby's name
|
|
was mentioned before Marianne by any of her family;
|
|
Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, indeed, were not so nice;
|
|
their witticisms added pain to many a painful hour;--
|
|
but one evening, Mrs. Dashwood, accidentally taking up a
|
|
volume of Shakespeare, exclaimed,
|
|
|
|
"We have never finished Hamlet, Marianne; our dear
|
|
Willoughby went away before we could get through it.
|
|
We will put it by, that when he comes again...But it may
|
|
be months, perhaps, before THAT happens."
|
|
|
|
"Months!" cried Marianne, with strong surprise.
|
|
"No--nor many weeks."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood was sorry for what she had said;
|
|
but it gave Elinor pleasure, as it produced a reply
|
|
from Marianne so expressive of confidence in Willoughby
|
|
and knowledge of his intentions.
|
|
|
|
One morning, about a week after his leaving the country,
|
|
Marianne was prevailed on to join her sisters in their
|
|
usual walk, instead of wandering away by herself.
|
|
Hitherto she had carefully avoided every companion in
|
|
her rambles. If her sisters intended to walk on the downs,
|
|
she directly stole away towards the lanes; if they talked
|
|
of the valley, she was as speedy in climbing the hills,
|
|
and could never be found when the others set off.
|
|
But at length she was secured by the exertions of Elinor,
|
|
who greatly disapproved such continual seclusion. They walked
|
|
along the road through the valley, and chiefly in silence,
|
|
for Marianne's MIND could not be controlled, and Elinor,
|
|
satisfied with gaining one point, would not then attempt more.
|
|
Beyond the entrance of the valley, where the country,
|
|
though still rich, was less wild and more open, a long
|
|
stretch of the road which they had travelled on first coming
|
|
to Barton, lay before them; and on reaching that point,
|
|
they stopped to look around them, and examine a prospect
|
|
which formed the distance of their view from the cottage,
|
|
from a spot which they had never happened to reach in any
|
|
of their walks before.
|
|
|
|
Amongst the objects in the scene, they soon discovered
|
|
an animated one; it was a man on horseback riding towards them.
|
|
In a few minutes they could distinguish him to be a gentleman;
|
|
and in a moment afterwards Marianne rapturously exclaimed,
|
|
|
|
"It is he; it is indeed;--I know it is!"--and was
|
|
hastening to meet him, when Elinor cried out,
|
|
|
|
"Indeed, Marianne, I think you are mistaken. It is
|
|
not Willoughby. The person is not tall enough for him,
|
|
and has not his air."
|
|
|
|
"He has, he has," cried Marianne, "I am sure he has.
|
|
His air, his coat, his horse. I knew how soon he would come."
|
|
|
|
She walked eagerly on as she spoke; and Elinor,
|
|
to screen Marianne from particularity, as she felt almost
|
|
certain of its not being Willoughby, quickened her
|
|
pace and kept up with her. They were soon within
|
|
thirty yards of the gentleman. Marianne looked again;
|
|
her heart sunk within her; and abruptly turning round,
|
|
she was hurrying back, when the voices of both her sisters
|
|
were raised to detain her; a third, almost as well known
|
|
as Willoughby's, joined them in begging her to stop,
|
|
and she turned round with surprise to see and welcome
|
|
Edward Ferrars.
|
|
|
|
He was the only person in the world who could
|
|
at that moment be forgiven for not being Willoughby;
|
|
the only one who could have gained a smile from her;
|
|
but she dispersed her tears to smile on HIM, and in her
|
|
sister's happiness forgot for a time her own disappointment.
|
|
|
|
He dismounted, and giving his horse to his servant,
|
|
walked back with them to Barton, whither he was purposely
|
|
coming to visit them.
|
|
|
|
He was welcomed by them all with great cordiality,
|
|
but especially by Marianne, who showed more warmth of
|
|
regard in her reception of him than even Elinor herself.
|
|
To Marianne, indeed, the meeting between Edward and her sister
|
|
was but a continuation of that unaccountable coldness which she
|
|
had often observed at Norland in their mutual behaviour.
|
|
On Edward's side, more particularly, there was a deficiency
|
|
of all that a lover ought to look and say on such an occasion.
|
|
He was confused, seemed scarcely sensible of pleasure
|
|
in seeing them, looked neither rapturous nor gay,
|
|
said little but what was forced from him by questions,
|
|
and distinguished Elinor by no mark of affection.
|
|
Marianne saw and listened with increasing surprise.
|
|
She began almost to feel a dislike of Edward; and it ended,
|
|
as every feeling must end with her, by carrying back her
|
|
thoughts to Willoughby, whose manners formed a contrast
|
|
sufficiently striking to those of his brother elect.
|
|
|
|
After a short silence which succeeded the first
|
|
surprise and enquiries of meeting, Marianne asked
|
|
Edward if he came directly from London. No, he had
|
|
been in Devonshire a fortnight.
|
|
|
|
"A fortnight!" she repeated, surprised at his being
|
|
so long in the same county with Elinor without seeing
|
|
her before.
|
|
|
|
He looked rather distressed as he added, that he
|
|
had been staying with some friends near Plymouth.
|
|
|
|
"Have you been lately in Sussex?" said Elinor.
|
|
|
|
"I was at Norland about a month ago."
|
|
|
|
"And how does dear, dear Norland look?" cried Marianne.
|
|
|
|
"Dear, dear Norland," said Elinor, "probably looks
|
|
much as it always does at this time of the year.
|
|
The woods and walks thickly covered with dead leaves."
|
|
|
|
"Oh," cried Marianne, "with what transporting sensation
|
|
have I formerly seen them fall! How have I delighted,
|
|
as I walked, to see them driven in showers about me
|
|
by the wind! What feelings have they, the season, the air
|
|
altogether inspired! Now there is no one to regard them.
|
|
They are seen only as a nuisance, swept hastily off,
|
|
and driven as much as possible from the sight."
|
|
|
|
"It is not every one," said Elinor, "who has your
|
|
passion for dead leaves."
|
|
|
|
"No; my feelings are not often shared, not often
|
|
understood. But SOMETIMES they are."--As she said this,
|
|
she sunk into a reverie for a few moments;--but rousing
|
|
herself again, "Now, Edward," said she, calling his attention
|
|
to the prospect, "here is Barton valley. Look up to it,
|
|
and be tranquil if you can. Look at those hills!
|
|
Did you ever see their equals? To the left is Barton park,
|
|
amongst those woods and plantations. You may see the end
|
|
of the house. And there, beneath that farthest hill,
|
|
which rises with such grandeur, is our cottage."
|
|
|
|
"It is a beautiful country," he replied; "but these
|
|
bottoms must be dirty in winter."
|
|
|
|
"How can you think of dirt, with such objects before you?"
|
|
|
|
"Because," replied he, smiling, "among the rest of the
|
|
objects before me, I see a very dirty lane."
|
|
|
|
"How strange!" said Marianne to herself as she walked on.
|
|
|
|
"Have you an agreeable neighbourhood here? Are the
|
|
Middletons pleasant people?"
|
|
|
|
"No, not all," answered Marianne; "we could not
|
|
be more unfortunately situated."
|
|
|
|
"Marianne," cried her sister, "how can you say so? How can
|
|
you be so unjust? They are a very respectable family, Mr. Ferrars;
|
|
and towards us have behaved in the friendliest manner. Have you
|
|
forgot, Marianne, how many pleasant days we have owed to them?"
|
|
|
|
"No," said Marianne, in a low voice, "nor how many
|
|
painful moments."
|
|
|
|
Elinor took no notice of this; and directing
|
|
her attention to their visitor, endeavoured to support
|
|
something like discourse with him, by talking of their
|
|
present residence, its conveniences, &c. extorting from him
|
|
occasional questions and remarks. His coldness and reserve
|
|
mortified her severely; she was vexed and half angry;
|
|
but resolving to regulate her behaviour to him by the past
|
|
rather than the present, she avoided every appearance
|
|
of resentment or displeasure, and treated him as she
|
|
thought he ought to be treated from the family connection.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 17
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood was surprised only for a moment at
|
|
seeing him; for his coming to Barton was, in her opinion,
|
|
of all things the most natural. Her joy and expression
|
|
of regard long outlived her wonder. He received the kindest
|
|
welcome from her; and shyness, coldness, reserve could not
|
|
stand against such a reception. They had begun to fail him
|
|
before he entered the house, and they were quite overcome
|
|
by the captivating manners of Mrs. Dashwood. Indeed a man
|
|
could not very well be in love with either of her daughters,
|
|
without extending the passion to her; and Elinor had the
|
|
satisfaction of seeing him soon become more like himself.
|
|
His affections seemed to reanimate towards them all,
|
|
and his interest in their welfare again became perceptible.
|
|
He was not in spirits, however; he praised their house,
|
|
admired its prospect, was attentive, and kind; but still
|
|
he was not in spirits. The whole family perceived it,
|
|
and Mrs. Dashwood, attributing it to some want of liberality
|
|
in his mother, sat down to table indignant against all
|
|
selfish parents.
|
|
|
|
"What are Mrs. Ferrars's views for you at present, Edward?"
|
|
said she, when dinner was over and they had drawn round
|
|
the fire; "are you still to be a great orator in spite of yourself?"
|
|
|
|
"No. I hope my mother is now convinced that I have
|
|
no more talents than inclination for a public life!"
|
|
|
|
"But how is your fame to be established? for famous you
|
|
must be to satisfy all your family; and with no inclination
|
|
for expense, no affection for strangers, no profession,
|
|
and no assurance, you may find it a difficult matter."
|
|
|
|
"I shall not attempt it. I have no wish to be
|
|
distinguished; and have every reason to hope I never shall.
|
|
Thank Heaven! I cannot be forced into genius and eloquence."
|
|
|
|
"You have no ambition, I well know. Your wishes
|
|
are all moderate."
|
|
|
|
"As moderate as those of the rest of the world,
|
|
I believe. I wish as well as every body else to be
|
|
perfectly happy; but, like every body else it must be
|
|
in my own way. Greatness will not make me so."
|
|
|
|
"Strange that it would!" cried Marianne. "What have
|
|
wealth or grandeur to do with happiness?"
|
|
|
|
"Grandeur has but little," said Elinor, "but wealth
|
|
has much to do with it."
|
|
|
|
"Elinor, for shame!" said Marianne, "money can only
|
|
give happiness where there is nothing else to give it.
|
|
Beyond a competence, it can afford no real satisfaction,
|
|
as far as mere self is concerned."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps," said Elinor, smiling, "we may come
|
|
to the same point. YOUR competence and MY wealth
|
|
are very much alike, I dare say; and without them,
|
|
as the world goes now, we shall both agree that every
|
|
kind of external comfort must be wanting. Your ideas
|
|
are only more noble than mine. Come, what is your competence?"
|
|
|
|
"About eighteen hundred or two thousand a year;
|
|
not more than THAT."
|
|
|
|
Elinor laughed. "TWO thousand a year! ONE is my
|
|
wealth! I guessed how it would end."
|
|
|
|
"And yet two thousand a-year is a very moderate income,"
|
|
said Marianne. "A family cannot well be maintained on
|
|
a smaller. I am sure I am not extravagant in my demands.
|
|
A proper establishment of servants, a carriage, perhaps two,
|
|
and hunters, cannot be supported on less."
|
|
|
|
Elinor smiled again, to hear her sister describing
|
|
so accurately their future expenses at Combe Magna.
|
|
|
|
"Hunters!" repeated Edward--"but why must you have
|
|
hunters? Every body does not hunt."
|
|
|
|
Marianne coloured as she replied, "But most people do."
|
|
|
|
"I wish," said Margaret, striking out a novel thought,
|
|
"that somebody would give us all a large fortune apiece!"
|
|
|
|
"Oh that they would!" cried Marianne, her eyes
|
|
sparkling with animation, and her cheeks glowing
|
|
with the delight of such imaginary happiness.
|
|
|
|
"We are all unanimous in that wish, I suppose,"
|
|
said Elinor, "in spite of the insufficiency of wealth."
|
|
|
|
"Oh dear!" cried Margaret, "how happy I should be!
|
|
I wonder what I should do with it!"
|
|
|
|
Marianne looked as if she had no doubt on that point.
|
|
|
|
"I should be puzzled to spend so large a fortune myself,"
|
|
said Mrs. Dashwood, "if my children were all to be rich
|
|
my help."
|
|
|
|
"You must begin your improvements on this house,"
|
|
observed Elinor, "and your difficulties will soon vanish."
|
|
|
|
"What magnificent orders would travel from this family
|
|
to London," said Edward, "in such an event! What a happy
|
|
day for booksellers, music-sellers, and print-shops! You,
|
|
Miss Dashwood, would give a general commission for every
|
|
new print of merit to be sent you--and as for Marianne,
|
|
I know her greatness of soul, there would not be music enough
|
|
in London to content her. And books!--Thomson, Cowper,
|
|
Scott--she would buy them all over and over again: she
|
|
would buy up every copy, I believe, to prevent their
|
|
falling into unworthy hands; and she would have every
|
|
book that tells her how to admire an old twisted tree.
|
|
Should not you, Marianne? Forgive me, if I am very saucy.
|
|
But I was willing to shew you that I had not forgot our
|
|
old disputes."
|
|
|
|
"I love to be reminded of the past, Edward--whether it
|
|
be melancholy or gay, I love to recall it--and you
|
|
will never offend me by talking of former times.
|
|
You are very right in supposing how my money would be
|
|
spent--some of it, at least--my loose cash would certainly
|
|
be employed in improving my collection of music and books."
|
|
|
|
"And the bulk of your fortune would be laid out
|
|
in annuities on the authors or their heirs."
|
|
|
|
"No, Edward, I should have something else to do
|
|
with it."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps, then, you would bestow it as a reward on that
|
|
person who wrote the ablest defence of your favourite maxim,
|
|
that no one can ever be in love more than once in their
|
|
life--your opinion on that point is unchanged, I presume?"
|
|
|
|
"Undoubtedly. At my time of life opinions are tolerably fixed.
|
|
It is not likely that I should now see or hear any thing to change them."
|
|
|
|
"Marianne is as steadfast as ever, you see," said Elinor,
|
|
"she is not at all altered."
|
|
|
|
"She is only grown a little more grave than she was."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, Edward," said Marianne, "you need not reproach me.
|
|
You are not very gay yourself."
|
|
|
|
"Why should you think so!" replied he, with a sigh.
|
|
"But gaiety never was a part of MY character."
|
|
|
|
"Nor do I think it a part of Marianne's," said Elinor;
|
|
"I should hardly call her a lively girl--she is very earnest,
|
|
very eager in all she does--sometimes talks a great deal
|
|
and always with animation--but she is not often really merry."
|
|
|
|
"I believe you are right," he replied, "and yet I
|
|
have always set her down as a lively girl."
|
|
|
|
"I have frequently detected myself in such kind of mistakes,"
|
|
said Elinor, "in a total misapprehension of character in some
|
|
point or other: fancying people so much more gay or grave,
|
|
or ingenious or stupid than they really are, and I can
|
|
hardly tell why or in what the deception originated.
|
|
Sometimes one is guided by what they say of themselves,
|
|
and very frequently by what other people say of them,
|
|
without giving oneself time to deliberate and judge."
|
|
|
|
"But I thought it was right, Elinor," said Marianne,
|
|
"to be guided wholly by the opinion of other people.
|
|
I thought our judgments were given us merely to be subservient
|
|
to those of neighbours. This has always been your doctrine,
|
|
I am sure."
|
|
|
|
"No, Marianne, never. My doctrine has never aimed
|
|
at the subjection of the understanding. All I have
|
|
ever attempted to influence has been the behaviour.
|
|
You must not confound my meaning. I am guilty, I confess,
|
|
of having often wished you to treat our acquaintance
|
|
in general with greater attention; but when have I advised
|
|
you to adopt their sentiments or to conform to their
|
|
judgment in serious matters?"
|
|
|
|
"You have not been able to bring your sister over to your
|
|
plan of general civility," said Edward to Elinor, "Do you gain
|
|
no ground?"
|
|
|
|
"Quite the contrary," replied Elinor,
|
|
looking expressively at Marianne.
|
|
|
|
"My judgment," he returned, "is all on your side
|
|
of the question; but I am afraid my practice is much
|
|
more on your sister's. I never wish to offend, but I
|
|
am so foolishly shy, that I often seem negligent,
|
|
when I am only kept back by my natural awkwardness.
|
|
I have frequently thought that I must have been intended
|
|
by nature to be fond of low company, I am so little at
|
|
my ease among strangers of gentility!"
|
|
|
|
"Marianne has not shyness to excuse any inattention
|
|
of hers," said Elinor.
|
|
|
|
"She knows her own worth too well for false shame,"
|
|
replied Edward. "Shyness is only the effect of a sense
|
|
of inferiority in some way or other. If I could persuade
|
|
myself that my manners were perfectly easy and graceful,
|
|
I should not be shy."
|
|
|
|
"But you would still be reserved," said Marianne,
|
|
"and that is worse."
|
|
|
|
Edward started--"Reserved! Am I reserved, Marianne?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, very."
|
|
|
|
"I do not understand you," replied he, colouring.
|
|
"Reserved!--how, in what manner? What am I to tell you?
|
|
What can you suppose?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor looked surprised at his emotion; but trying
|
|
to laugh off the subject, she said to him, "Do not you
|
|
know my sister well enough to understand what she means?
|
|
Do not you know she calls every one reserved who does not
|
|
talk as fast, and admire what she admires as rapturously
|
|
as herself?"
|
|
|
|
Edward made no answer. His gravity and thoughtfulness
|
|
returned on him in their fullest extent--and he sat
|
|
for some time silent and dull.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 18
|
|
|
|
Elinor saw, with great uneasiness the low spirits
|
|
of her friend. His visit afforded her but a very
|
|
partial satisfaction, while his own enjoyment in it
|
|
appeared so imperfect. It was evident that he was unhappy;
|
|
she wished it were equally evident that he still
|
|
distinguished her by the same affection which once
|
|
she had felt no doubt of inspiring; but hitherto the
|
|
continuance of his preference seemed very uncertain;
|
|
and the reservedness of his manner towards her contradicted
|
|
one moment what a more animated look had intimated the preceding one.
|
|
|
|
He joined her and Marianne in the breakfast-room
|
|
the next morning before the others were down; and Marianne,
|
|
who was always eager to promote their happiness as far
|
|
as she could, soon left them to themselves. But before she
|
|
was half way upstairs she heard the parlour door open, and,
|
|
turning round, was astonished to see Edward himself come out.
|
|
|
|
"I am going into the village to see my horses,"
|
|
said be, "as you are not yet ready for breakfast; I shall
|
|
be back again presently."
|
|
|
|
***
|
|
|
|
Edward returned to them with fresh admiration
|
|
of the surrounding country; in his walk to the village,
|
|
he had seen many parts of the valley to advantage;
|
|
and the village itself, in a much higher situation than
|
|
the cottage, afforded a general view of the whole, which had
|
|
exceedingly pleased him. This was a subject which ensured
|
|
Marianne's attention, and she was beginning to describe
|
|
her own admiration of these scenes, and to question him more
|
|
minutely on the objects that had particularly struck him,
|
|
when Edward interrupted her by saying, "You must not
|
|
enquire too far, Marianne--remember I have no knowledge
|
|
in the picturesque, and I shall offend you by my ignorance
|
|
and want of taste if we come to particulars. I shall call
|
|
hills steep, which ought to be bold; surfaces strange
|
|
and uncouth, which ought to be irregular and rugged;
|
|
and distant objects out of sight, which ought only to be
|
|
indistinct through the soft medium of a hazy atmosphere.
|
|
You must be satisfied with such admiration as I can
|
|
honestly give. I call it a very fine country--the
|
|
hills are steep, the woods seem full of fine timber,
|
|
and the valley looks comfortable and snug--with rich
|
|
meadows and several neat farm houses scattered here
|
|
and there. It exactly answers my idea of a fine country,
|
|
because it unites beauty with utility--and I dare say it
|
|
is a picturesque one too, because you admire it; I can
|
|
easily believe it to be full of rocks and promontories,
|
|
grey moss and brush wood, but these are all lost on me.
|
|
I know nothing of the picturesque."
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid it is but too true," said Marianne;
|
|
"but why should you boast of it?"
|
|
|
|
"I suspect," said Elinor, "that to avoid one kind
|
|
of affectation, Edward here falls into another. Because he
|
|
believes many people pretend to more admiration of the beauties
|
|
of nature than they really feel, and is disgusted with
|
|
such pretensions, he affects greater indifference and less
|
|
discrimination in viewing them himself than he possesses.
|
|
He is fastidious and will have an affectation of his own."
|
|
|
|
"It is very true," said Marianne, "that admiration
|
|
of landscape scenery is become a mere jargon.
|
|
Every body pretends to feel and tries to describe with
|
|
the taste and elegance of him who first defined what
|
|
picturesque beauty was. I detest jargon of every kind,
|
|
and sometimes I have kept my feelings to myself,
|
|
because I could find no language to describe them
|
|
in but what was worn and hackneyed out of all sense and meaning."
|
|
|
|
"I am convinced," said Edward, "that you really feel
|
|
all the delight in a fine prospect which you profess
|
|
to feel. But, in return, your sister must allow me
|
|
to feel no more than I profess. I like a fine prospect,
|
|
but not on picturesque principles. I do not like crooked,
|
|
twisted, blasted trees. I admire them much more if they
|
|
are tall, straight, and flourishing. I do not like ruined,
|
|
tattered cottages. I am not fond of nettles or thistles,
|
|
or heath blossoms. I have more pleasure in a snug
|
|
farm-house than a watch-tower--and a troop of tidy,
|
|
happy villages please me better than the finest banditti
|
|
in the world."
|
|
|
|
Marianne looked with amazement at Edward,
|
|
with compassion at her sister. Elinor only laughed.
|
|
|
|
The subject was continued no farther; and Marianne
|
|
remained thoughtfully silent, till a new object suddenly
|
|
engaged her attention. She was sitting by Edward, and
|
|
in taking his tea from Mrs. Dashwood, his hand passed
|
|
so directly before her, as to make a ring, with a plait
|
|
of hair in the centre, very conspicuous on one of his fingers.
|
|
|
|
"I never saw you wear a ring before, Edward," she cried.
|
|
"Is that Fanny's hair? I remember her promising to give
|
|
you some. But I should have thought her hair had been darker."
|
|
|
|
Marianne spoke inconsiderately what she really felt--
|
|
but when she saw how much she had pained Edward, her own
|
|
vexation at her want of thought could not be surpassed
|
|
by his. He coloured very deeply, and giving a momentary
|
|
glance at Elinor, replied, "Yes; it is my sister's hair.
|
|
The setting always casts a different shade on it,
|
|
you know."
|
|
|
|
Elinor had met his eye, and looked conscious likewise.
|
|
That the hair was her own, she instantaneously felt as
|
|
well satisfied as Marianne; the only difference in their
|
|
conclusions was, that what Marianne considered as a free
|
|
gift from her sister, Elinor was conscious must have been
|
|
procured by some theft or contrivance unknown to herself.
|
|
She was not in a humour, however, to regard it as an affront,
|
|
and affecting to take no notice of what passed,
|
|
by instantly talking of something else, she internally
|
|
resolved henceforward to catch every opportunity of eyeing
|
|
the hair and of satisfying herself, beyond all doubt,
|
|
that it was exactly the shade of her own.
|
|
|
|
Edward's embarrassment lasted some time, and it
|
|
ended in an absence of mind still more settled.
|
|
He was particularly grave the whole morning.
|
|
Marianne severely censured herself for what she had said;
|
|
but her own forgiveness might have been more speedy,
|
|
had she known how little offence it had given her sister.
|
|
|
|
Before the middle of the day, they were visited by Sir
|
|
John and Mrs. Jennings, who, having heard of the arrival
|
|
of a gentleman at the cottage, came to take a survey
|
|
of the guest. With the assistance of his mother-in-law,
|
|
Sir John was not long in discovering that the name of
|
|
Ferrars began with an F. and this prepared a future mine
|
|
of raillery against the devoted Elinor, which nothing but
|
|
the newness of their acquaintance with Edward could have
|
|
prevented from being immediately sprung. But, as it was,
|
|
she only learned, from some very significant looks, how far
|
|
their penetration, founded on Margaret's instructions, extended.
|
|
|
|
Sir John never came to the Dashwoods without either
|
|
inviting them to dine at the park the next day, or to drink
|
|
tea with them that evening. On the present occasion,
|
|
for the better entertainment of their visitor, towards
|
|
whose amusement he felt himself bound to contribute,
|
|
he wished to engage them for both.
|
|
|
|
"You MUST drink tea with us to night," said he,
|
|
"for we shall be quite alone--and tomorrow you must
|
|
absolutely dine with us, for we shall be a large party."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings enforced the necessity. "And who knows
|
|
but you may raise a dance," said she. "And that will
|
|
tempt YOU, Miss Marianne."
|
|
|
|
"A dance!" cried Marianne. "Impossible! Who is to dance?"
|
|
|
|
"Who! why yourselves, and the Careys, and Whitakers
|
|
to be sure.--What! you thought nobody could dance
|
|
because a certain person that shall be nameless is gone!"
|
|
|
|
"I wish with all my soul," cried Sir John,
|
|
"that Willoughby were among us again."
|
|
|
|
This, and Marianne's blushing, gave new suspicions
|
|
to Edward. "And who is Willoughby?" said he, in a low voice,
|
|
to Miss Dashwood, by whom he was sitting.
|
|
|
|
She gave him a brief reply. Marianne's countenance
|
|
was more communicative. Edward saw enough to comprehend,
|
|
not only the meaning of others, but such of Marianne's
|
|
expressions as had puzzled him before; and when their
|
|
visitors left them, he went immediately round her, and said,
|
|
in a whisper, "I have been guessing. Shall I tell you
|
|
my guess?"
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean?"
|
|
|
|
"Shall I tell you."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly."
|
|
|
|
"Well then; I guess that Mr. Willoughby hunts."
|
|
|
|
Marianne was surprised and confused, yet she could
|
|
not help smiling at the quiet archness of his manner,
|
|
and after a moment's silence, said,
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Edward! How can you?--But the time will come
|
|
I hope...I am sure you will like him."
|
|
|
|
"I do not doubt it," replied he, rather astonished
|
|
at her earnestness and warmth; for had he not imagined it
|
|
to be a joke for the good of her acquaintance in general,
|
|
founded only on a something or a nothing between Mr. Willoughby
|
|
and herself, he would not have ventured to mention it.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 19
|
|
|
|
Edward remained a week at the cottage; he was earnestly
|
|
pressed by Mrs. Dashwood to stay longer; but, as if he
|
|
were bent only on self-mortification, he seemed resolved
|
|
to be gone when his enjoyment among his friends was at
|
|
the height. His spirits, during the last two or three days,
|
|
though still very unequal, were greatly improved--he grew
|
|
more and more partial to the house and environs--never
|
|
spoke of going away without a sigh--declared his time
|
|
to be wholly disengaged--even doubted to what place he
|
|
should go when he left them--but still, go he must.
|
|
Never had any week passed so quickly--he could hardly
|
|
believe it to be gone. He said so repeatedly; other things
|
|
he said too, which marked the turn of his feelings and gave
|
|
the lie to his actions. He had no pleasure at Norland;
|
|
he detested being in town; but either to Norland or London,
|
|
he must go. He valued their kindness beyond any thing,
|
|
and his greatest happiness was in being with them.
|
|
Yet, he must leave them at the end of a week, in spite
|
|
of their wishes and his own, and without any restraint
|
|
on his time.
|
|
|
|
Elinor placed all that was astonishing in this
|
|
way of acting to his mother's account; and it was
|
|
happy for her that he had a mother whose character
|
|
was so imperfectly known to her, as to be the general
|
|
excuse for every thing strange on the part of her son.
|
|
Disappointed, however, and vexed as she was, and sometimes
|
|
displeased with his uncertain behaviour to herself,
|
|
she was very well disposed on the whole to regard his actions
|
|
with all the candid allowances and generous qualifications,
|
|
which had been rather more painfully extorted from her,
|
|
for Willoughby's service, by her mother. His want of spirits,
|
|
of openness, and of consistency, were most usually
|
|
attributed to his want of independence, and his better
|
|
knowledge of Mrs. Ferrars's disposition and designs.
|
|
The shortness of his visit, the steadiness of his purpose
|
|
in leaving them, originated in the same fettered inclination,
|
|
the same inevitable necessity of temporizing with his mother.
|
|
The old well-established grievance of duty against will,
|
|
parent against child, was the cause of all. She would have
|
|
been glad to know when these difficulties were to cease,
|
|
this opposition was to yield,--when Mrs. Ferrars would
|
|
be reformed, and her son be at liberty to be happy.
|
|
But from such vain wishes she was forced to turn for comfort
|
|
to the renewal of her confidence in Edward's affection,
|
|
to the remembrance of every mark of regard in look or word
|
|
which fell from him while at Barton, and above all
|
|
to that flattering proof of it which he constantly wore
|
|
round his finger.
|
|
|
|
"I think, Edward," said Mrs. Dashwood, as they were
|
|
at breakfast the last morning, "you would be a happier man
|
|
if you had any profession to engage your time and give
|
|
an interest to your plans and actions. Some inconvenience
|
|
to your friends, indeed, might result from it--you
|
|
would not be able to give them so much of your time.
|
|
But (with a smile) you would be materially benefited
|
|
in one particular at least--you would know where to go
|
|
when you left them."
|
|
|
|
"I do assure you," he replied, "that I have long
|
|
thought on this point, as you think now. It has been,
|
|
and is, and probably will always be a heavy misfortune
|
|
to me, that I have had no necessary business to engage me,
|
|
no profession to give me employment, or afford me any
|
|
thing like independence. But unfortunately my own nicety,
|
|
and the nicety of my friends, have made me what I am,
|
|
an idle, helpless being. We never could agree in our
|
|
choice of a profession. I always preferred the church,
|
|
as I still do. But that was not smart enough for my family.
|
|
They recommended the army. That was a great deal
|
|
too smart for me. The law was allowed to be genteel
|
|
enough; many young men, who had chambers in the Temple,
|
|
made a very good appearance in the first circles,
|
|
and drove about town in very knowing gigs. But I had
|
|
no inclination for the law, even in this less abstruse
|
|
study of it, which my family approved. As for the navy,
|
|
it had fashion on its side, but I was too old when the
|
|
subject was first started to enter it--and, at length,
|
|
as there was no necessity for my having any profession
|
|
at all, as I might be as dashing and expensive without
|
|
a red coat on my back as with one, idleness was pronounced
|
|
on the whole to be most advantageous and honourable,
|
|
and a young man of eighteen is not in general so earnestly
|
|
bent on being busy as to resist the solicitations of his
|
|
friends to do nothing. I was therefore entered at Oxford
|
|
and have been properly idle ever since."
|
|
|
|
"The consequence of which, I suppose, will be,"
|
|
said Mrs. Dashwood, "since leisure has not promoted
|
|
your own happiness, that your sons will be brought up
|
|
to as many pursuits, employments, professions, and trades
|
|
as Columella's."
|
|
|
|
"They will be brought up," said he, in a serious accent,
|
|
"to be as unlike myself as is possible. In feeling,
|
|
in action, in condition, in every thing."
|
|
|
|
"Come, come; this is all an effusion of immediate
|
|
want of spirits, Edward. You are in a melancholy humour,
|
|
and fancy that any one unlike yourself must be happy.
|
|
But remember that the pain of parting from friends
|
|
will be felt by every body at times, whatever be their
|
|
education or state. Know your own happiness. You want
|
|
nothing but patience--or give it a more fascinating name,
|
|
call it hope. Your mother will secure to you, in time,
|
|
that independence you are so anxious for; it is her duty,
|
|
and it will, it must ere long become her happiness to
|
|
prevent your whole youth from being wasted in discontent.
|
|
How much may not a few months do?"
|
|
|
|
"I think," replied Edward, "that I may defy many
|
|
months to produce any good to me."
|
|
|
|
This desponding turn of mind, though it could not
|
|
be communicated to Mrs. Dashwood, gave additional pain
|
|
to them all in the parting, which shortly took place,
|
|
and left an uncomfortable impression on Elinor's
|
|
feelings especially, which required some trouble and time
|
|
to subdue. But as it was her determination to subdue it,
|
|
and to prevent herself from appearing to suffer more than
|
|
what all her family suffered on his going away, she did
|
|
not adopt the method so judiciously employed by Marianne,
|
|
on a similar occasion, to augment and fix her sorrow,
|
|
by seeking silence, solitude and idleness. Their means
|
|
were as different as their objects, and equally suited
|
|
to the advancement of each.
|
|
|
|
Elinor sat down to her drawing-table as soon as he
|
|
was out of the house, busily employed herself the whole day,
|
|
neither sought nor avoided the mention of his name,
|
|
appeared to interest herself almost as much as ever in the
|
|
general concerns of the family, and if, by this conduct,
|
|
she did not lessen her own grief, it was at least prevented
|
|
from unnecessary increase, and her mother and sisters
|
|
were spared much solicitude on her account.
|
|
|
|
Such behaviour as this, so exactly the reverse
|
|
of her own, appeared no more meritorious to Marianne,
|
|
than her own had seemed faulty to her. The business
|
|
of self-command she settled very easily;--with strong
|
|
affections it was impossible, with calm ones it could
|
|
have no merit. That her sister's affections WERE calm,
|
|
she dared not deny, though she blushed to acknowledge it;
|
|
and of the strength of her own, she gave a very striking proof,
|
|
by still loving and respecting that sister, in spite
|
|
of this mortifying conviction.
|
|
|
|
Without shutting herself up from her family,
|
|
or leaving the house in determined solitude to avoid them,
|
|
or lying awake the whole night to indulge meditation,
|
|
Elinor found every day afforded her leisure enough
|
|
to think of Edward, and of Edward's behaviour, in every
|
|
possible variety which the different state of her spirits
|
|
at different times could produce,--with tenderness,
|
|
pity, approbation, censure, and doubt. There were moments
|
|
in abundance, when, if not by the absence of her mother
|
|
and sisters, at least by the nature of their employments,
|
|
conversation was forbidden among them, and every effect
|
|
of solitude was produced. Her mind was inevitably
|
|
at liberty; her thoughts could not be chained elsewhere;
|
|
and the past and the future, on a subject so interesting,
|
|
must be before her, must force her attention, and engross
|
|
her memory, her reflection, and her fancy.
|
|
|
|
From a reverie of this kind, as she sat at her
|
|
drawing-table, she was roused one morning, soon after
|
|
Edward's leaving them, by the arrival of company.
|
|
She happened to be quite alone. The closing of the
|
|
little gate, at the entrance of the green court in front
|
|
of the house, drew her eyes to the window, and she saw
|
|
a large party walking up to the door. Amongst them
|
|
were Sir John and Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
but there were two others, a gentleman and lady, who were
|
|
quite unknown to her. She was sitting near the window,
|
|
and as soon as Sir John perceived her, he left the rest
|
|
of the party to the ceremony of knocking at the door,
|
|
and stepping across the turf, obliged her to open the
|
|
casement to speak to him, though the space was so short
|
|
between the door and the window, as to make it hardly
|
|
possible to speak at one without being heard at the other.
|
|
|
|
"Well," said he, "we have brought you some strangers.
|
|
How do you like them?"
|
|
|
|
"Hush! they will hear you."
|
|
|
|
"Never mind if they do. It is only the Palmers.
|
|
Charlotte is very pretty, I can tell you. You may see her
|
|
if you look this way."
|
|
|
|
As Elinor was certain of seeing her in a couple
|
|
of minutes, without taking that liberty, she begged
|
|
to be excused.
|
|
|
|
"Where is Marianne? Has she run away because we
|
|
are come? I see her instrument is open."
|
|
|
|
"She is walking, I believe."
|
|
|
|
They were now joined by Mrs. Jennings, who had not
|
|
patience enough to wait till the door was opened before
|
|
she told HER story. She came hallooing to the window,
|
|
"How do you do, my dear? How does Mrs. Dashwood do?
|
|
And where are your sisters? What! all alone! you
|
|
will be glad of a little company to sit with you.
|
|
I have brought my other son and daughter to see you.
|
|
Only think of their coming so suddenly! I thought I heard
|
|
a carriage last night, while we were drinking our tea,
|
|
but it never entered my head that it could be them.
|
|
I thought of nothing but whether it might not be Colonel
|
|
Brandon come back again; so I said to Sir John, I do think
|
|
I hear a carriage; perhaps it is Colonel Brandon come
|
|
back again"--
|
|
|
|
Elinor was obliged to turn from her, in the middle
|
|
of her story, to receive the rest of the party; Lady
|
|
Middleton introduced the two strangers; Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
and Margaret came down stairs at the same time, and they
|
|
all sat down to look at one another, while Mrs. Jennings
|
|
continued her story as she walked through the passage
|
|
into the parlour, attended by Sir John.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Palmer was several years younger than Lady
|
|
Middleton, and totally unlike her in every respect.
|
|
She was short and plump, had a very pretty face,
|
|
and the finest expression of good humour in it that could
|
|
possibly be. Her manners were by no means so elegant
|
|
as her sister's, but they were much more prepossessing.
|
|
She came in with a smile, smiled all the time of her visit,
|
|
except when she laughed, and smiled when she went away.
|
|
Her husband was a grave looking young man of five or six
|
|
and twenty, with an air of more fashion and sense than
|
|
his wife, but of less willingness to please or be pleased.
|
|
He entered the room with a look of self-consequence,
|
|
slightly bowed to the ladies, without speaking a word,
|
|
and, after briefly surveying them and their apartments,
|
|
took up a newspaper from the table, and continued to read it
|
|
as long as he staid.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Palmer, on the contrary, who was strongly endowed
|
|
by nature with a turn for being uniformly civil and happy,
|
|
was hardly seated before her admiration of the parlour
|
|
and every thing in it burst forth.
|
|
|
|
"Well! what a delightful room this is! I never
|
|
saw anything so charming! Only think, Mamma, how it
|
|
is improved since I was here last! I always thought it
|
|
such a sweet place, ma'am! (turning to Mrs. Dashwood)
|
|
but you have made it so charming! Only look, sister,
|
|
how delightful every thing is! How I should like such
|
|
a house for myself! Should not you, Mr. Palmer?"
|
|
|
|
Mr. Palmer made her no answer, and did not even raise
|
|
his eyes from the newspaper.
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Palmer does not hear me," said she, laughing;
|
|
"he never does sometimes. It is so ridiculous!"
|
|
|
|
This was quite a new idea to Mrs. Dashwood; she had
|
|
never been used to find wit in the inattention of any one,
|
|
and could not help looking with surprise at them both.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings, in the meantime, talked on as loud
|
|
as she could, and continued her account of their surprise,
|
|
the evening before, on seeing their friends, without
|
|
ceasing till every thing was told. Mrs. Palmer laughed
|
|
heartily at the recollection of their astonishment,
|
|
and every body agreed, two or three times over, that it
|
|
had been quite an agreeable surprise.
|
|
|
|
"You may believe how glad we all were to see them,"
|
|
added Mrs. Jennings, leaning forward towards Elinor,
|
|
and speaking in a low voice as if she meant to be heard
|
|
by no one else, though they were seated on different sides
|
|
of the room; "but, however, I can't help wishing they had
|
|
not travelled quite so fast, nor made such a long journey
|
|
of it, for they came all round by London upon account
|
|
of some business, for you know (nodding significantly and
|
|
pointing to her daughter) it was wrong in her situation.
|
|
I wanted her to stay at home and rest this morning,
|
|
but she would come with us; she longed so much to see
|
|
you all!"
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Palmer laughed, and said it would not do her
|
|
any harm.
|
|
|
|
"She expects to be confined in February,"
|
|
continued Mrs. Jennings.
|
|
|
|
Lady Middleton could no longer endure such a conversation,
|
|
and therefore exerted herself to ask Mr. Palmer if there
|
|
was any news in the paper.
|
|
|
|
"No, none at all," he replied, and read on.
|
|
|
|
"Here comes Marianne," cried Sir John. "Now, Palmer,
|
|
you shall see a monstrous pretty girl."
|
|
|
|
He immediately went into the passage, opened the front door,
|
|
and ushered her in himself. Mrs. Jennings asked her,
|
|
as soon as she appeared, if she had not been to Allenham;
|
|
and Mrs. Palmer laughed so heartily at the question,
|
|
as to show she understood it. Mr. Palmer looked up
|
|
on her entering the room, stared at her some minutes,
|
|
and then returned to his newspaper. Mrs. Palmer's eye
|
|
was now caught by the drawings which hung round the room.
|
|
She got up to examine them.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! dear, how beautiful these are! Well! how delightful!
|
|
Do but look, mama, how sweet! I declare they are quite charming;
|
|
I could look at them for ever." And then sitting down again,
|
|
she very soon forgot that there were any such things in the room.
|
|
|
|
When Lady Middleton rose to go away, Mr. Palmer
|
|
rose also, laid down the newspaper, stretched himself
|
|
and looked at them all around.
|
|
|
|
"My love, have you been asleep?" said his wife, laughing.
|
|
|
|
He made her no answer; and only observed, after again
|
|
examining the room, that it was very low pitched,
|
|
and that the ceiling was crooked. He then made his bow,
|
|
and departed with the rest.
|
|
|
|
Sir John had been very urgent with them all to
|
|
spend the next day at the park. Mrs. Dashwood, who did
|
|
not chuse to dine with them oftener than they dined
|
|
at the cottage, absolutely refused on her own account;
|
|
her daughters might do as they pleased. But they had no
|
|
curiosity to see how Mr. and Mrs. Palmer ate their dinner,
|
|
and no expectation of pleasure from them in any other way.
|
|
They attempted, therefore, likewise, to excuse themselves;
|
|
the weather was uncertain, and not likely to be good.
|
|
But Sir John would not be satisfied--the carriage should
|
|
be sent for them and they must come. Lady Middleton too,
|
|
though she did not press their mother, pressed them.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings and Mrs. Palmer joined their entreaties, all
|
|
seemed equally anxious to avoid a family party; and the young
|
|
ladies were obliged to yield.
|
|
|
|
"Why should they ask us?" said Marianne, as soon as they
|
|
were gone. "The rent of this cottage is said to be low;
|
|
but we have it on very hard terms, if we are to dine
|
|
at the park whenever any one is staying either with them,
|
|
or with us."
|
|
|
|
"They mean no less to be civil and kind to us now,"
|
|
said Elinor, "by these frequent invitations, than by
|
|
those which we received from them a few weeks ago.
|
|
The alteration is not in them, if their parties are grown
|
|
tedious and dull. We must look for the change elsewhere."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 20
|
|
|
|
As the Miss Dashwoods entered the drawing-room of the park
|
|
the next day, at one door, Mrs. Palmer came running in at
|
|
the other, looking as good humoured and merry as before.
|
|
She took them all most affectionately by the hand,
|
|
and expressed great delight in seeing them again.
|
|
|
|
"I am so glad to see you!" said she, seating herself
|
|
between Elinor and Marianne, "for it is so bad a day I was
|
|
afraid you might not come, which would be a shocking thing,
|
|
as we go away again tomorrow. We must go, for the Westons
|
|
come to us next week you know. It was quite a sudden thing
|
|
our coming at all, and I knew nothing of it till the carriage
|
|
was coming to the door, and then Mr. Palmer asked me if I
|
|
would go with him to Barton. He is so droll! He never
|
|
tells me any thing! I am so sorry we cannot stay longer;
|
|
however we shall meet again in town very soon, I hope."
|
|
|
|
They were obliged to put an end to such an expectation.
|
|
|
|
"Not go to town!" cried Mrs. Palmer, with a laugh,
|
|
"I shall be quite disappointed if you do not. I could
|
|
get the nicest house in world for you, next door to ours,
|
|
in Hanover-square. You must come, indeed. I am sure
|
|
I shall be very happy to chaperon you at any time till
|
|
I am confined, if Mrs. Dashwood should not like to go
|
|
into public."
|
|
|
|
They thanked her; but were obliged to resist all
|
|
her entreaties.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my love," cried Mrs. Palmer to her husband,
|
|
who just then entered the room--"you must help me to
|
|
persuade the Miss Dashwoods to go to town this winter."
|
|
|
|
Her love made no answer; and after slightly bowing
|
|
to the ladies, began complaining of the weather.
|
|
|
|
"How horrid all this is!" said he. "Such weather
|
|
makes every thing and every body disgusting. Dullness
|
|
is as much produced within doors as without, by rain.
|
|
It makes one detest all one's acquaintance. What the
|
|
devil does Sir John mean by not having a billiard room
|
|
in his house? How few people know what comfort is! Sir
|
|
John is as stupid as the weather."
|
|
|
|
The rest of the company soon dropt in.
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid, Miss Marianne," said Sir John, "you have
|
|
not been able to take your usual walk to Allenham today."
|
|
|
|
Marianne looked very grave and said nothing.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, don't be so sly before us," said Mrs. Palmer;
|
|
"for we know all about it, I assure you; and I admire your
|
|
taste very much, for I think he is extremely handsome.
|
|
We do not live a great way from him in the country, you know.
|
|
Not above ten miles, I dare say."
|
|
|
|
"Much nearer thirty," said her husband.
|
|
|
|
"Ah, well! there is not much difference.
|
|
I never was at his house; but they say it is a sweet
|
|
pretty place."
|
|
|
|
"As vile a spot as I ever saw in my life,"
|
|
said Mr. Palmer.
|
|
|
|
Marianne remained perfectly silent, though her
|
|
countenance betrayed her interest in what was said.
|
|
|
|
"Is it very ugly?" continued Mrs. Palmer--"then it
|
|
must be some other place that is so pretty I suppose."
|
|
|
|
When they were seated in the dining room, Sir John
|
|
observed with regret that they were only eight all together.
|
|
|
|
"My dear," said he to his lady, "it is very provoking
|
|
that we should be so few. Why did not you ask the Gilberts
|
|
to come to us today?"
|
|
|
|
"Did not I tell you, Sir John, when you spoke to me
|
|
about it before, that it could not be done? They dined
|
|
with us last."
|
|
|
|
"You and I, Sir John," said Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
"should not stand upon such ceremony."
|
|
|
|
"Then you would be very ill-bred," cried Mr. Palmer.
|
|
|
|
"My love you contradict every body," said his wife
|
|
with her usual laugh. "Do you know that you are quite rude?"
|
|
|
|
"I did not know I contradicted any body in calling
|
|
your mother ill-bred."
|
|
|
|
"Ay, you may abuse me as you please," said the good-natured
|
|
old lady, "you have taken Charlotte off my hands, and cannot
|
|
give her back again. So there I have the whip hand of you."
|
|
|
|
Charlotte laughed heartily to think that her
|
|
husband could not get rid of her; and exultingly said,
|
|
she did not care how cross he was to her, as they must
|
|
live together. It was impossible for any one to be more
|
|
thoroughly good-natured, or more determined to be happy
|
|
than Mrs. Palmer. The studied indifference, insolence,
|
|
and discontent of her husband gave her no pain;
|
|
and when he scolded or abused her, she was highly diverted.
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Palmer is so droll!" said she, in a whisper,
|
|
to Elinor. "He is always out of humour."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was not inclined, after a little observation,
|
|
to give him credit for being so genuinely and unaffectedly
|
|
ill-natured or ill-bred as he wished to appear.
|
|
His temper might perhaps be a little soured by finding,
|
|
like many others of his sex, that through some unaccountable
|
|
bias in favour of beauty, he was the husband of a very silly
|
|
woman,--but she knew that this kind of blunder was too
|
|
common for any sensible man to be lastingly hurt by it.--
|
|
It was rather a wish of distinction, she believed,
|
|
which produced his contemptuous treatment of every body,
|
|
and his general abuse of every thing before him.
|
|
It was the desire of appearing superior to other people.
|
|
The motive was too common to be wondered at; but the means,
|
|
however they might succeed by establishing his superiority
|
|
in ill-breeding, were not likely to attach any one to him
|
|
except his wife.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, my dear Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Palmer soon afterwards,
|
|
"I have got such a favour to ask of you and your sister.
|
|
Will you come and spend some time at Cleveland this
|
|
Christmas? Now, pray do,--and come while the Westons are
|
|
with us. You cannot think how happy I shall be! It will
|
|
be quite delightful!--My love," applying to her husband,
|
|
"don't you long to have the Miss Dashwoods come to Cleveland?"
|
|
|
|
"Certainly," he replied, with a sneer--"I came
|
|
into Devonshire with no other view."
|
|
|
|
"There now,"--said his lady, "you see Mr. Palmer
|
|
expects you; so you cannot refuse to come."
|
|
|
|
They both eagerly and resolutely declined her invitation.
|
|
|
|
"But indeed you must and shall come. I am sure you
|
|
will like it of all things. The Westons will be with us,
|
|
and it will be quite delightful. You cannot think
|
|
what a sweet place Cleveland is; and we are so gay now,
|
|
for Mr. Palmer is always going about the country canvassing
|
|
against the election; and so many people came to dine
|
|
with us that I never saw before, it is quite charming! But,
|
|
poor fellow! it is very fatiguing to him! for he is forced
|
|
to make every body like him."
|
|
|
|
Elinor could hardly keep her countenance as she
|
|
assented to the hardship of such an obligation.
|
|
|
|
"How charming it will be," said Charlotte, "when he
|
|
is in Parliament!--won't it? How I shall laugh! It will
|
|
be so ridiculous to see all his letters directed to him
|
|
with an M.P.--But do you know, he says, he will never frank
|
|
for me? He declares he won't. Don't you, Mr. Palmer?"
|
|
|
|
Mr. Palmer took no notice of her.
|
|
|
|
"He cannot bear writing, you know," she continued--
|
|
"he says it is quite shocking."
|
|
|
|
"No," said he, "I never said any thing so irrational.
|
|
Don't palm all your abuses of languages upon me."
|
|
|
|
"There now; you see how droll he is. This is always
|
|
the way with him! Sometimes he won't speak to me for half
|
|
a day together, and then he comes out with something
|
|
so droll--all about any thing in the world."
|
|
|
|
She surprised Elinor very much as they returned
|
|
into the drawing-room, by asking her whether she did
|
|
not like Mr. Palmer excessively.
|
|
|
|
"Certainly," said Elinor; "he seems very agreeable."
|
|
|
|
"Well--I am so glad you do. I thought you would,
|
|
he is so pleasant; and Mr. Palmer is excessively pleased
|
|
with you and your sisters I can tell you, and you can't
|
|
think how disappointed he will be if you don't come
|
|
to Cleveland.--I can't imagine why you should object
|
|
to it."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was again obliged to decline her invitation;
|
|
and by changing the subject, put a stop to her entreaties.
|
|
She thought it probable that as they lived in the
|
|
same county, Mrs. Palmer might be able to give some
|
|
more particular account of Willoughby's general
|
|
character, than could be gathered from the Middletons'
|
|
partial acquaintance with him; and she was eager to gain
|
|
from any one, such a confirmation of his merits as might
|
|
remove the possibility of fear from Marianne. She began
|
|
by inquiring if they saw much of Mr. Willoughby at Cleveland,
|
|
and whether they were intimately acquainted with him.
|
|
|
|
"Oh dear, yes; I know him extremely well,"
|
|
replied Mrs. Palmer;--"Not that I ever spoke
|
|
to him, indeed; but I have seen him for ever in town.
|
|
Somehow or other I never happened to be staying at Barton
|
|
while he was at Allenham. Mama saw him here once before;--
|
|
but I was with my uncle at Weymouth. However, I dare say
|
|
we should have seen a great deal of him in Somersetshire,
|
|
if it had not happened very unluckily that we should never
|
|
have been in the country together. He is very little
|
|
at Combe, I believe; but if he were ever so much there,
|
|
I do not think Mr. Palmer would visit him, for he is
|
|
in the opposition, you know, and besides it is such a
|
|
way off. I know why you inquire about him, very well;
|
|
your sister is to marry him. I am monstrous glad of it,
|
|
for then I shall have her for a neighbour you know."
|
|
|
|
"Upon my word," replied Elinor, "you know much
|
|
more of the matter than I do, if you have any reason
|
|
to expect such a match."
|
|
|
|
"Don't pretend to deny it, because you know it is
|
|
what every body talks of. I assure you I heard of it
|
|
in my way through town."
|
|
|
|
"My dear Mrs. Palmer!"
|
|
|
|
"Upon my honour I did.--I met Colonel Brandon
|
|
Monday morning in Bond-street, just before we left town,
|
|
and he told me of it directly."
|
|
|
|
"You surprise me very much. Colonel Brandon tell
|
|
you of it! Surely you must be mistaken. To give such
|
|
intelligence to a person who could not be interested in it,
|
|
even if it were true, is not what I should expect Colonel
|
|
Brandon to do."
|
|
|
|
"But I do assure you it was so, for all that,
|
|
and I will tell you how it happened. When we met him,
|
|
he turned back and walked with us; and so we began talking
|
|
of my brother and sister, and one thing and another,
|
|
and I said to him, 'So, Colonel, there is a new family
|
|
come to Barton cottage, I hear, and mama sends me word
|
|
they are very pretty, and that one of them is going to be
|
|
married to Mr. Willoughby of Combe Magna. Is it true,
|
|
pray? for of course you must know, as you have been in
|
|
Devonshire so lately.'"
|
|
|
|
"And what did the Colonel say?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh--he did not say much; but he looked as if he
|
|
knew it to be true, so from that moment I set it down
|
|
as certain. It will be quite delightful, I declare!
|
|
When is it to take place?"
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Brandon was very well I hope?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh! yes, quite well; and so full of your praises,
|
|
he did nothing but say fine things of you."
|
|
|
|
"I am flattered by his commendation. He seems
|
|
an excellent man; and I think him uncommonly pleasing."
|
|
|
|
"So do I.--He is such a charming man, that it
|
|
is quite a pity he should be so grave and so dull.
|
|
Mamma says HE was in love with your sister too.--
|
|
I assure you it was a great compliment if he was, for he
|
|
hardly ever falls in love with any body."
|
|
|
|
"Is Mr. Willoughby much known in your part
|
|
of Somersetshire?" said Elinor.
|
|
|
|
"Oh! yes, extremely well; that is, I do not believe
|
|
many people are acquainted with him, because Combe Magna
|
|
is so far off; but they all think him extremely agreeable
|
|
I assure you. Nobody is more liked than Mr. Willoughby
|
|
wherever he goes, and so you may tell your sister.
|
|
She is a monstrous lucky girl to get him, upon my honour;
|
|
not but that he is much more lucky in getting her,
|
|
because she is so very handsome and agreeable, that nothing
|
|
can be good enough for her. However, I don't think
|
|
her hardly at all handsomer than you, I assure you;
|
|
for I think you both excessively pretty, and so does
|
|
Mr. Palmer too I am sure, though we could not get him
|
|
to own it last night."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Palmer's information respecting Willoughby
|
|
was not very material; but any testimony in his favour,
|
|
however small, was pleasing to her.
|
|
|
|
"I am so glad we are got acquainted at last,"
|
|
continued Charlotte.--"And now I hope we shall always be
|
|
great friends. You can't think how much I longed to see you!
|
|
It is so delightful that you should live at the cottage!
|
|
Nothing can be like it, to be sure! And I am so glad
|
|
your sister is going to be well married! I hope you will
|
|
be a great deal at Combe Magna. It is a sweet place,
|
|
by all accounts."
|
|
|
|
"You have been long acquainted with Colonel Brandon,
|
|
have not you?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, a great while; ever since my sister married.--
|
|
He was a particular friend of Sir John's. I believe,"
|
|
she added in a low voice, "he would have been very
|
|
glad to have had me, if he could. Sir John and Lady
|
|
Middleton wished it very much. But mama did not think
|
|
the match good enough for me, otherwise Sir John would
|
|
have mentioned it to the Colonel, and we should have been
|
|
married immediately."
|
|
|
|
"Did not Colonel Brandon know of Sir John's proposal
|
|
to your mother before it was made? Had he never owned
|
|
his affection to yourself?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, no; but if mama had not objected to it,
|
|
I dare say he would have liked it of all things.
|
|
He had not seen me then above twice, for it was before
|
|
I left school. However, I am much happier as I am.
|
|
Mr. Palmer is the kind of man I like."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 21
|
|
|
|
The Palmers returned to Cleveland the next day,
|
|
and the two families at Barton were again left to entertain
|
|
each other. But this did not last long; Elinor had hardly
|
|
got their last visitors out of her head, had hardly done
|
|
wondering at Charlotte's being so happy without a cause,
|
|
at Mr. Palmer's acting so simply, with good abilities,
|
|
and at the strange unsuitableness which often existed between
|
|
husband and wife, before Sir John's and Mrs. Jennings's
|
|
active zeal in the cause of society, procured her some
|
|
other new acquaintance to see and observe.
|
|
|
|
In a morning's excursion to Exeter, they had met with
|
|
two young ladies, whom Mrs. Jennings had the satisfaction
|
|
of discovering to be her relations, and this was enough
|
|
for Sir John to invite them directly to the park,
|
|
as soon as their present engagements at Exeter were over.
|
|
Their engagements at Exeter instantly gave way before
|
|
such an invitation, and Lady Middleton was thrown into
|
|
no little alarm on the return of Sir John, by hearing
|
|
that she was very soon to receive a visit from two girls
|
|
whom she had never seen in her life, and of whose elegance,--
|
|
whose tolerable gentility even, she could have no proof;
|
|
for the assurances of her husband and mother on that subject
|
|
went for nothing at all. Their being her relations too
|
|
made it so much the worse; and Mrs. Jennings's attempts
|
|
at consolation were therefore unfortunately founded,
|
|
when she advised her daughter not to care about their being
|
|
so fashionable; because they were all cousins and must put
|
|
up with one another. As it was impossible, however, now to
|
|
prevent their coming, Lady Middleton resigned herself to the
|
|
idea of it, with all the philosophy of a well-bred woman,
|
|
contenting herself with merely giving her husband a gentle
|
|
reprimand on the subject five or six times every day.
|
|
|
|
The young ladies arrived: their appearance was by
|
|
no means ungenteel or unfashionable. Their dress was
|
|
very smart, their manners very civil, they were delighted
|
|
with the house, and in raptures with the furniture,
|
|
and they happened to be so doatingly fond of children
|
|
that Lady Middleton's good opinion was engaged in their
|
|
favour before they had been an hour at the Park.
|
|
She declared them to be very agreeable girls indeed,
|
|
which for her ladyship was enthusiastic admiration.
|
|
Sir John's confidence in his own judgment rose with this
|
|
animated praise, and he set off directly for the cottage
|
|
to tell the Miss Dashwoods of the Miss Steeles' arrival,
|
|
and to assure them of their being the sweetest girls
|
|
in the world. From such commendation as this, however,
|
|
there was not much to be learned; Elinor well knew
|
|
that the sweetest girls in the world were to be met
|
|
with in every part of England, under every possible
|
|
variation of form, face, temper and understanding.
|
|
Sir John wanted the whole family to walk to the Park directly
|
|
and look at his guests. Benevolent, philanthropic man! It
|
|
was painful to him even to keep a third cousin to himself.
|
|
|
|
"Do come now," said he--"pray come--you must come--I
|
|
declare you shall come--You can't think how you will
|
|
like them. Lucy is monstrous pretty, and so good humoured
|
|
and agreeable! The children are all hanging about her already,
|
|
as if she was an old acquaintance. And they both long
|
|
to see you of all things, for they have heard at Exeter
|
|
that you are the most beautiful creatures in the world;
|
|
and I have told them it is all very true, and a great
|
|
deal more. You will be delighted with them I am sure.
|
|
They have brought the whole coach full of playthings
|
|
for the children. How can you be so cross as not to come?
|
|
Why they are your cousins, you know, after a fashion.
|
|
YOU are my cousins, and they are my wife's, so you must
|
|
be related."
|
|
|
|
But Sir John could not prevail. He could only obtain
|
|
a promise of their calling at the Park within a day or two,
|
|
and then left them in amazement at their indifference,
|
|
to walk home and boast anew of their attractions to the
|
|
Miss Steeles, as he had been already boasting of the Miss
|
|
Steeles to them.
|
|
|
|
When their promised visit to the Park and consequent
|
|
introduction to these young ladies took place, they found
|
|
in the appearance of the eldest, who was nearly thirty,
|
|
with a very plain and not a sensible face, nothing to admire;
|
|
but in the other, who was not more than two or three
|
|
and twenty, they acknowledged considerable beauty; her
|
|
features were pretty, and she had a sharp quick eye,
|
|
and a smartness of air, which though it did not give
|
|
actual elegance or grace, gave distinction to her person.--
|
|
Their manners were particularly civil, and Elinor soon
|
|
allowed them credit for some kind of sense, when she
|
|
saw with what constant and judicious attention they
|
|
were making themselves agreeable to Lady Middleton.
|
|
With her children they were in continual raptures,
|
|
extolling their beauty, courting their notice, and humouring
|
|
their whims; and such of their time as could be spared from
|
|
the importunate demands which this politeness made on it,
|
|
was spent in admiration of whatever her ladyship was doing,
|
|
if she happened to be doing any thing, or in taking patterns
|
|
of some elegant new dress, in which her appearance
|
|
the day before had thrown them into unceasing delight.
|
|
Fortunately for those who pay their court through
|
|
such foibles, a fond mother, though, in pursuit of praise
|
|
for her children, the most rapacious of human beings,
|
|
is likewise the most credulous; her demands are exorbitant;
|
|
but she will swallow any thing; and the excessive
|
|
affection and endurance of the Miss Steeles towards
|
|
her offspring were viewed therefore by Lady Middleton
|
|
without the smallest surprise or distrust. She saw with
|
|
maternal complacency all the impertinent encroachments
|
|
and mischievous tricks to which her cousins submitted.
|
|
She saw their sashes untied, their hair pulled about
|
|
their ears, their work-bags searched, and their knives
|
|
and scissors stolen away, and felt no doubt of its being
|
|
a reciprocal enjoyment. It suggested no other surprise
|
|
than that Elinor and Marianne should sit so composedly by,
|
|
without claiming a share in what was passing.
|
|
|
|
"John is in such spirits today!" said she, on his
|
|
taking Miss Steeles's pocket handkerchief, and throwing
|
|
it out of window--"He is full of monkey tricks."
|
|
|
|
And soon afterwards, on the second boy's violently
|
|
pinching one of the same lady's fingers, she fondly observed,
|
|
"How playful William is!"
|
|
|
|
"And here is my sweet little Annamaria," she added,
|
|
tenderly caressing a little girl of three years old,
|
|
who had not made a noise for the last two minutes;
|
|
"And she is always so gentle and quiet--Never was there
|
|
such a quiet little thing!"
|
|
|
|
But unfortunately in bestowing these embraces,
|
|
a pin in her ladyship's head dress slightly scratching
|
|
the child's neck, produced from this pattern of gentleness
|
|
such violent screams, as could hardly be outdone by any
|
|
creature professedly noisy. The mother's consternation
|
|
was excessive; but it could not surpass the alarm of the
|
|
Miss Steeles, and every thing was done by all three,
|
|
in so critical an emergency, which affection could suggest
|
|
as likely to assuage the agonies of the little sufferer.
|
|
She was seated in her mother's lap, covered with kisses,
|
|
her wound bathed with lavender-water, by one of the
|
|
Miss Steeles, who was on her knees to attend her,
|
|
and her mouth stuffed with sugar plums by the other.
|
|
With such a reward for her tears, the child was too wise
|
|
to cease crying. She still screamed and sobbed lustily,
|
|
kicked her two brothers for offering to touch her, and all
|
|
their united soothings were ineffectual till Lady Middleton
|
|
luckily remembering that in a scene of similar distress
|
|
last week, some apricot marmalade had been successfully
|
|
applied for a bruised temple, the same remedy was eagerly
|
|
proposed for this unfortunate scratch, and a slight
|
|
intermission of screams in the young lady on hearing it,
|
|
gave them reason to hope that it would not be rejected.--
|
|
She was carried out of the room therefore in her
|
|
mother's arms, in quest of this medicine, and as the
|
|
two boys chose to follow, though earnestly entreated
|
|
by their mother to stay behind, the four young ladies
|
|
were left in a quietness which the room had not known for
|
|
many hours.
|
|
|
|
"Poor little creatures!" said Miss Steele, as soon
|
|
as they were gone. "It might have been a very sad accident."
|
|
|
|
"Yet I hardly know how," cried Marianne, "unless it
|
|
had been under totally different circumstances.
|
|
But this is the usual way of heightening alarm, where there
|
|
is nothing to be alarmed at in reality."
|
|
|
|
"What a sweet woman Lady Middleton is!" said Lucy Steele.
|
|
|
|
Marianne was silent; it was impossible for her to say
|
|
what she did not feel, however trivial the occasion;
|
|
and upon Elinor therefore the whole task of telling lies
|
|
when politeness required it, always fell. She did her
|
|
best when thus called on, by speaking of Lady Middleton
|
|
with more warmth than she felt, though with far less than
|
|
Miss Lucy.
|
|
|
|
"And Sir John too," cried the elder sister,
|
|
"what a charming man he is!"
|
|
|
|
Here too, Miss Dashwood's commendation, being only
|
|
simple and just, came in without any eclat. She merely
|
|
observed that he was perfectly good humoured and friendly.
|
|
|
|
"And what a charming little family they have! I
|
|
never saw such fine children in my life.--I declare I
|
|
quite doat upon them already, and indeed I am always
|
|
distractedly fond of children."
|
|
|
|
"I should guess so," said Elinor, with a smile,
|
|
"from what I have witnessed this morning."
|
|
|
|
"I have a notion," said Lucy, "you think the little
|
|
Middletons rather too much indulged; perhaps they may be the
|
|
outside of enough; but it is so natural in Lady Middleton;
|
|
and for my part, I love to see children full of life
|
|
and spirits; I cannot bear them if they are tame and quiet."
|
|
|
|
"I confess," replied Elinor, "that while I am at
|
|
Barton Park, I never think of tame and quiet children
|
|
with any abhorrence."
|
|
|
|
A short pause succeeded this speech, which was first
|
|
broken by Miss Steele, who seemed very much disposed
|
|
for conversation, and who now said rather abruptly,
|
|
"And how do you like Devonshire, Miss Dashwood? I suppose
|
|
you were very sorry to leave Sussex."
|
|
|
|
In some surprise at the familiarity of this question,
|
|
or at least of the manner in which it was spoken,
|
|
Elinor replied that she was.
|
|
|
|
"Norland is a prodigious beautiful place, is not it?"
|
|
added Miss Steele.
|
|
|
|
"We have heard Sir John admire it excessively,"
|
|
said Lucy, who seemed to think some apology necessary
|
|
for the freedom of her sister.
|
|
|
|
"I think every one MUST admire it," replied Elinor,
|
|
"who ever saw the place; though it is not to be supposed
|
|
that any one can estimate its beauties as we do."
|
|
|
|
"And had you a great many smart beaux there? I
|
|
suppose you have not so many in this part of the world;
|
|
for my part, I think they are a vast addition always."
|
|
|
|
"But why should you think," said Lucy, looking ashamed
|
|
of her sister, "that there are not as many genteel young
|
|
men in Devonshire as Sussex?"
|
|
|
|
"Nay, my dear, I'm sure I don't pretend to say that there
|
|
an't. I'm sure there's a vast many smart beaux in Exeter;
|
|
but you know, how could I tell what smart beaux there
|
|
might be about Norland; and I was only afraid the Miss
|
|
Dashwoods might find it dull at Barton, if they had not
|
|
so many as they used to have. But perhaps you young ladies
|
|
may not care about the beaux, and had as lief be without
|
|
them as with them. For my part, I think they are vastly
|
|
agreeable, provided they dress smart and behave civil.
|
|
But I can't bear to see them dirty and nasty. Now there's
|
|
Mr. Rose at Exeter, a prodigious smart young man,
|
|
quite a beau, clerk to Mr. Simpson, you know, and yet if you
|
|
do but meet him of a morning, he is not fit to be seen.--
|
|
I suppose your brother was quite a beau, Miss Dashwood,
|
|
before he married, as he was so rich?"
|
|
|
|
"Upon my word," replied Elinor, "I cannot tell you,
|
|
for I do not perfectly comprehend the meaning of the word.
|
|
But this I can say, that if he ever was a beau before
|
|
he married, he is one still for there is not the smallest
|
|
alteration in him."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! dear! one never thinks of married men's being
|
|
beaux--they have something else to do."
|
|
|
|
"Lord! Anne," cried her sister, "you can talk of
|
|
nothing but beaux;--you will make Miss Dashwood believe you
|
|
think of nothing else." And then to turn the discourse,
|
|
she began admiring the house and the furniture.
|
|
|
|
This specimen of the Miss Steeles was enough.
|
|
The vulgar freedom and folly of the eldest left
|
|
her no recommendation, and as Elinor was not blinded
|
|
by the beauty, or the shrewd look of the youngest,
|
|
to her want of real elegance and artlessness, she left
|
|
the house without any wish of knowing them better.
|
|
|
|
Not so the Miss Steeles.--They came from Exeter, well
|
|
provided with admiration for the use of Sir John Middleton,
|
|
his family, and all his relations, and no niggardly
|
|
proportion was now dealt out to his fair cousins, whom they
|
|
declared to be the most beautiful, elegant, accomplished,
|
|
and agreeable girls they had ever beheld, and with whom
|
|
they were particularly anxious to be better acquainted.--
|
|
And to be better acquainted therefore, Elinor soon found
|
|
was their inevitable lot, for as Sir John was entirely
|
|
on the side of the Miss Steeles, their party would be
|
|
too strong for opposition, and that kind of intimacy
|
|
must be submitted to, which consists of sitting an hour
|
|
or two together in the same room almost every day.
|
|
Sir John could do no more; but he did not know that any
|
|
more was required: to be together was, in his opinion,
|
|
to be intimate, and while his continual schemes for their
|
|
meeting were effectual, he had not a doubt of their being
|
|
established friends.
|
|
|
|
To do him justice, he did every thing in his power
|
|
to promote their unreserve, by making the Miss Steeles
|
|
acquainted with whatever he knew or supposed of his cousins'
|
|
situations in the most delicate particulars,--and Elinor
|
|
had not seen them more than twice, before the eldest of
|
|
them wished her joy on her sister's having been so lucky
|
|
as to make a conquest of a very smart beau since she
|
|
came to Barton.
|
|
|
|
"'Twill be a fine thing to have her married so young
|
|
to be sure," said she, "and I hear he is quite a beau,
|
|
and prodigious handsome. And I hope you may have as good
|
|
luck yourself soon,--but perhaps you may have a friend
|
|
in the corner already."
|
|
|
|
Elinor could not suppose that Sir John would be more
|
|
nice in proclaiming his suspicions of her regard for Edward,
|
|
than he had been with respect to Marianne; indeed it was
|
|
rather his favourite joke of the two, as being somewhat
|
|
newer and more conjectural; and since Edward's visit,
|
|
they had never dined together without his drinking to her
|
|
best affections with so much significancy and so many nods
|
|
and winks, as to excite general attention. The letter F--
|
|
had been likewise invariably brought forward, and found
|
|
productive of such countless jokes, that its character
|
|
as the wittiest letter in the alphabet had been long
|
|
established with Elinor.
|
|
|
|
The Miss Steeles, as she expected, had now all the
|
|
benefit of these jokes, and in the eldest of them they
|
|
raised a curiosity to know the name of the gentleman
|
|
alluded to, which, though often impertinently expressed,
|
|
was perfectly of a piece with her general inquisitiveness
|
|
into the concerns of their family. But Sir John did not
|
|
sport long with the curiosity which he delighted to raise,
|
|
for he had at least as much pleasure in telling the name,
|
|
as Miss Steele had in hearing it.
|
|
|
|
"His name is Ferrars," said he, in a very audible whisper;
|
|
"but pray do not tell it, for it's a great secret."
|
|
|
|
"Ferrars!" repeated Miss Steele; "Mr. Ferrars is
|
|
the happy man, is he? What! your sister-in-law's brother,
|
|
Miss Dashwood? a very agreeable young man to be sure;
|
|
I know him very well."
|
|
|
|
"How can you say so, Anne?" cried Lucy, who generally
|
|
made an amendment to all her sister's assertions.
|
|
"Though we have seen him once or twice at my uncle's, it
|
|
is rather too much to pretend to know him very well."
|
|
|
|
Elinor heard all this with attention and surprise.
|
|
"And who was this uncle? Where did he live? How came
|
|
they acquainted?" She wished very much to have the subject
|
|
continued, though she did not chuse to join in it herself;
|
|
but nothing more of it was said, and for the first time
|
|
in her life, she thought Mrs. Jennings deficient either
|
|
in curiosity after petty information, or in a disposition
|
|
to communicate it. The manner in which Miss Steele had
|
|
spoken of Edward, increased her curiosity; for it struck
|
|
her as being rather ill-natured, and suggested the suspicion
|
|
of that lady's knowing, or fancying herself to know something
|
|
to his disadvantage.--But her curiosity was unavailing,
|
|
for no farther notice was taken of Mr. Ferrars's name by
|
|
Miss Steele when alluded to, or even openly mentioned by Sir John.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 22
|
|
|
|
Marianne, who had never much toleration for any
|
|
thing like impertinence, vulgarity, inferiority of parts,
|
|
or even difference of taste from herself, was at
|
|
this time particularly ill-disposed, from the state
|
|
of her spirits, to be pleased with the Miss Steeles,
|
|
or to encourage their advances; and to the invariable
|
|
coldness of her behaviour towards them, which checked every
|
|
endeavour at intimacy on their side, Elinor principally
|
|
attributed that preference of herself which soon became
|
|
evident in the manners of both, but especially of Lucy,
|
|
who missed no opportunity of engaging her in conversation,
|
|
or of striving to improve their acquaintance by an easy
|
|
and frank communication of her sentiments.
|
|
|
|
Lucy was naturally clever; her remarks were often
|
|
just and amusing; and as a companion for half an hour
|
|
Elinor frequently found her agreeable; but her powers
|
|
had received no aid from education: she was ignorant
|
|
and illiterate; and her deficiency of all mental improvement,
|
|
her want of information in the most common particulars,
|
|
could not be concealed from Miss Dashwood, in spite of her
|
|
constant endeavour to appear to advantage. Elinor saw,
|
|
and pitied her for, the neglect of abilities which education
|
|
might have rendered so respectable; but she saw, with less
|
|
tenderness of feeling, the thorough want of delicacy,
|
|
of rectitude, and integrity of mind, which her attentions,
|
|
her assiduities, her flatteries at the Park betrayed;
|
|
and she could have no lasting satisfaction in the company
|
|
of a person who joined insincerity with ignorance;
|
|
whose want of instruction prevented their meeting
|
|
in conversation on terms of equality, and whose conduct
|
|
toward others made every shew of attention and deference
|
|
towards herself perfectly valueless.
|
|
|
|
"You will think my question an odd one, I dare say,"
|
|
said Lucy to her one day, as they were walking together
|
|
from the park to the cottage--"but pray, are you
|
|
personally acquainted with your sister-in-law's mother,
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor DID think the question a very odd one,
|
|
and her countenance expressed it, as she answered that she
|
|
had never seen Mrs. Ferrars.
|
|
|
|
"Indeed!" replied Lucy; "I wonder at that, for I
|
|
thought you must have seen her at Norland sometimes.
|
|
Then, perhaps, you cannot tell me what sort of a woman
|
|
she is?"
|
|
|
|
"No," returned Elinor, cautious of giving her real
|
|
opinion of Edward's mother, and not very desirous
|
|
of satisfying what seemed impertinent curiosity--
|
|
"I know nothing of her."
|
|
|
|
"I am sure you think me very strange, for enquiring
|
|
about her in such a way," said Lucy, eyeing Elinor attentively
|
|
as she spoke; "but perhaps there may be reasons--I wish
|
|
I might venture; but however I hope you will do me the justice
|
|
of believing that I do not mean to be impertinent."
|
|
|
|
Elinor made her a civil reply, and they walked on
|
|
for a few minutes in silence. It was broken by Lucy,
|
|
who renewed the subject again by saying, with some
|
|
hesitation,
|
|
|
|
"I cannot bear to have you think me impertinently curious.
|
|
I am sure I would rather do any thing in the world than be
|
|
thought so by a person whose good opinion is so well worth
|
|
having as yours. And I am sure I should not have the smallest
|
|
fear of trusting YOU; indeed, I should be very glad of your
|
|
advice how to manage in such and uncomfortable situation
|
|
as I am; but, however, there is no occasion to trouble YOU.
|
|
I am sorry you do not happen to know Mrs. Ferrars."
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry I do NOT," said Elinor, in great astonishment,
|
|
"if it could be of any use to YOU to know my opinion of her.
|
|
But really I never understood that you were at all connected
|
|
with that family, and therefore I am a little surprised,
|
|
I confess, at so serious an inquiry into her character."
|
|
|
|
"I dare say you are, and I am sure I do not at all
|
|
wonder at it. But if I dared tell you all, you would not be
|
|
so much surprised. Mrs. Ferrars is certainly nothing to me
|
|
at present--but the time MAY come--how soon it will come
|
|
must depend upon herself--when we may be very intimately connected."
|
|
|
|
She looked down as she said this, amiably bashful,
|
|
with only one side glance at her companion to observe its
|
|
effect on her.
|
|
|
|
"Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "what do you mean?
|
|
Are you acquainted with Mr. Robert Ferrars? Can you be?"
|
|
And she did not feel much delighted with the idea of such
|
|
a sister-in-law.
|
|
|
|
"No," replied Lucy, "not to Mr. ROBERT Ferrars--I
|
|
never saw him in my life; but," fixing her eyes upon Elinor,
|
|
"to his eldest brother."
|
|
|
|
What felt Elinor at that moment? Astonishment,
|
|
that would have been as painful as it was strong, had not
|
|
an immediate disbelief of the assertion attended it.
|
|
She turned towards Lucy in silent amazement, unable to divine
|
|
the reason or object of such a declaration; and though
|
|
her complexion varied, she stood firm in incredulity,
|
|
and felt in no danger of an hysterical fit, or a swoon.
|
|
|
|
"You may well be surprised," continued Lucy;
|
|
"for to be sure you could have had no idea of it before;
|
|
for I dare say he never dropped the smallest hint of it
|
|
to you or any of your family; because it was always meant
|
|
to be a great secret, and I am sure has been faithfully
|
|
kept so by me to this hour. Not a soul of all my relations
|
|
know of it but Anne, and I never should have mentioned
|
|
it to you, if I had not felt the greatest dependence
|
|
in the world upon your secrecy; and I really thought my
|
|
behaviour in asking so many questions about Mrs. Ferrars
|
|
must seem so odd, that it ought to be explained.
|
|
And I do not think Mr. Ferrars can be displeased,
|
|
when he knows I have trusted you, because I know he has
|
|
the highest opinion in the world of all your family,
|
|
and looks upon yourself and the other Miss Dashwoods quite
|
|
as his own sisters."--She paused.
|
|
|
|
Elinor for a few moments remained silent.
|
|
Her astonishment at what she heard was at first too
|
|
great for words; but at length forcing herself to speak,
|
|
and to speak cautiously, she said, with calmness of manner,
|
|
which tolerably well concealed her surprise and solicitude--
|
|
"May I ask if your engagement is of long standing?"
|
|
|
|
"We have been engaged these four years."
|
|
|
|
"Four years!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes."
|
|
|
|
Elinor, though greatly shocked, still felt unable
|
|
to believe it.
|
|
|
|
"I did not know," said she, "that you were even
|
|
acquainted till the other day."
|
|
|
|
"Our acquaintance, however, is of many years date.
|
|
He was under my uncle's care, you know, a considerable while."
|
|
|
|
"Your uncle!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; Mr. Pratt. Did you never hear him talk
|
|
of Mr. Pratt?"
|
|
|
|
"I think I have," replied Elinor, with an exertion
|
|
of spirits, which increased with her increase of emotion.
|
|
|
|
"He was four years with my uncle, who lives at Longstaple,
|
|
near Plymouth. It was there our acquaintance begun,
|
|
for my sister and me was often staying with my uncle,
|
|
and it was there our engagement was formed, though not till
|
|
a year after he had quitted as a pupil; but he was almost
|
|
always with us afterwards. I was very unwilling to enter
|
|
into it, as you may imagine, without the knowledge and
|
|
approbation of his mother; but I was too young, and loved
|
|
him too well, to be so prudent as I ought to have been.--
|
|
Though you do not know him so well as me, Miss Dashwood,
|
|
you must have seen enough of him to be sensible he is
|
|
very capable of making a woman sincerely attached to him."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly," answered Elinor, without knowing what
|
|
she said; but after a moment's reflection, she added,
|
|
with revived security of Edward's honour and love,
|
|
and her companion's falsehood--"Engaged to Mr. Edward
|
|
Ferrars!--I confess myself so totally surprised at
|
|
what you tell me, that really--I beg your pardon;
|
|
but surely there must be some mistake of person or name.
|
|
We cannot mean the same Mr. Ferrars."
|
|
|
|
"We can mean no other," cried Lucy, smiling. "Mr. Edward
|
|
Ferrars, the eldest son of Mrs. Ferrars, of Park Street,
|
|
and brother of your sister-in-law, Mrs. John Dashwood,
|
|
is the person I mean; you must allow that I am not likely
|
|
to be deceived as to the name of the man on who all my happiness depends."
|
|
|
|
"It is strange," replied Elinor, in a most painful perplexity,
|
|
"that I should never have heard him even mention your name."
|
|
|
|
"No; considering our situation, it was not strange.
|
|
Our first care has been to keep the matter secret.--
|
|
You knew nothing of me, or my family, and, therefore,
|
|
there could be no OCCASION for ever mentioning my name
|
|
to you; and, as he was always particularly afraid of his
|
|
sister's suspecting any thing, THAT was reason enough
|
|
for his not mentioning it."
|
|
|
|
She was silent.--Elinor's security sunk; but her
|
|
self-command did not sink with it.
|
|
|
|
"Four years you have been engaged," said she
|
|
with a firm voice.
|
|
|
|
"Yes; and heaven knows how much longer we may have
|
|
to wait. Poor Edward! It puts him quite out of heart."
|
|
Then taking a small miniature from her pocket, she added,
|
|
"To prevent the possibility of mistake, be so good as to look
|
|
at this face. It does not do him justice, to be sure,
|
|
but yet I think you cannot be deceived as to the person
|
|
it was drew for.--I have had it above these three years."
|
|
|
|
She put it into her hands as she spoke; and when Elinor
|
|
saw the painting, whatever other doubts her fear of a
|
|
too hasty decision, or her wish of detecting falsehood
|
|
might suffer to linger in her mind, she could have none of
|
|
its being Edward's face. She returned it almost instantly,
|
|
acknowledging the likeness.
|
|
|
|
"I have never been able," continued Lucy, "to give
|
|
him my picture in return, which I am very much vexed at,
|
|
for he has been always so anxious to get it! But I am
|
|
determined to set for it the very first opportunity."
|
|
|
|
"You are quite in the right," replied Elinor calmly.
|
|
They then proceeded a few paces in silence. Lucy spoke first.
|
|
|
|
"I am sure," said she, "I have no doubt in the world
|
|
of your faithfully keeping this secret, because you must
|
|
know of what importance it is to us, not to have it reach
|
|
his mother; for she would never approve of it, I dare say.
|
|
I shall have no fortune, and I fancy she is an exceeding
|
|
proud woman."
|
|
|
|
"I certainly did not seek your confidence," said Elinor;
|
|
"but you do me no more than justice in imagining that I
|
|
may be depended on. Your secret is safe with me;
|
|
but pardon me if I express some surprise at so unnecessary
|
|
a communication. You must at least have felt that my
|
|
being acquainted with it could not add to its safety."
|
|
|
|
As she said this, she looked earnestly at Lucy,
|
|
hoping to discover something in her countenance; perhaps the
|
|
falsehood of the greatest part of what she had been saying;
|
|
but Lucy's countenance suffered no change.
|
|
|
|
"I was afraid you would think I was taking a great
|
|
liberty with you," said she, "in telling you all this.
|
|
I have not known you long to be sure, personally at least,
|
|
but I have known you and all your family by description
|
|
a great while; and as soon as I saw you, I felt almost as if
|
|
you was an old acquaintance. Besides in the present case,
|
|
I really thought some explanation was due to you after my
|
|
making such particular inquiries about Edward's mother;
|
|
and I am so unfortunate, that I have not a creature whose
|
|
advice I can ask. Anne is the only person that knows of it,
|
|
and she has no judgment at all; indeed, she does me a great
|
|
deal more harm than good, for I am in constant fear of her
|
|
betraying me. She does not know how to hold her tongue,
|
|
as you must perceive, and I am sure I was in the greatest
|
|
fright in the world t'other day, when Edward's name was
|
|
mentioned by Sir John, lest she should out with it all.
|
|
You can't think how much I go through in my mind from
|
|
it altogether. I only wonder that I am alive after what
|
|
I have suffered for Edward's sake these last four years.
|
|
Every thing in such suspense and uncertainty; and seeing
|
|
him so seldom--we can hardly meet above twice a-year.
|
|
I am sure I wonder my heart is not quite broke."
|
|
|
|
Here she took out her handkerchief; but Elinor did
|
|
not feel very compassionate.
|
|
|
|
"Sometimes." continued Lucy, after wiping her eyes,
|
|
"I think whether it would not be better for us both
|
|
to break off the matter entirely." As she said this,
|
|
she looked directly at her companion. "But then
|
|
at other times I have not resolution enough for it.--
|
|
I cannot bear the thoughts of making him so miserable,
|
|
as I know the very mention of such a thing would do.
|
|
And on my own account too--so dear as he is to me--I don't
|
|
think I could be equal to it. What would you advise
|
|
me to do in such a case, Miss Dashwood? What would you
|
|
do yourself?"
|
|
|
|
"Pardon me," replied Elinor, startled by the question;
|
|
"but I can give you no advice under such circumstances.
|
|
Your own judgment must direct you."
|
|
|
|
"To be sure," continued Lucy, after a few minutes
|
|
silence on both sides, "his mother must provide for him
|
|
sometime or other; but poor Edward is so cast down by it!
|
|
Did you not think him dreadful low-spirited when he was at
|
|
Barton? He was so miserable when he left us at Longstaple,
|
|
to go to you, that I was afraid you would think him quite ill."
|
|
|
|
"Did he come from your uncle's, then, when he visited us?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes; he had been staying a fortnight with us.
|
|
Did you think he came directly from town?"
|
|
|
|
"No," replied Elinor, most feelingly sensible of
|
|
every fresh circumstance in favour of Lucy's veracity;
|
|
"I remember he told us, that he had been staying
|
|
a fortnight with some friends near Plymouth."
|
|
She remembered too, her own surprise at the time,
|
|
at his mentioning nothing farther of those friends,
|
|
at his total silence with respect even to their names.
|
|
|
|
"Did not you think him sadly out of spirits?"
|
|
repeated Lucy.
|
|
|
|
"We did, indeed, particularly so when he first arrived."
|
|
|
|
"I begged him to exert himself for fear you
|
|
should suspect what was the matter; but it made him
|
|
so melancholy, not being able to stay more than a
|
|
fortnight with us, and seeing me so much affected.--
|
|
Poor fellow!--I am afraid it is just the same with him now;
|
|
for he writes in wretched spirits. I heard from him just
|
|
before I left Exeter;" taking a letter from her pocket
|
|
and carelessly showing the direction to Elinor.
|
|
"You know his hand, I dare say, a charming one it is;
|
|
but that is not written so well as usual.--He was tired,
|
|
I dare say, for he had just filled the sheet to me as full
|
|
as possible."
|
|
|
|
Elinor saw that it WAS his hand, and she could doubt
|
|
no longer. This picture, she had allowed herself to believe,
|
|
might have been accidentally obtained; it might not have
|
|
been Edward's gift; but a correspondence between them
|
|
by letter, could subsist only under a positive engagement,
|
|
could be authorised by nothing else; for a few moments, she
|
|
was almost overcome--her heart sunk within her, and she could
|
|
hardly stand; but exertion was indispensably necessary;
|
|
and she struggled so resolutely against the oppression
|
|
of her feelings, that her success was speedy, and for
|
|
the time complete.
|
|
|
|
"Writing to each other," said Lucy, returning the
|
|
letter into her pocket, "is the only comfort we have
|
|
in such long separations. Yes, I have one other comfort
|
|
in his picture, but poor Edward has not even THAT.
|
|
If he had but my picture, he says he should be easy.
|
|
I gave him a lock of my hair set in a ring when he was at
|
|
Longstaple last, and that was some comfort to him, he said,
|
|
but not equal to a picture. Perhaps you might notice
|
|
the ring when you saw him?"
|
|
|
|
"I did," said Elinor, with a composure of voice,
|
|
under which was concealed an emotion and distress beyond
|
|
any thing she had ever felt before. She was mortified,
|
|
shocked, confounded.
|
|
|
|
Fortunately for her, they had now reached the cottage,
|
|
and the conversation could be continued no farther.
|
|
After sitting with them a few minutes, the Miss Steeles
|
|
returned to the Park, and Elinor was then at liberty
|
|
to think and be wretched.
|
|
|
|
[At this point in the first and second editions, Volume 1 ends.]
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 23
|
|
|
|
However small Elinor's general dependence on
|
|
Lucy's veracity might be, it was impossible for her
|
|
on serious reflection to suspect it in the present case,
|
|
where no temptation could be answerable to the folly
|
|
of inventing a falsehood of such a description. What Lucy
|
|
had asserted to be true, therefore, Elinor could not,
|
|
dared not longer doubt; supported as it was too on every
|
|
side by such probabilities and proofs, and contradicted
|
|
by nothing but her own wishes. Their opportunity of
|
|
acquaintance in the house of Mr. Pratt was a foundation
|
|
for the rest, at once indisputable and alarming; and Edward's
|
|
visit near Plymouth, his melancholy state of mind,
|
|
his dissatisfaction at his own prospects, his uncertain
|
|
behaviour towards herself, the intimate knowledge of the
|
|
Miss Steeles as to Norland and their family connections,
|
|
which had often surprised her, the picture, the letter,
|
|
the ring, formed altogether such a body of evidence,
|
|
as overcame every fear of condemning him unfairly,
|
|
and established as a fact, which no partiality could
|
|
set aside, his ill-treatment of herself.--Her resentment
|
|
of such behaviour, her indignation at having been its dupe,
|
|
for a short time made her feel only for herself;
|
|
but other ideas, other considerations, soon arose.
|
|
Had Edward been intentionally deceiving her? Had he feigned
|
|
a regard for her which he did not feel? Was his engagement
|
|
to Lucy an engagement of the heart? No; whatever it might
|
|
once have been, she could not believe it such at present.
|
|
His affection was all her own. She could not be deceived
|
|
in that. Her mother, sisters, Fanny, all had been
|
|
conscious of his regard for her at Norland; it was not
|
|
an illusion of her own vanity. He certainly loved her.
|
|
What a softener of the heart was this persuasion! How much
|
|
could it not tempt her to forgive! He had been blamable,
|
|
highly blamable, in remaining at Norland after he first
|
|
felt her influence over him to be more than it ought
|
|
to be. In that, he could not be defended; but if he
|
|
had injured her, how much more had he injured himself;
|
|
if her case were pitiable, his was hopeless.
|
|
His imprudence had made her miserable for a while; but it
|
|
seemed to have deprived himself of all chance of ever
|
|
being otherwise. She might in time regain tranquillity;
|
|
but HE, what had he to look forward to? Could he
|
|
ever be tolerably happy with Lucy Steele; could he,
|
|
were his affection for herself out of the question,
|
|
with his integrity, his delicacy, and well-informed mind,
|
|
be satisfied with a wife like her--illiterate, artful,
|
|
and selfish?
|
|
|
|
The youthful infatuation of nineteen would naturally
|
|
blind him to every thing but her beauty and good nature;
|
|
but the four succeeding years--years, which if rationally
|
|
spent, give such improvement to the understanding, must
|
|
have opened his eyes to her defects of education,
|
|
while the same period of time, spent on her side
|
|
in inferior society and more frivolous pursuits,
|
|
had perhaps robbed her of that simplicity which might
|
|
once have given an interesting character to her beauty.
|
|
|
|
If in the supposition of his seeking to marry herself,
|
|
his difficulties from his mother had seemed great,
|
|
how much greater were they now likely to be, when
|
|
the object of his engagement was undoubtedly inferior
|
|
in connections, and probably inferior in fortune to herself.
|
|
These difficulties, indeed, with a heart so alienated
|
|
from Lucy, might not press very hard upon his patience;
|
|
but melancholy was the state of the person by whom the
|
|
expectation of family opposition and unkindness, could
|
|
be felt as a relief!
|
|
|
|
As these considerations occurred to her in painful
|
|
succession, she wept for him, more than for herself.
|
|
Supported by the conviction of having done nothing to
|
|
merit her present unhappiness, and consoled by the belief
|
|
that Edward had done nothing to forfeit her esteem,
|
|
she thought she could even now, under the first smart
|
|
of the heavy blow, command herself enough to guard every
|
|
suspicion of the truth from her mother and sisters.
|
|
And so well was she able to answer her own expectations,
|
|
that when she joined them at dinner only two hours
|
|
after she had first suffered the extinction of all her
|
|
dearest hopes, no one would have supposed from the
|
|
appearance of the sisters, that Elinor was mourning
|
|
in secret over obstacles which must divide her for ever
|
|
from the object of her love, and that Marianne was
|
|
internally dwelling on the perfections of a man, of whose
|
|
whole heart she felt thoroughly possessed, and whom she
|
|
expected to see in every carriage which drove near their house.
|
|
|
|
The necessity of concealing from her mother and
|
|
Marianne, what had been entrusted in confidence to herself,
|
|
though it obliged her to unceasing exertion, was no
|
|
aggravation of Elinor's distress. On the contrary
|
|
it was a relief to her, to be spared the communication
|
|
of what would give such affliction to them, and to be
|
|
saved likewise from hearing that condemnation of Edward,
|
|
which would probably flow from the excess of their partial
|
|
affection for herself, and which was more than she felt
|
|
equal to support.
|
|
|
|
From their counsel, or their conversation, she knew
|
|
she could receive no assistance, their tenderness and
|
|
sorrow must add to her distress, while her self-command
|
|
would neither receive encouragement from their example
|
|
nor from their praise. She was stronger alone,
|
|
and her own good sense so well supported her, that her
|
|
firmness was as unshaken, her appearance of cheerfulness
|
|
as invariable, as with regrets so poignant and so fresh,
|
|
it was possible for them to be.
|
|
|
|
Much as she had suffered from her first conversation
|
|
with Lucy on the subject, she soon felt an earnest wish
|
|
of renewing it; and this for more reasons than one.
|
|
She wanted to hear many particulars of their engagement
|
|
repeated again, she wanted more clearly to understand
|
|
what Lucy really felt for Edward, whether there were any
|
|
sincerity in her declaration of tender regard for him,
|
|
and she particularly wanted to convince Lucy, by her
|
|
readiness to enter on the matter again, and her calmness
|
|
in conversing on it, that she was no otherwise interested
|
|
in it than as a friend, which she very much feared
|
|
her involuntary agitation, in their morning discourse,
|
|
must have left at least doubtful. That Lucy was disposed
|
|
to be jealous of her appeared very probable: it was plain
|
|
that Edward had always spoken highly in her praise,
|
|
not merely from Lucy's assertion, but from her venturing
|
|
to trust her on so short a personal acquaintance,
|
|
with a secret so confessedly and evidently important.
|
|
And even Sir John's joking intelligence must have had
|
|
some weight. But indeed, while Elinor remained so well
|
|
assured within herself of being really beloved by Edward,
|
|
it required no other consideration of probabilities
|
|
to make it natural that Lucy should be jealous;
|
|
and that she was so, her very confidence was a proof.
|
|
What other reason for the disclosure of the affair could
|
|
there be, but that Elinor might be informed by it of Lucy's
|
|
superior claims on Edward, and be taught to avoid him
|
|
in future? She had little difficulty in understanding thus
|
|
much of her rival's intentions, and while she was firmly
|
|
resolved to act by her as every principle of honour and
|
|
honesty directed, to combat her own affection for Edward
|
|
and to see him as little as possible; she could not deny
|
|
herself the comfort of endeavouring to convince Lucy
|
|
that her heart was unwounded. And as she could now have
|
|
nothing more painful to hear on the subject than had already
|
|
been told, she did not mistrust her own ability of going
|
|
through a repetition of particulars with composure.
|
|
|
|
But it was not immediately that an opportunity
|
|
of doing so could be commanded, though Lucy was as well
|
|
disposed as herself to take advantage of any that occurred;
|
|
for the weather was not often fine enough to allow
|
|
of their joining in a walk, where they might most easily
|
|
separate themselves from the others; and though they
|
|
met at least every other evening either at the park
|
|
or cottage, and chiefly at the former, they could
|
|
not be supposed to meet for the sake of conversation.
|
|
Such a thought would never enter either Sir John or Lady
|
|
Middleton's head; and therefore very little leisure
|
|
was ever given for a general chat, and none at all for
|
|
particular discourse. They met for the sake of eating,
|
|
drinking, and laughing together, playing at cards,
|
|
or consequences, or any other game that was sufficiently noisy.
|
|
|
|
One or two meetings of this kind had taken place,
|
|
without affording Elinor any chance of engaging Lucy
|
|
in private, when Sir John called at the cottage one morning,
|
|
to beg, in the name of charity, that they would all
|
|
dine with Lady Middleton that day, as he was obliged
|
|
to attend the club at Exeter, and she would otherwise be
|
|
quite alone, except her mother and the two Miss Steeles.
|
|
Elinor, who foresaw a fairer opening for the point she
|
|
had in view, in such a party as this was likely to be,
|
|
more at liberty among themselves under the tranquil
|
|
and well-bred direction of Lady Middleton than when
|
|
her husband united them together in one noisy purpose,
|
|
immediately accepted the invitation; Margaret, with her
|
|
mother's permission, was equally compliant, and Marianne,
|
|
though always unwilling to join any of their parties,
|
|
was persuaded by her mother, who could not bear to have her
|
|
seclude herself from any chance of amusement, to go likewise.
|
|
|
|
The young ladies went, and Lady Middleton was happily
|
|
preserved from the frightful solitude which had threatened her.
|
|
The insipidity of the meeting was exactly such as Elinor
|
|
had expected; it produced not one novelty of thought
|
|
or expression, and nothing could be less interesting
|
|
than the whole of their discourse both in the dining
|
|
parlour and drawing room: to the latter, the children
|
|
accompanied them, and while they remained there, she was
|
|
too well convinced of the impossibility of engaging Lucy's
|
|
attention to attempt it. They quitted it only with the
|
|
removal of the tea-things. The card-table was then placed,
|
|
and Elinor began to wonder at herself for having ever
|
|
entertained a hope of finding time for conversation
|
|
at the park. They all rose up in preparation for a round game.
|
|
|
|
"I am glad," said Lady Middleton to Lucy,
|
|
"you are not going to finish poor little Annamaria's
|
|
basket this evening; for I am sure it must hurt your
|
|
eyes to work filigree by candlelight. And we will make
|
|
the dear little love some amends for her disappointment
|
|
to-morrow, and then I hope she will not much mind it."
|
|
|
|
This hint was enough, Lucy recollected herself instantly
|
|
and replied, "Indeed you are very much mistaken,
|
|
Lady Middleton; I am only waiting to know whether you can
|
|
make your party without me, or I should have been at my
|
|
filigree already. I would not disappoint the little angel
|
|
for all the world: and if you want me at the card-table now,
|
|
I am resolved to finish the basket after supper."
|
|
|
|
"You are very good, I hope it won't hurt your eyes--
|
|
will you ring the bell for some working candles?
|
|
My poor little girl would be sadly disappointed, I know,
|
|
if the basket was not finished tomorrow, for though I
|
|
told her it certainly would not, I am sure she depends
|
|
upon having it done."
|
|
|
|
Lucy directly drew her work table near her
|
|
and reseated herself with an alacrity and cheerfulness
|
|
which seemed to infer that she could taste no greater
|
|
delight than in making a filigree basket for a spoilt child.
|
|
|
|
Lady Middleton proposed a rubber of Casino to the others.
|
|
No one made any objection but Marianne, who with her usual
|
|
inattention to the forms of general civility, exclaimed,
|
|
"Your Ladyship will have the goodness to excuse ME--you
|
|
know I detest cards. I shall go to the piano-forte;
|
|
I have not touched it since it was tuned." And without
|
|
farther ceremony, she turned away and walked to the instrument.
|
|
|
|
Lady Middleton looked as if she thanked heaven
|
|
that SHE had never made so rude a speech.
|
|
|
|
"Marianne can never keep long from that instrument
|
|
you know, ma'am," said Elinor, endeavouring to smooth
|
|
away the offence; "and I do not much wonder at it; for it
|
|
is the very best toned piano-forte I ever heard."
|
|
|
|
The remaining five were now to draw their cards.
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps," continued Elinor, "if I should happen
|
|
to cut out, I may be of some use to Miss Lucy Steele,
|
|
in rolling her papers for her; and there is so much still
|
|
to be done to the basket, that it must be impossible
|
|
I think for her labour singly, to finish it this evening.
|
|
I should like the work exceedingly, if she would allow
|
|
me a share in it."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed I shall be very much obliged to you
|
|
for your help," cried Lucy, "for I find there is more
|
|
to be done to it than I thought there was; and it would
|
|
be a shocking thing to disappoint dear Annamaria after all."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! that would be terrible, indeed," said Miss Steele--
|
|
"Dear little soul, how I do love her!"
|
|
|
|
"You are very kind," said Lady Middleton to Elinor;
|
|
"and as you really like the work, perhaps you will be
|
|
as well pleased not to cut in till another rubber,
|
|
or will you take your chance now?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor joyfully profited by the first of these proposals,
|
|
and thus by a little of that address which Marianne
|
|
could never condescend to practise, gained her own end,
|
|
and pleased Lady Middleton at the same time. Lucy made room
|
|
for her with ready attention, and the two fair rivals were
|
|
thus seated side by side at the same table, and, with the
|
|
utmost harmony, engaged in forwarding the same work.
|
|
The pianoforte at which Marianne, wrapped up in her own
|
|
music and her own thoughts, had by this time forgotten
|
|
that any body was in the room besides herself, was luckily
|
|
so near them that Miss Dashwood now judged she might safely,
|
|
under the shelter of its noise, introduce the interesting
|
|
subject, without any risk of being heard at the card-table.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 24
|
|
|
|
In a firm, though cautious tone, Elinor thus began.
|
|
|
|
"I should be undeserving of the confidence you have
|
|
honoured me with, if I felt no desire for its continuance,
|
|
or no farther curiosity on its subject. I will
|
|
not apologize therefore for bringing it forward again."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you," cried Lucy warmly, "for breaking
|
|
the ice; you have set my heart at ease by it; for I was
|
|
somehow or other afraid I had offended you by what I
|
|
told you that Monday."
|
|
|
|
"Offended me! How could you suppose so? Believe me,"
|
|
and Elinor spoke it with the truest sincerity,
|
|
"nothing could be farther from my intention than to give
|
|
you such an idea. Could you have a motive for the trust,
|
|
that was not honourable and flattering to me?"
|
|
|
|
"And yet I do assure you," replied Lucy, her little
|
|
sharp eyes full of meaning, "there seemed to me to be
|
|
a coldness and displeasure in your manner that made me
|
|
quite uncomfortable. I felt sure that you was angry with me;
|
|
and have been quarrelling with myself ever since, for having
|
|
took such a liberty as to trouble you with my affairs.
|
|
But I am very glad to find it was only my own fancy,
|
|
and that you really do not blame me. If you knew what a
|
|
consolation it was to me to relieve my heart speaking to you
|
|
of what I am always thinking of every moment of my life,
|
|
your compassion would make you overlook every thing else
|
|
I am sure."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed, I can easily believe that it was a very great
|
|
relief to you, to acknowledge your situation to me, and be
|
|
assured that you shall never have reason to repent it.
|
|
Your case is a very unfortunate one; you seem to me to
|
|
be surrounded with difficulties, and you will have need
|
|
of all your mutual affection to support you under them.
|
|
Mr. Ferrars, I believe, is entirely dependent on his mother."
|
|
|
|
"He has only two thousand pounds of his own; it would
|
|
be madness to marry upon that, though for my own part,
|
|
I could give up every prospect of more without a sigh.
|
|
I have been always used to a very small income, and could
|
|
struggle with any poverty for him; but I love him too well
|
|
to be the selfish means of robbing him, perhaps, of all that
|
|
his mother might give him if he married to please her.
|
|
We must wait, it may be for many years. With almost every
|
|
other man in the world, it would be an alarming prospect;
|
|
but Edward's affection and constancy nothing can deprive me of
|
|
I know."
|
|
|
|
"That conviction must be every thing to you;
|
|
and he is undoubtedly supported by the same trust in your's.
|
|
If the strength of your reciprocal attachment had failed,
|
|
as between many people, and under many circumstances
|
|
it naturally would during a four years' engagement,
|
|
your situation would have been pitiable, indeed."
|
|
|
|
Lucy here looked up; but Elinor was careful
|
|
in guarding her countenance from every expression
|
|
that could give her words a suspicious tendency.
|
|
|
|
"Edward's love for me," said Lucy, "has been pretty
|
|
well put to the test, by our long, very long absence
|
|
since we were first engaged, and it has stood the trial
|
|
so well, that I should be unpardonable to doubt it now.
|
|
I can safely say that he has never gave me one moment's
|
|
alarm on that account from the first."
|
|
|
|
Elinor hardly knew whether to smile or sigh
|
|
at this assertion.
|
|
|
|
Lucy went on. "I am rather of a jealous temper too
|
|
by nature, and from our different situations in life,
|
|
from his being so much more in the world than me, and our
|
|
continual separation, I was enough inclined for suspicion,
|
|
to have found out the truth in an instant, if there had been
|
|
the slightest alteration in his behaviour to me when we met,
|
|
or any lowness of spirits that I could not account for,
|
|
or if he had talked more of one lady than another,
|
|
or seemed in any respect less happy at Longstaple than he
|
|
used to be. I do not mean to say that I am particularly
|
|
observant or quick-sighted in general, but in such a case
|
|
I am sure I could not be deceived."
|
|
|
|
"All this," thought Elinor, "is very pretty;
|
|
but it can impose upon neither of us."
|
|
|
|
"But what," said she after a short silence,
|
|
"are your views? or have you none but that of waiting for
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars's death, which is a melancholy and shocking
|
|
extremity?--Is her son determined to submit to this,
|
|
and to all the tediousness of the many years of suspense
|
|
in which it may involve you, rather than run the risk
|
|
of her displeasure for a while by owning the truth?"
|
|
|
|
"If we could be certain that it would be only
|
|
for a while! But Mrs. Ferrars is a very headstrong
|
|
proud woman, and in her first fit of anger upon hearing
|
|
it, would very likely secure every thing to Robert,
|
|
and the idea of that, for Edward's sake, frightens away
|
|
all my inclination for hasty measures."
|
|
|
|
"And for your own sake too, or you are carrying
|
|
your disinterestedness beyond reason."
|
|
|
|
Lucy looked at Elinor again, and was silent.
|
|
|
|
"Do you know Mr. Robert Ferrars?" asked Elinor.
|
|
|
|
"Not at all--I never saw him; but I fancy he
|
|
is very unlike his brother--silly and a great coxcomb."
|
|
|
|
"A great coxcomb!" repeated Miss Steele, whose ear had
|
|
caught those words by a sudden pause in Marianne's music.--
|
|
"Oh, they are talking of their favourite beaux, I dare say."
|
|
|
|
"No sister," cried Lucy, "you are mistaken there, our
|
|
favourite beaux are NOT great coxcombs."
|
|
|
|
"I can answer for it that Miss Dashwood's is not,"
|
|
said Mrs. Jennings, laughing heartily; "for he is one
|
|
of the modestest, prettiest behaved young men I ever saw;
|
|
but as for Lucy, she is such a sly little creature,
|
|
there is no finding out who SHE likes."
|
|
|
|
"Oh," cried Miss Steele, looking significantly round
|
|
at them, "I dare say Lucy's beau is quite as modest
|
|
and pretty behaved as Miss Dashwood's."
|
|
|
|
Elinor blushed in spite of herself. Lucy bit her lip,
|
|
and looked angrily at her sister. A mutual silence took
|
|
place for some time. Lucy first put an end to it by saying
|
|
in a lower tone, though Marianne was then giving them
|
|
the powerful protection of a very magnificent concerto--
|
|
|
|
"I will honestly tell you of one scheme which has
|
|
lately come into my head, for bringing matters to bear;
|
|
indeed I am bound to let you into the secret, for you
|
|
are a party concerned. I dare say you have seen enough
|
|
of Edward to know that he would prefer the church to every
|
|
other profession; now my plan is that he should take
|
|
orders as soon as he can, and then through your interest,
|
|
which I am sure you would be kind enough to use out of
|
|
friendship for him, and I hope out of some regard to me,
|
|
your brother might be persuaded to give him Norland living;
|
|
which I understand is a very good one, and the present
|
|
incumbent not likely to live a great while. That would
|
|
be enough for us to marry upon, and we might trust to time
|
|
and chance for the rest."
|
|
|
|
"I should always be happy," replied Elinor, "to show
|
|
any mark of my esteem and friendship for Mr. Ferrars;
|
|
but do you not perceive that my interest on such an
|
|
occasion would be perfectly unnecessary? He is brother
|
|
to Mrs. John Dashwood--THAT must be recommendation enough
|
|
to her husband."
|
|
|
|
"But Mrs. John Dashwood would not much approve
|
|
of Edward's going into orders."
|
|
|
|
"Then I rather suspect that my interest would
|
|
do very little."
|
|
|
|
They were again silent for many minutes. At length
|
|
Lucy exclaimed with a deep sigh,
|
|
|
|
"I believe it would be the wisest way to put an end
|
|
to the business at once by dissolving the engagement.
|
|
We seem so beset with difficulties on every side,
|
|
that though it would make us miserable for a time,
|
|
we should be happier perhaps in the end. But you will
|
|
not give me your advice, Miss Dashwood?"
|
|
|
|
"No," answered Elinor, with a smile, which concealed
|
|
very agitated feelings, "on such a subject I certainly
|
|
will not. You know very well that my opinion would have
|
|
no weight with you, unless it were on the side of your wishes."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed you wrong me," replied Lucy, with great
|
|
solemnity; "I know nobody of whose judgment I think
|
|
so highly as I do of yours; and I do really believe,
|
|
that if you was to say to me, 'I advise you by all means
|
|
to put an end to your engagement with Edward Ferrars,
|
|
it will be more for the happiness of both of you,'
|
|
I should resolve upon doing it immediately."
|
|
|
|
Elinor blushed for the insincerity of Edward's
|
|
future wife, and replied, "This compliment would effectually
|
|
frighten me from giving any opinion on the subject
|
|
had I formed one. It raises my influence much too high;
|
|
the power of dividing two people so tenderly attached
|
|
is too much for an indifferent person."
|
|
|
|
"'Tis because you are an indifferent person," said Lucy,
|
|
with some pique, and laying a particular stress on those words,
|
|
"that your judgment might justly have such weight with me.
|
|
If you could be supposed to be biased in any respect
|
|
by your own feelings, your opinion would not be worth having."
|
|
|
|
Elinor thought it wisest to make no answer to this,
|
|
lest they might provoke each other to an unsuitable increase
|
|
of ease and unreserve; and was even partly determined
|
|
never to mention the subject again. Another pause
|
|
therefore of many minutes' duration, succeeded this speech,
|
|
and Lucy was still the first to end it.
|
|
|
|
"Shall you be in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?"
|
|
said she with all her accustomary complacency.
|
|
|
|
"Certainly not."
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry for that," returned the other,
|
|
while her eyes brightened at the information,
|
|
"it would have gave me such pleasure to meet you there!
|
|
But I dare say you will go for all that. To be sure,
|
|
your brother and sister will ask you to come to them."
|
|
|
|
"It will not be in my power to accept their invitation
|
|
if they do."
|
|
|
|
"How unlucky that is! I had quite depended upon
|
|
meeting you there. Anne and me are to go the latter end
|
|
of January to some relations who have been wanting us to
|
|
visit them these several years! But I only go for the sake
|
|
of seeing Edward. He will be there in February, otherwise
|
|
London would have no charms for me; I have not spirits for it."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was soon called to the card-table by the
|
|
conclusion of the first rubber, and the confidential
|
|
discourse of the two ladies was therefore at an end,
|
|
to which both of them submitted without any reluctance,
|
|
for nothing had been said on either side to make them
|
|
dislike each other less than they had done before;
|
|
and Elinor sat down to the card table with the melancholy
|
|
persuasion that Edward was not only without affection
|
|
for the person who was to be his wife; but that he had
|
|
not even the chance of being tolerably happy in marriage,
|
|
which sincere affection on HER side would have given,
|
|
for self-interest alone could induce a woman to keep a man
|
|
to an engagement, of which she seemed so thoroughly aware
|
|
that he was weary.
|
|
|
|
From this time the subject was never revived by Elinor,
|
|
and when entered on by Lucy, who seldom missed an opportunity
|
|
of introducing it, and was particularly careful to inform
|
|
her confidante, of her happiness whenever she received a letter
|
|
from Edward, it was treated by the former with calmness
|
|
and caution, and dismissed as soon as civility would allow;
|
|
for she felt such conversations to be an indulgence which
|
|
Lucy did not deserve, and which were dangerous to herself.
|
|
|
|
The visit of the Miss Steeles at Barton Park was
|
|
lengthened far beyond what the first invitation implied.
|
|
Their favour increased; they could not be spared;
|
|
Sir John would not hear of their going; and in spite
|
|
of their numerous and long arranged engagements in Exeter,
|
|
in spite of the absolute necessity of returning to fulfill
|
|
them immediately, which was in full force at the end
|
|
of every week, they were prevailed on to stay nearly two
|
|
months at the park, and to assist in the due celebration
|
|
of that festival which requires a more than ordinary
|
|
share of private balls and large dinners to proclaim
|
|
its importance.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 25
|
|
|
|
Though Mrs. Jennings was in the habit of spending a large
|
|
portion of the year at the houses of her children and friends,
|
|
she was not without a settled habitation of her own.
|
|
Since the death of her husband, who had traded with success
|
|
in a less elegant part of the town, she had resided every
|
|
winter in a house in one of the streets near Portman Square.
|
|
Towards this home, she began on the approach of January
|
|
to turn her thoughts, and thither she one day abruptly,
|
|
and very unexpectedly by them, asked the elder Misses
|
|
Dashwood to accompany her. Elinor, without observing
|
|
the varying complexion of her sister, and the animated look
|
|
which spoke no indifference to the plan, immediately gave
|
|
a grateful but absolute denial for both, in which she
|
|
believed herself to be speaking their united inclinations.
|
|
The reason alleged was their determined resolution
|
|
of not leaving their mother at that time of the year.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings received the refusal with some surprise,
|
|
and repeated her invitation immediately.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, Lord! I am sure your mother can spare you
|
|
very well, and I DO beg you will favour me with
|
|
your company, for I've quite set my heart upon it.
|
|
Don't fancy that you will be any inconvenience to me,
|
|
for I shan't put myself at all out of my way for you.
|
|
It will only be sending Betty by the coach, and I
|
|
hope I can afford THAT. We three shall be able to go
|
|
very well in my chaise; and when we are in town,
|
|
if you do not like to go wherever I do, well and good,
|
|
you may always go with one of my daughters. I am sure
|
|
your mother will not object to it; for I have had such
|
|
good luck in getting my own children off my hands that she
|
|
will think me a very fit person to have the charge of you;
|
|
and if I don't get one of you at least well married
|
|
before I have done with you, it shall not be my fault.
|
|
I shall speak a good word for you to all the young men,
|
|
you may depend upon it."
|
|
|
|
"I have a notion," said Sir John, "that Miss Marianne
|
|
would not object to such a scheme, if her elder sister
|
|
would come into it. It is very hard indeed that she
|
|
should not have a little pleasure, because Miss Dashwood
|
|
does not wish it. So I would advise you two, to set off
|
|
for town, when you are tired of Barton, without saying
|
|
a word to Miss Dashwood about it."
|
|
|
|
"Nay," cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure I shall be
|
|
monstrous glad of Miss Marianne's company, whether Miss
|
|
Dashwood will go or not, only the more the merrier say I,
|
|
and I thought it would be more comfortable for them to
|
|
be together; because, if they got tired of me, they might talk
|
|
to one another, and laugh at my old ways behind my back.
|
|
But one or the other, if not both of them, I must have.
|
|
Lord bless me! how do you think I can live poking by myself,
|
|
I who have been always used till this winter to have
|
|
Charlotte with me. Come, Miss Marianne, let us strike
|
|
hands upon the bargain, and if Miss Dashwood will change
|
|
her mind by and bye, why so much the better."
|
|
|
|
"I thank you, ma'am, sincerely thank you," said Marianne,
|
|
with warmth: "your invitation has insured my gratitude for ever,
|
|
and it would give me such happiness, yes, almost the greatest
|
|
happiness I am capable of, to be able to accept it.
|
|
But my mother, my dearest, kindest mother,--I feel the
|
|
justice of what Elinor has urged, and if she were to be
|
|
made less happy, less comfortable by our absence--Oh! no,
|
|
nothing should tempt me to leave her. It should not,
|
|
must not be a struggle."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings repeated her assurance that Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
could spare them perfectly well; and Elinor, who now
|
|
understood her sister, and saw to what indifference to
|
|
almost every thing else she was carried by her eagerness
|
|
to be with Willoughby again, made no farther direct
|
|
opposition to the plan, and merely referred it to her
|
|
mother's decision, from whom however she scarcely expected
|
|
to receive any support in her endeavour to prevent a visit,
|
|
which she could not approve of for Marianne, and which
|
|
on her own account she had particular reasons to avoid.
|
|
Whatever Marianne was desirous of, her mother would be eager
|
|
to promote--she could not expect to influence the latter
|
|
to cautiousness of conduct in an affair respecting which she
|
|
had never been able to inspire her with distrust; and she
|
|
dared not explain the motive of her own disinclination
|
|
for going to London. That Marianne, fastidious as she was,
|
|
thoroughly acquainted with Mrs. Jennings' manners,
|
|
and invariably disgusted by them, should overlook every
|
|
inconvenience of that kind, should disregard whatever
|
|
must be most wounding to her irritable feelings, in her
|
|
pursuit of one object, was such a proof, so strong,
|
|
so full, of the importance of that object to her, as Elinor,
|
|
in spite of all that had passed, was not prepared to witness.
|
|
|
|
On being informed of the invitation, Mrs. Dashwood,
|
|
persuaded that such an excursion would be productive
|
|
of much amusement to both her daughters, and perceiving
|
|
through all her affectionate attention to herself,
|
|
how much the heart of Marianne was in it, would not hear
|
|
of their declining the offer upon HER account; insisted on
|
|
their both accepting it directly; and then began to foresee,
|
|
with her usual cheerfulness, a variety of advantages that
|
|
would accrue to them all, from this separation.
|
|
|
|
"I am delighted with the plan," she cried,
|
|
"it is exactly what I could wish. Margaret and I shall
|
|
be as much benefited by it as yourselves. When you
|
|
and the Middletons are gone, we shall go on so quietly
|
|
and happily together with our books and our music! You
|
|
will find Margaret so improved when you come back again!
|
|
I have a little plan of alteration for your bedrooms too,
|
|
which may now be performed without any inconvenience
|
|
to any one. It is very right that you SHOULD go to town;
|
|
I would have every young woman of your condition in life
|
|
acquainted with the manners and amusements of London.
|
|
You will be under the care of a motherly good sort
|
|
of woman, of whose kindness to you I can have no doubt.
|
|
And in all probability you will see your brother,
|
|
and whatever may be his faults, or the faults of his wife,
|
|
when I consider whose son he is, I cannot bear to have you so
|
|
wholly estranged from each other."
|
|
|
|
"Though with your usual anxiety for our happiness,"
|
|
said Elinor, "you have been obviating every impediment
|
|
to the present scheme which occurred to you, there is
|
|
still one objection which, in my opinion, cannot be so
|
|
easily removed."
|
|
|
|
Marianne's countenance sunk.
|
|
|
|
"And what," said Mrs. Dashwood, "is my dear prudent
|
|
Elinor going to suggest? What formidable obstacle is she
|
|
now to bring forward? Do let me hear a word about the
|
|
expense of it."
|
|
|
|
"My objection is this; though I think very well of
|
|
Mrs. Jennings's heart, she is not a woman whose society
|
|
can afford us pleasure, or whose protection will give
|
|
us consequence."
|
|
|
|
"That is very true," replied her mother, "but of
|
|
her society, separately from that of other people,
|
|
you will scarcely have any thing at all, and you will
|
|
almost always appear in public with Lady Middleton."
|
|
|
|
"If Elinor is frightened away by her dislike of
|
|
Mrs. Jennings," said Marianne, "at least it need not prevent
|
|
MY accepting her invitation. I have no such scruples,
|
|
and I am sure I could put up with every unpleasantness
|
|
of that kind with very little effort."
|
|
|
|
Elinor could not help smiling at this display of
|
|
indifference towards the manners of a person, to whom she
|
|
had often had difficulty in persuading Marianne to behave
|
|
with tolerable politeness; and resolved within herself,
|
|
that if her sister persisted in going, she would
|
|
go likewise, as she did not think it proper that Marianne
|
|
should be left to the sole guidance of her own judgment,
|
|
or that Mrs. Jennings should be abandoned to the mercy
|
|
of Marianne for all the comfort of her domestic hours.
|
|
To this determination she was the more easily reconciled,
|
|
by recollecting that Edward Ferrars, by Lucy's account,
|
|
was not to be in town before February; and that
|
|
their visit, without any unreasonable abridgement,
|
|
might be previously finished.
|
|
|
|
"I will have you BOTH go," said Mrs. Dashwood;
|
|
"these objections are nonsensical. You will have much
|
|
pleasure in being in London, and especially in being together;
|
|
and if Elinor would ever condescend to anticipate enjoyment,
|
|
she would foresee it there from a variety of sources;
|
|
she would, perhaps, expect some from improving her
|
|
acquaintance with her sister-in-law's family."
|
|
|
|
Elinor had often wished for an opportunity of
|
|
attempting to weaken her mother's dependence on the
|
|
attachment of Edward and herself, that the shock might
|
|
be less when the whole truth were revealed, and now
|
|
on this attack, though almost hopeless of success,
|
|
she forced herself to begin her design by saying,
|
|
as calmly as she could, "I like Edward Ferrars very much,
|
|
and shall always be glad to see him; but as to the rest
|
|
of the family, it is a matter of perfect indifference
|
|
to me, whether I am ever known to them or not."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood smiled, and said nothing.
|
|
Marianne lifted up her eyes in astonishment, and Elinor
|
|
conjectured that she might as well have held her tongue.
|
|
|
|
After very little farther discourse, it was finally
|
|
settled that the invitation should be fully accepted.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings received the information with a great
|
|
deal of joy, and many assurances of kindness and care;
|
|
nor was it a matter of pleasure merely to her. Sir John
|
|
was delighted; for to a man, whose prevailing anxiety
|
|
was the dread of being alone, the acquisition of two,
|
|
to the number of inhabitants in London, was something.
|
|
Even Lady Middleton took the trouble of being delighted,
|
|
which was putting herself rather out of her way;
|
|
and as for the Miss Steeles, especially Lucy, they had
|
|
never been so happy in their lives as this intelligence
|
|
made them.
|
|
|
|
Elinor submitted to the arrangement which counteracted
|
|
her wishes with less reluctance than she had expected
|
|
to feel. With regard to herself, it was now a matter
|
|
of unconcern whether she went to town or not, and when
|
|
she saw her mother so thoroughly pleased with the plan,
|
|
and her sister exhilarated by it in look, voice, and manner,
|
|
restored to all her usual animation, and elevated to more
|
|
than her usual gaiety, she could not be dissatisfied
|
|
with the cause, and would hardly allow herself to distrust
|
|
the consequence.
|
|
|
|
Marianne's joy was almost a degree beyond happiness,
|
|
so great was the perturbation of her spirits and her
|
|
impatience to be gone. Her unwillingness to quit her
|
|
mother was her only restorative to calmness; and at the
|
|
moment of parting her grief on that score was excessive.
|
|
Her mother's affliction was hardly less, and Elinor
|
|
was the only one of the three, who seemed to consider
|
|
the separation as any thing short of eternal.
|
|
|
|
Their departure took place in the first week in January.
|
|
The Middletons were to follow in about a week. The Miss
|
|
Steeles kept their station at the park, and were to quit
|
|
it only with the rest of the family.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 26
|
|
|
|
Elinor could not find herself in the carriage with Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
and beginning a journey to London under her protection,
|
|
and as her guest, without wondering at her own situation,
|
|
so short had their acquaintance with that lady been,
|
|
so wholly unsuited were they in age and disposition,
|
|
and so many had been her objections against such a measure
|
|
only a few days before! But these objections had all,
|
|
with that happy ardour of youth which Marianne and her mother
|
|
equally shared, been overcome or overlooked; and Elinor,
|
|
in spite of every occasional doubt of Willoughby's constancy,
|
|
could not witness the rapture of delightful expectation
|
|
which filled the whole soul and beamed in the eyes
|
|
of Marianne, without feeling how blank was her own prospect,
|
|
how cheerless her own state of mind in the comparison,
|
|
and how gladly she would engage in the solicitude of
|
|
Marianne's situation to have the same animating object
|
|
in view, the same possibility of hope. A short, a very
|
|
short time however must now decide what Willoughby's
|
|
intentions were; in all probability he was already in town.
|
|
Marianne's eagerness to be gone declared her dependence
|
|
on finding him there; and Elinor was resolved not only upon
|
|
gaining every new light as to his character which her
|
|
own observation or the intelligence of others could give her,
|
|
but likewise upon watching his behaviour to her sister
|
|
with such zealous attention, as to ascertain what he was
|
|
and what he meant, before many meetings had taken place.
|
|
Should the result of her observations be unfavourable,
|
|
she was determined at all events to open the eyes
|
|
of her sister; should it be otherwise, her exertions
|
|
would be of a different nature--she must then learn
|
|
to avoid every selfish comparison, and banish every regret
|
|
which might lessen her satisfaction in the happiness of Marianne.
|
|
|
|
They were three days on their journey, and Marianne's
|
|
behaviour as they travelled was a happy specimen of what
|
|
future complaisance and companionableness to Mrs. Jennings
|
|
might be expected to be. She sat in silence almost all
|
|
the way, wrapt in her own meditations, and scarcely ever
|
|
voluntarily speaking, except when any object of picturesque
|
|
beauty within their view drew from her an exclamation
|
|
of delight exclusively addressed to her sister. To atone
|
|
for this conduct therefore, Elinor took immediate possession
|
|
of the post of civility which she had assigned herself,
|
|
behaved with the greatest attention to Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
talked with her, laughed with her, and listened to her
|
|
whenever she could; and Mrs. Jennings on her side
|
|
treated them both with all possible kindness, was solicitous
|
|
on every occasion for their ease and enjoyment, and only
|
|
disturbed that she could not make them choose their own
|
|
dinners at the inn, nor extort a confession of their
|
|
preferring salmon to cod, or boiled fowls to veal cutlets.
|
|
They reached town by three o'clock the third day, glad to
|
|
be released, after such a journey, from the confinement
|
|
of a carriage, and ready to enjoy all the luxury of a good fire.
|
|
|
|
The house was handsome, and handsomely fitted up,
|
|
and the young ladies were immediately put in possession
|
|
of a very comfortable apartment. It had formerly
|
|
been Charlotte's, and over the mantelpiece still hung
|
|
a landscape in coloured silks of her performance,
|
|
in proof of her having spent seven years at a great school
|
|
in town to some effect.
|
|
|
|
As dinner was not to be ready in less than two
|
|
hours from their arrival, Elinor determined to employ
|
|
the interval in writing to her mother, and sat down for
|
|
that purpose. In a few moments Marianne did the same.
|
|
"I am writing home, Marianne," said Elinor; "had not you
|
|
better defer your letter for a day or two?"
|
|
|
|
"I am NOT going to write to my mother,"
|
|
replied Marianne, hastily, and as if wishing to avoid
|
|
any farther inquiry. Elinor said no more; it immediately
|
|
struck her that she must then be writing to Willoughby;
|
|
and the conclusion which as instantly followed was,
|
|
that, however mysteriously they might wish to conduct
|
|
the affair, they must be engaged. This conviction,
|
|
though not entirely satisfactory, gave her pleasure,
|
|
and she continued her letter with greater alacrity.
|
|
Marianne's was finished in a very few minutes;
|
|
in length it could be no more than a note; it was then
|
|
folded up, sealed, and directed with eager rapidity.
|
|
Elinor thought she could distinguish a large W in
|
|
the direction; and no sooner was it complete than Marianne,
|
|
ringing the bell, requested the footman who answered it
|
|
to get that letter conveyed for her to the two-penny post.
|
|
This decided the matter at once.
|
|
|
|
Her spirits still continued very high; but there
|
|
was a flutter in them which prevented their giving much
|
|
pleasure to her sister, and this agitation increased as
|
|
the evening drew on. She could scarcely eat any dinner,
|
|
and when they afterwards returned to the drawing room,
|
|
seemed anxiously listening to the sound of every carriage.
|
|
|
|
It was a great satisfaction to Elinor that Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
by being much engaged in her own room, could see little
|
|
of what was passing. The tea things were brought in,
|
|
and already had Marianne been disappointed more than once
|
|
by a rap at a neighbouring door, when a loud one was suddenly
|
|
heard which could not be mistaken for one at any other house,
|
|
Elinor felt secure of its announcing Willoughby's approach,
|
|
and Marianne, starting up, moved towards the door.
|
|
Every thing was silent; this could not be borne many seconds;
|
|
she opened the door, advanced a few steps towards the stairs,
|
|
and after listening half a minute, returned into the room
|
|
in all the agitation which a conviction of having heard
|
|
him would naturally produce; in the ecstasy of her
|
|
feelings at that instant she could not help exclaiming,
|
|
"Oh, Elinor, it is Willoughby, indeed it is!" and seemed
|
|
almost ready to throw herself into his arms, when Colonel
|
|
Brandon appeared.
|
|
|
|
It was too great a shock to be borne with calmness,
|
|
and she immediately left the room. Elinor was disappointed too;
|
|
but at the same time her regard for Colonel Brandon ensured
|
|
his welcome with her; and she felt particularly hurt that
|
|
a man so partial to her sister should perceive that she
|
|
experienced nothing but grief and disappointment in seeing him.
|
|
She instantly saw that it was not unnoticed by him,
|
|
that he even observed Marianne as she quitted the room,
|
|
with such astonishment and concern, as hardly left him
|
|
the recollection of what civility demanded towards herself.
|
|
|
|
"Is your sister ill?" said he.
|
|
|
|
Elinor answered in some distress that she was,
|
|
and then talked of head-aches, low spirits, and over fatigues;
|
|
and of every thing to which she could decently attribute
|
|
her sister's behaviour.
|
|
|
|
He heard her with the most earnest attention,
|
|
but seeming to recollect himself, said no more on the subject,
|
|
and began directly to speak of his pleasure at seeing them
|
|
in London, making the usual inquiries about their journey,
|
|
and the friends they had left behind.
|
|
|
|
In this calm kind of way, with very little interest
|
|
on either side, they continued to talk, both of them out
|
|
of spirits, and the thoughts of both engaged elsewhere.
|
|
Elinor wished very much to ask whether Willoughby were
|
|
then in town, but she was afraid of giving him pain
|
|
by any enquiry after his rival; and at length, by way
|
|
of saying something, she asked if he had been in London
|
|
ever since she had seen him last. "Yes," he replied,
|
|
with some embarrassment, "almost ever since; I have been
|
|
once or twice at Delaford for a few days, but it has never
|
|
been in my power to return to Barton."
|
|
|
|
This, and the manner in which it was said,
|
|
immediately brought back to her remembrance all the
|
|
circumstances of his quitting that place, with the
|
|
uneasiness and suspicions they had caused to Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
and she was fearful that her question had implied
|
|
much more curiosity on the subject than she had ever felt.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings soon came in. "Oh! Colonel," said she,
|
|
with her usual noisy cheerfulness, "I am monstrous glad
|
|
to see you--sorry I could not come before--beg your
|
|
pardon, but I have been forced to look about me a little,
|
|
and settle my matters; for it is a long while since I
|
|
have been at home, and you know one has always a world
|
|
of little odd things to do after one has been away for
|
|
any time; and then I have had Cartwright to settle with--
|
|
Lord, I have been as busy as a bee ever since dinner!
|
|
But pray, Colonel, how came you to conjure out that I should
|
|
be in town today?"
|
|
|
|
"I had the pleasure of hearing it at Mr. Palmer's,
|
|
where I have been dining."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, you did; well, and how do they all do at their
|
|
house? How does Charlotte do? I warrant you she is a fine
|
|
size by this time."
|
|
|
|
"Mrs. Palmer appeared quite well, and I am commissioned
|
|
to tell you, that you will certainly see her to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"Ay, to be sure, I thought as much. Well, Colonel,
|
|
I have brought two young ladies with me, you see--that is,
|
|
you see but one of them now, but there is another somewhere.
|
|
Your friend, Miss Marianne, too--which you will not be
|
|
sorry to hear. I do not know what you and Mr. Willoughby
|
|
will do between you about her. Ay, it is a fine thing
|
|
to be young and handsome. Well! I was young once, but I
|
|
never was very handsome--worse luck for me. However, I got
|
|
a very good husband, and I don't know what the greatest
|
|
beauty can do more. Ah! poor man! he has been dead
|
|
these eight years and better. But Colonel, where have
|
|
you been to since we parted? And how does your business
|
|
go on? Come, come, let's have no secrets among friends."
|
|
|
|
He replied with his accustomary mildness to all
|
|
her inquiries, but without satisfying her in any.
|
|
Elinor now began to make the tea, and Marianne was
|
|
obliged to appear again.
|
|
|
|
After her entrance, Colonel Brandon became
|
|
more thoughtful and silent than he had been before,
|
|
and Mrs. Jennings could not prevail on him to stay long.
|
|
No other visitor appeared that evening, and the ladies
|
|
were unanimous in agreeing to go early to bed.
|
|
|
|
Marianne rose the next morning with recovered spirits
|
|
and happy looks. The disappointment of the evening before
|
|
seemed forgotten in the expectation of what was to happen
|
|
that day. They had not long finished their breakfast before
|
|
Mrs. Palmer's barouche stopped at the door, and in a few
|
|
minutes she came laughing into the room: so delighted
|
|
to see them all, that it was hard to say whether she
|
|
received most pleasure from meeting her mother or the Miss
|
|
Dashwoods again. So surprised at their coming to town,
|
|
though it was what she had rather expected all along;
|
|
so angry at their accepting her mother's invitation
|
|
after having declined her own, though at the same time
|
|
she would never have forgiven them if they had not come!
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Palmer will be so happy to see you,"
|
|
said she; "What do you think he said when he heard
|
|
of your coming with Mamma? I forget what it was now,
|
|
but it was something so droll!"
|
|
|
|
After an hour or two spent in what her mother called
|
|
comfortable chat, or in other words, in every variety of inquiry
|
|
concerning all their acquaintance on Mrs. Jennings's side,
|
|
and in laughter without cause on Mrs. Palmer's, it was
|
|
proposed by the latter that they should all accompany
|
|
her to some shops where she had business that morning,
|
|
to which Mrs. Jennings and Elinor readily consented,
|
|
as having likewise some purchases to make themselves;
|
|
and Marianne, though declining it at first was induced
|
|
to go likewise.
|
|
|
|
Wherever they went, she was evidently always on
|
|
the watch. In Bond Street especially, where much of
|
|
their business lay, her eyes were in constant inquiry;
|
|
and in whatever shop the party were engaged, her mind was
|
|
equally abstracted from every thing actually before them,
|
|
from all that interested and occupied the others.
|
|
Restless and dissatisfied every where, her sister could
|
|
never obtain her opinion of any article of purchase,
|
|
however it might equally concern them both: she received
|
|
no pleasure from anything; was only impatient to be at
|
|
home again, and could with difficulty govern her vexation
|
|
at the tediousness of Mrs. Palmer, whose eye was caught
|
|
by every thing pretty, expensive, or new; who was wild
|
|
to buy all, could determine on none, and dawdled away her
|
|
time in rapture and indecision.
|
|
|
|
It was late in the morning before they returned home;
|
|
and no sooner had they entered the house than Marianne flew
|
|
eagerly up stairs, and when Elinor followed, she found
|
|
her turning from the table with a sorrowful countenance,
|
|
which declared that no Willoughby had been there.
|
|
|
|
"Has no letter been left here for me since we went out?"
|
|
said she to the footman who then entered with the parcels.
|
|
She was answered in the negative. "Are you quite sure
|
|
of it?" she replied. "Are you certain that no servant,
|
|
no porter has left any letter or note?"
|
|
|
|
The man replied that none had.
|
|
|
|
"How very odd!" said she, in a low and disappointed
|
|
voice, as she turned away to the window.
|
|
|
|
"How odd, indeed!" repeated Elinor within herself,
|
|
regarding her sister with uneasiness. "If she had not
|
|
known him to be in town she would not have written to him,
|
|
as she did; she would have written to Combe Magna;
|
|
and if he is in town, how odd that he should neither
|
|
come nor write! Oh! my dear mother, you must be wrong
|
|
in permitting an engagement between a daughter so young,
|
|
a man so little known, to be carried on in so doubtful,
|
|
so mysterious a manner! I long to inquire; and how will MY
|
|
interference be borne."
|
|
|
|
She determined, after some consideration, that if
|
|
appearances continued many days longer as unpleasant as they
|
|
now were, she would represent in the strongest manner
|
|
to her mother the necessity of some serious enquiry into the affair.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Palmer and two elderly ladies of Mrs. Jennings's
|
|
intimate acquaintance, whom she had met and invited
|
|
in the morning, dined with them. The former left them
|
|
soon after tea to fulfill her evening engagements;
|
|
and Elinor was obliged to assist in making a whist table
|
|
for the others. Marianne was of no use on these occasions,
|
|
as she would never learn the game; but though her time
|
|
was therefore at her own disposal, the evening was by no
|
|
means more productive of pleasure to her than to Elinor,
|
|
for it was spent in all the anxiety of expectation and the
|
|
pain of disappointment. She sometimes endeavoured for a
|
|
few minutes to read; but the book was soon thrown aside,
|
|
and she returned to the more interesting employment
|
|
of walking backwards and forwards across the room,
|
|
pausing for a moment whenever she came to the window,
|
|
in hopes of distinguishing the long-expected rap.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 27
|
|
|
|
"If this open weather holds much longer," said Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
when they met at breakfast the following morning,
|
|
"Sir John will not like leaving Barton next week;
|
|
'tis a sad thing for sportsmen to lose a day's pleasure.
|
|
Poor souls! I always pity them when they do; they seem
|
|
to take it so much to heart."
|
|
|
|
"That is true," cried Marianne, in a cheerful voice,
|
|
and walking to the window as she spoke, to examine the day.
|
|
"I had not thought of that. This weather will keep many
|
|
sportsmen in the country."
|
|
|
|
It was a lucky recollection, all her good spirits were
|
|
restored by it. "It is charming weather for THEM indeed,"
|
|
she continued, as she sat down to the breakfast table
|
|
with a happy countenance. "How much they must enjoy
|
|
it! But" (with a little return of anxiety) "it cannot
|
|
be expected to last long. At this time of the year,
|
|
and after such a series of rain, we shall certainly
|
|
have very little more of it. Frosts will soon set in,
|
|
and in all probability with severity. In another day
|
|
or two perhaps; this extreme mildness can hardly last
|
|
longer--nay, perhaps it may freeze tonight!"
|
|
|
|
"At any rate," said Elinor, wishing to prevent
|
|
Mrs. Jennings from seeing her sister's thoughts as clearly
|
|
as she did, "I dare say we shall have Sir John and Lady
|
|
Middleton in town by the end of next week."
|
|
|
|
"Ay, my dear, I'll warrant you we do. Mary always
|
|
has her own way."
|
|
|
|
"And now," silently conjectured Elinor, "she will
|
|
write to Combe by this day's post."
|
|
|
|
But if she DID, the letter was written and sent away
|
|
with a privacy which eluded all her watchfulness to ascertain
|
|
the fact. Whatever the truth of it might be, and far
|
|
as Elinor was from feeling thorough contentment about it,
|
|
yet while she saw Marianne in spirits, she could not be
|
|
very uncomfortable herself. And Marianne was in spirits;
|
|
happy in the mildness of the weather, and still happier
|
|
in her expectation of a frost.
|
|
|
|
The morning was chiefly spent in leaving cards at
|
|
the houses of Mrs. Jennings's acquaintance to inform
|
|
them of her being in town; and Marianne was all the time
|
|
busy in observing the direction of the wind, watching the
|
|
variations of the sky and imagining an alteration in the air.
|
|
|
|
"Don't you find it colder than it was in the morning,
|
|
Elinor? There seems to me a very decided difference.
|
|
I can hardly keep my hands warm even in my muff. It was
|
|
not so yesterday, I think. The clouds seem parting too,
|
|
the sun will be out in a moment, and we shall have a
|
|
clear afternoon."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was alternately diverted and pained;
|
|
but Marianne persevered, and saw every night in the
|
|
brightness of the fire, and every morning in the appearance
|
|
of the atmosphere, the certain symptoms of approaching frost.
|
|
|
|
The Miss Dashwoods had no greater reason to be
|
|
dissatisfied with Mrs. Jennings's style of living, and set
|
|
of acquaintance, than with her behaviour to themselves,
|
|
which was invariably kind. Every thing in her household
|
|
arrangements was conducted on the most liberal plan,
|
|
and excepting a few old city friends, whom, to Lady
|
|
Middleton's regret, she had never dropped, she visited
|
|
no one to whom an introduction could at all discompose
|
|
the feelings of her young companions. Pleased to find
|
|
herself more comfortably situated in that particular than
|
|
she had expected, Elinor was very willing to compound
|
|
for the want of much real enjoyment from any of their
|
|
evening parties, which, whether at home or abroad,
|
|
formed only for cards, could have little to amuse her.
|
|
|
|
Colonel Brandon, who had a general invitation
|
|
to the house, was with them almost every day; he came
|
|
to look at Marianne and talk to Elinor, who often derived
|
|
more satisfaction from conversing with him than from any
|
|
other daily occurrence, but who saw at the same time
|
|
with much concern his continued regard for her sister.
|
|
She feared it was a strengthening regard. It grieved her
|
|
to see the earnestness with which he often watched Marianne,
|
|
and his spirits were certainly worse than when at Barton.
|
|
|
|
About a week after their arrival, it became
|
|
certain that Willoughby was also arrived. His card
|
|
was on the table when they came in from the morning's drive.
|
|
|
|
"Good God!" cried Marianne, "he has been here while
|
|
we were out." Elinor, rejoiced to be assured of his
|
|
being in London, now ventured to say, "Depend upon it,
|
|
he will call again tomorrow." But Marianne seemed
|
|
hardly to hear her, and on Mrs. Jenning's entrance,
|
|
escaped with the precious card.
|
|
|
|
This event, while it raised the spirits of Elinor,
|
|
restored to those of her sister all, and more than all,
|
|
their former agitation. From this moment her mind was
|
|
never quiet; the expectation of seeing him every hour
|
|
of the day, made her unfit for any thing. She insisted
|
|
on being left behind, the next morning, when the others
|
|
went out.
|
|
|
|
Elinor's thoughts were full of what might be passing
|
|
in Berkeley Street during their absence; but a moment's
|
|
glance at her sister when they returned was enough to
|
|
inform her, that Willoughby had paid no second visit there.
|
|
A note was just then brought in, and laid on the table,
|
|
|
|
"For me!" cried Marianne, stepping hastily forward.
|
|
|
|
"No, ma'am, for my mistress."
|
|
|
|
But Marianne, not convinced, took it instantly up.
|
|
|
|
"It is indeed for Mrs. Jennings; how provoking!"
|
|
|
|
"You are expecting a letter, then?" said Elinor,
|
|
unable to be longer silent.
|
|
|
|
"Yes, a little--not much."
|
|
|
|
After a short pause. "You have no confidence
|
|
in me, Marianne."
|
|
|
|
"Nay, Elinor, this reproach from YOU--you who have
|
|
confidence in no one!"
|
|
|
|
"Me!" returned Elinor in some confusion; "indeed,
|
|
Marianne, I have nothing to tell."
|
|
|
|
"Nor I," answered Marianne with energy, "our situations
|
|
then are alike. We have neither of us any thing to tell;
|
|
you, because you do not communicate, and I, because
|
|
I conceal nothing."
|
|
|
|
Elinor, distressed by this charge of reserve in herself,
|
|
which she was not at liberty to do away, knew not how,
|
|
under such circumstances, to press for greater openness
|
|
in Marianne.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings soon appeared, and the note being
|
|
given her, she read it aloud. It was from Lady Middleton,
|
|
announcing their arrival in Conduit Street the night before,
|
|
and requesting the company of her mother and cousins
|
|
the following evening. Business on Sir John's part,
|
|
and a violent cold on her own, prevented their calling
|
|
in Berkeley Street. The invitation was accepted;
|
|
but when the hour of appointment drew near, necessary as
|
|
it was in common civility to Mrs. Jennings, that they
|
|
should both attend her on such a visit, Elinor had some
|
|
difficulty in persuading her sister to go, for still
|
|
she had seen nothing of Willoughby; and therefore was
|
|
not more indisposed for amusement abroad, than unwilling
|
|
to run the risk of his calling again in her absence.
|
|
|
|
Elinor found, when the evening was over,
|
|
that disposition is not materially altered by a change
|
|
of abode, for although scarcely settled in town,
|
|
Sir John had contrived to collect around him, nearly twenty
|
|
young people, and to amuse them with a ball. This was
|
|
an affair, however, of which Lady Middleton did not approve.
|
|
In the country, an unpremeditated dance was very allowable;
|
|
but in London, where the reputation of elegance was more
|
|
important and less easily attained, it was risking too much
|
|
for the gratification of a few girls, to have it known that
|
|
Lady Middleton had given a small dance of eight or nine couple,
|
|
with two violins, and a mere side-board collation.
|
|
|
|
Mr. and Mrs. Palmer were of the party; from the former,
|
|
whom they had not seen before since their arrival in town,
|
|
as he was careful to avoid the appearance of any attention
|
|
to his mother-in-law, and therefore never came near her,
|
|
they received no mark of recognition on their entrance.
|
|
He looked at them slightly, without seeming to know
|
|
who they were, and merely nodded to Mrs. Jennings from
|
|
the other side of the room. Marianne gave one glance
|
|
round the apartment as she entered: it was enough--HE
|
|
was not there--and she sat down, equally ill-disposed
|
|
to receive or communicate pleasure. After they had been
|
|
assembled about an hour, Mr. Palmer sauntered towards
|
|
the Miss Dashwoods to express his surprise on seeing them
|
|
in town, though Colonel Brandon had been first informed
|
|
of their arrival at his house, and he had himself said
|
|
something very droll on hearing that they were to come.
|
|
|
|
"I thought you were both in Devonshire," said he.
|
|
|
|
"Did you?" replied Elinor.
|
|
|
|
"When do you go back again?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know." And thus ended their discourse.
|
|
|
|
Never had Marianne been so unwilling to dance
|
|
in her life, as she was that evening, and never so much
|
|
fatigued by the exercise. She complained of it
|
|
as they returned to Berkeley Street.
|
|
|
|
"Aye, aye," said Mrs. Jennings, "we know the reason
|
|
of all that very well; if a certain person who shall
|
|
be nameless, had been there, you would not have been a
|
|
bit tired: and to say the truth it was not very pretty
|
|
of him not to give you the meeting when he was invited."
|
|
|
|
"Invited!" cried Marianne.
|
|
|
|
"So my daughter Middleton told me, for it seems Sir
|
|
John met him somewhere in the street this morning."
|
|
Marianne said no more, but looked exceedingly hurt.
|
|
Impatient in this situation to be doing something
|
|
that might lead to her sister's relief, Elinor resolved
|
|
to write the next morning to her mother, and hoped
|
|
by awakening her fears for the health of Marianne,
|
|
to procure those inquiries which had been so long delayed;
|
|
and she was still more eagerly bent on this measure
|
|
by perceiving after breakfast on the morrow, that Marianne
|
|
was again writing to Willoughby, for she could not suppose
|
|
it to be to any other person.
|
|
|
|
About the middle of the day, Mrs. Jennings went out by
|
|
herself on business, and Elinor began her letter directly,
|
|
while Marianne, too restless for employment, too anxious
|
|
for conversation, walked from one window to the other,
|
|
or sat down by the fire in melancholy meditation.
|
|
Elinor was very earnest in her application to her mother,
|
|
relating all that had passed, her suspicions of
|
|
Willoughby's inconstancy, urging her by every plea
|
|
of duty and affection to demand from Marianne an account
|
|
of her real situation with respect to him.
|
|
|
|
Her letter was scarcely finished, when a rap
|
|
foretold a visitor, and Colonel Brandon was announced.
|
|
Marianne, who had seen him from the window, and who hated
|
|
company of any kind, left the room before he entered it.
|
|
He looked more than usually grave, and though expressing
|
|
satisfaction at finding Miss Dashwood alone, as if he
|
|
had somewhat in particular to tell her, sat for some
|
|
time without saying a word. Elinor, persuaded that he
|
|
had some communication to make in which her sister
|
|
was concerned, impatiently expected its opening.
|
|
It was not the first time of her feeling the same kind
|
|
of conviction; for, more than once before, beginning with
|
|
the observation of "your sister looks unwell to-day,"
|
|
or "your sister seems out of spirits," he had appeared
|
|
on the point, either of disclosing, or of inquiring,
|
|
something particular about her. After a pause of several
|
|
minutes, their silence was broken, by his asking her
|
|
in a voice of some agitation, when he was to congratulate
|
|
her on the acquisition of a brother? Elinor was not
|
|
prepared for such a question, and having no answer ready,
|
|
was obliged to adopt the simple and common expedient,
|
|
of asking what he meant? He tried to smile as he replied,
|
|
"your sister's engagement to Mr. Willoughby is very generally known."
|
|
|
|
"It cannot be generally known," returned Elinor,
|
|
"for her own family do not know it."
|
|
|
|
He looked surprised and said, "I beg your pardon,
|
|
I am afraid my inquiry has been impertinent; but I had not
|
|
supposed any secrecy intended, as they openly correspond,
|
|
and their marriage is universally talked of."
|
|
|
|
"How can that be? By whom can you have heard
|
|
it mentioned?"
|
|
|
|
"By many--by some of whom you know nothing, by others
|
|
with whom you are most intimate, Mrs. Jennings, Mrs. Palmer,
|
|
and the Middletons. But still I might not have believed it,
|
|
for where the mind is perhaps rather unwilling to
|
|
be convinced, it will always find something to support
|
|
its doubts, if I had not, when the servant let me in today,
|
|
accidentally seen a letter in his hand, directed to
|
|
Mr. Willoughby in your sister's writing. I came to inquire,
|
|
but I was convinced before I could ask the question.
|
|
Is every thing finally settled? Is it impossible to-?
|
|
But I have no right, and I could have no chance of succeeding.
|
|
Excuse me, Miss Dashwood. I believe I have been wrong
|
|
in saying so much, but I hardly know what to do, and on
|
|
your prudence I have the strongest dependence. Tell me
|
|
that it is all absolutely resolved on, that any attempt,
|
|
that in short concealment, if concealment be possible,
|
|
is all that remains."
|
|
|
|
These words, which conveyed to Elinor a direct avowal
|
|
of his love for her sister, affected her very much.
|
|
She was not immediately able to say anything, and even
|
|
when her spirits were recovered, she debated for a short
|
|
time, on the answer it would be most proper to give.
|
|
The real state of things between Willoughby and her sister
|
|
was so little known to herself, that in endeavouring
|
|
to explain it, she might be as liable to say too much
|
|
as too little. Yet as she was convinced that Marianne's
|
|
affection for Willoughby, could leave no hope of Colonel
|
|
Brandon's success, whatever the event of that affection
|
|
might be, and at the same time wished to shield her conduct
|
|
from censure, she thought it most prudent and kind,
|
|
after some consideration, to say more than she really knew
|
|
or believed. She acknowledged, therefore, that though
|
|
she had never been informed by themselves of the terms
|
|
on which they stood with each other, of their mutual
|
|
affection she had no doubt, and of their correspondence
|
|
she was not astonished to hear.
|
|
|
|
He listened to her with silent attention, and on
|
|
her ceasing to speak, rose directly from his seat,
|
|
and after saying in a voice of emotion, "to your sister
|
|
I wish all imaginable happiness; to Willoughby that he
|
|
may endeavour to deserve her,"--took leave, and went away.
|
|
|
|
Elinor derived no comfortable feelings from this
|
|
conversation, to lessen the uneasiness of her mind on
|
|
other points; she was left, on the contrary, with a
|
|
melancholy impression of Colonel Brandon's unhappiness,
|
|
and was prevented even from wishing it removed,
|
|
by her anxiety for the very event that must confirm it.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 28
|
|
|
|
Nothing occurred during the next three or four days,
|
|
to make Elinor regret what she had done, in applying
|
|
to her mother; for Willoughby neither came nor wrote.
|
|
They were engaged about the end of that time to attend
|
|
Lady Middleton to a party, from which Mrs. Jennings was
|
|
kept away by the indisposition of her youngest daughter;
|
|
and for this party, Marianne, wholly dispirited,
|
|
careless of her appearance, and seeming equally indifferent
|
|
whether she went or staid, prepared, without one look
|
|
of hope or one expression of pleasure. She sat by the
|
|
drawing-room fire after tea, till the moment of Lady
|
|
Middleton's arrival, without once stirring from her seat,
|
|
or altering her attitude, lost in her own thoughts,
|
|
and insensible of her sister's presence; and when at
|
|
last they were told that Lady Middleton waited for them
|
|
at the door, she started as if she had forgotten that
|
|
any one was expected.
|
|
|
|
They arrived in due time at the place of destination,
|
|
and as soon as the string of carriages before them
|
|
would allow, alighted, ascended the stairs, heard their
|
|
names announced from one landing-place to another in an
|
|
audible voice, and entered a room splendidly lit up,
|
|
quite full of company, and insufferably hot. When they had
|
|
paid their tribute of politeness by curtsying to the lady
|
|
of the house, they were permitted to mingle in the crowd,
|
|
and take their share of the heat and inconvenience, to
|
|
which their arrival must necessarily add. After some time
|
|
spent in saying little or doing less, Lady Middleton sat
|
|
down to Cassino, and as Marianne was not in spirits for
|
|
moving about, she and Elinor luckily succeeding to chairs,
|
|
placed themselves at no great distance from the table.
|
|
|
|
They had not remained in this manner long, before Elinor
|
|
perceived Willoughby, standing within a few yards
|
|
of them, in earnest conversation with a very fashionable
|
|
looking young woman. She soon caught his eye, and he
|
|
immediately bowed, but without attempting to speak to her,
|
|
or to approach Marianne, though he could not but see her;
|
|
and then continued his discourse with the same lady.
|
|
Elinor turned involuntarily to Marianne, to see whether
|
|
it could be unobserved by her. At that moment she first
|
|
perceived him, and her whole countenance glowing with
|
|
sudden delight, she would have moved towards him instantly,
|
|
had not her sister caught hold of her.
|
|
|
|
"Good heavens!" she exclaimed, "he is there--he
|
|
is there--Oh! why does he not look at me? why cannot
|
|
I speak to him?"
|
|
|
|
"Pray, pray be composed," cried Elinor, "and do
|
|
not betray what you feel to every body present.
|
|
Perhaps he has not observed you yet."
|
|
|
|
This however was more than she could believe herself;
|
|
and to be composed at such a moment was not only beyond
|
|
the reach of Marianne, it was beyond her wish. She sat
|
|
in an agony of impatience which affected every feature.
|
|
|
|
At last he turned round again, and regarded them both;
|
|
she started up, and pronouncing his name in a tone
|
|
of affection, held out her hand to him. He approached,
|
|
and addressing himself rather to Elinor than Marianne,
|
|
as if wishing to avoid her eye, and determined not to
|
|
observe her attitude, inquired in a hurried manner after
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood, and asked how long they had been in town.
|
|
Elinor was robbed of all presence of mind by such an address,
|
|
and was unable to say a word. But the feelings of her sister
|
|
were instantly expressed. Her face was crimsoned over,
|
|
and she exclaimed, in a voice of the greatest emotion,
|
|
"Good God! Willoughby, what is the meaning of this?
|
|
Have you not received my letters? Will you not shake
|
|
hands with me?"
|
|
|
|
He could not then avoid it, but her touch seemed
|
|
painful to him, and he held her hand only for a moment.
|
|
During all this time he was evidently struggling for composure.
|
|
Elinor watched his countenance and saw its expression
|
|
becoming more tranquil. After a moment's pause, he spoke
|
|
with calmness.
|
|
|
|
"I did myself the honour of calling in Berkeley
|
|
Street last Tuesday, and very much regretted that I was
|
|
not fortunate enough to find yourselves and Mrs. Jennings
|
|
at home. My card was not lost, I hope."
|
|
|
|
"But have you not received my notes?" cried Marianne
|
|
in the wildest anxiety. "Here is some mistake I am
|
|
sure--some dreadful mistake. What can be the meaning
|
|
of it? Tell me, Willoughby; for heaven's sake tell me,
|
|
what is the matter?"
|
|
|
|
He made no reply; his complexion changed and all his
|
|
embarrassment returned; but as if, on catching the eye
|
|
of the young lady with whom he had been previously talking,
|
|
he felt the necessity of instant exertion, he recovered
|
|
himself again, and after saying, "Yes, I had the pleasure
|
|
of receiving the information of your arrival in town,
|
|
which you were so good as to send me," turned hastily away
|
|
with a slight bow and joined his friend.
|
|
|
|
Marianne, now looking dreadfully white, and unable
|
|
to stand, sunk into her chair, and Elinor, expecting every
|
|
moment to see her faint, tried to screen her from the
|
|
observation of others, while reviving her with lavender water.
|
|
|
|
"Go to him, Elinor," she cried, as soon as she
|
|
could speak, "and force him to come to me. Tell him
|
|
I must see him again--must speak to him instantly.--
|
|
I cannot rest--I shall not have a moment's peace till this
|
|
is explained--some dreadful misapprehension or other.--
|
|
Oh go to him this moment."
|
|
|
|
"How can that be done? No, my dearest Marianne,
|
|
you must wait. This is not the place for explanations.
|
|
Wait only till tomorrow."
|
|
|
|
With difficulty however could she prevent her
|
|
from following him herself; and to persuade her to check
|
|
her agitation, to wait, at least, with the appearance
|
|
of composure, till she might speak to him with more privacy
|
|
and more effect, was impossible; for Marianne continued
|
|
incessantly to give way in a low voice to the misery
|
|
of her feelings, by exclamations of wretchedness.
|
|
In a short time Elinor saw Willoughby quit the room by the
|
|
door towards the staircase, and telling Marianne that he
|
|
was gone, urged the impossibility of speaking to him again
|
|
that evening, as a fresh argument for her to be calm.
|
|
She instantly begged her sister would entreat Lady
|
|
Middleton to take them home, as she was too miserable
|
|
to stay a minute longer.
|
|
|
|
Lady Middleton, though in the middle of a rubber,
|
|
on being informed that Marianne was unwell, was too
|
|
polite to object for a moment to her wish of going away,
|
|
and making over her cards to a friend, they departed
|
|
as soon the carriage could be found. Scarcely a word
|
|
was spoken during their return to Berkeley Street.
|
|
Marianne was in a silent agony, too much oppressed even
|
|
for tears; but as Mrs. Jennings was luckily not come home,
|
|
they could go directly to their own room, where hartshorn
|
|
restored her a little to herself. She was soon undressed
|
|
and in bed, and as she seemed desirous of being alone,
|
|
her sister then left her, and while she waited the return
|
|
of Mrs. Jennings, had leisure enough for thinking over
|
|
the past.
|
|
|
|
That some kind of engagement had subsisted
|
|
between Willoughby and Marianne she could not doubt,
|
|
and that Willoughby was weary of it, seemed equally clear;
|
|
for however Marianne might still feed her own wishes,
|
|
SHE could not attribute such behaviour to mistake
|
|
or misapprehension of any kind. Nothing but a thorough
|
|
change of sentiment could account for it. Her indignation
|
|
would have been still stronger than it was, had she
|
|
not witnessed that embarrassment which seemed to speak
|
|
a consciousness of his own misconduct, and prevented
|
|
her from believing him so unprincipled as to have been
|
|
sporting with the affections of her sister from the first,
|
|
without any design that would bear investigation.
|
|
Absence might have weakened his regard, and convenience
|
|
might have determined him to overcome it, but that such
|
|
a regard had formerly existed she could not bring herself
|
|
to doubt.
|
|
|
|
As for Marianne, on the pangs which so unhappy a meeting
|
|
must already have given her, and on those still more
|
|
severe which might await her in its probable consequence,
|
|
she could not reflect without the deepest concern.
|
|
Her own situation gained in the comparison; for while she
|
|
could ESTEEM Edward as much as ever, however they might be
|
|
divided in future, her mind might be always supported.
|
|
But every circumstance that could embitter such an evil
|
|
seemed uniting to heighten the misery of Marianne
|
|
in a final separation from Willoughby--in an immediate
|
|
and irreconcilable rupture with him.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 29
|
|
|
|
Before the house-maid had lit their fire the next day,
|
|
or the sun gained any power over a cold, gloomy morning
|
|
in January, Marianne, only half dressed, was kneeling
|
|
against one of the window-seats for the sake of all
|
|
the little light she could command from it, and writing
|
|
as fast as a continual flow of tears would permit her.
|
|
In this situation, Elinor, roused from sleep by her agitation
|
|
and sobs, first perceived her; and after observing her
|
|
for a few moments with silent anxiety, said, in a tone
|
|
of the most considerate gentleness,
|
|
|
|
"Marianne, may I ask-?"
|
|
|
|
"No, Elinor," she replied, "ask nothing; you will
|
|
soon know all."
|
|
|
|
The sort of desperate calmness with which this was said,
|
|
lasted no longer than while she spoke, and was immediately
|
|
followed by a return of the same excessive affliction.
|
|
It was some minutes before she could go on with her letter,
|
|
and the frequent bursts of grief which still obliged her,
|
|
at intervals, to withhold her pen, were proofs enough of her
|
|
feeling how more than probable it was that she was writing
|
|
for the last time to Willoughby.
|
|
|
|
Elinor paid her every quiet and unobtrusive attention
|
|
in her power; and she would have tried to sooth and
|
|
tranquilize her still more, had not Marianne entreated her,
|
|
with all the eagerness of the most nervous irritability,
|
|
not to speak to her for the world. In such circumstances,
|
|
it was better for both that they should not be long together;
|
|
and the restless state of Marianne's mind not only prevented
|
|
her from remaining in the room a moment after she was dressed,
|
|
but requiring at once solitude and continual change of place,
|
|
made her wander about the house till breakfast time, avoiding
|
|
the sight of every body.
|
|
|
|
At breakfast she neither ate, nor attempted to eat
|
|
any thing; and Elinor's attention was then all employed,
|
|
not in urging her, not in pitying her, nor in appearing
|
|
to regard her, but in endeavouring to engage Mrs. Jenning's
|
|
notice entirely to herself.
|
|
|
|
As this was a favourite meal with Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
it lasted a considerable time, and they were just setting
|
|
themselves, after it, round the common working table, when a
|
|
letter was delivered to Marianne, which she eagerly caught
|
|
from the servant, and, turning of a death-like paleness,
|
|
instantly ran out of the room. Elinor, who saw as plainly
|
|
by this, as if she had seen the direction, that it must
|
|
come from Willoughby, felt immediately such a sickness
|
|
at heart as made her hardly able to hold up her head,
|
|
and sat in such a general tremour as made her fear it
|
|
impossible to escape Mrs. Jenning's notice. That good lady,
|
|
however, saw only that Marianne had received a letter
|
|
from Willoughby, which appeared to her a very good joke,
|
|
and which she treated accordingly, by hoping, with a laugh,
|
|
that she would find it to her liking. Of Elinor's distress,
|
|
she was too busily employed in measuring lengths of worsted
|
|
for her rug, to see any thing at all; and calmly continuing
|
|
her talk, as soon as Marianne disappeared, she said,
|
|
|
|
"Upon my word, I never saw a young woman so
|
|
desperately in love in my life! MY girls were nothing
|
|
to her, and yet they used to be foolish enough; but as
|
|
for Miss Marianne, she is quite an altered creature.
|
|
I hope, from the bottom of my heart, he won't keep her
|
|
waiting much longer, for it is quite grievous to see her
|
|
look so ill and forlorn. Pray, when are they to be married?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor, though never less disposed to speak than at
|
|
that moment, obliged herself to answer such an attack
|
|
as this, and, therefore, trying to smile, replied, "And have
|
|
you really, Ma'am, talked yourself into a persuasion
|
|
of my sister's being engaged to Mr. Willoughby? I thought
|
|
it had been only a joke, but so serious a question seems
|
|
to imply more; and I must beg, therefore, that you will not
|
|
deceive yourself any longer. I do assure you that nothing
|
|
would surprise me more than to hear of their being going
|
|
to be married."
|
|
|
|
"For shame, for shame, Miss Dashwood! how can you
|
|
talk so? Don't we all know that it must be a match, that
|
|
they were over head and ears in love with each other from
|
|
the first moment they met? Did not I see them together
|
|
in Devonshire every day, and all day long; and did not I
|
|
know that your sister came to town with me on purpose
|
|
to buy wedding clothes? Come, come, this won't do.
|
|
Because you are so sly about it yourself, you think nobody
|
|
else has any senses; but it is no such thing, I can tell you,
|
|
for it has been known all over town this ever so long.
|
|
I tell every body of it and so does Charlotte."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed, Ma'am," said Elinor, very seriously,
|
|
"you are mistaken. Indeed, you are doing a very unkind thing
|
|
in spreading the report, and you will find that you have
|
|
though you will not believe me now."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings laughed again, but Elinor had not
|
|
spirits to say more, and eager at all events to know
|
|
what Willoughby had written, hurried away to their room,
|
|
where, on opening the door, she saw Marianne stretched on
|
|
the bed, almost choked by grief, one letter in her hand,
|
|
and two or three others laying by her. Elinor drew near,
|
|
but without saying a word; and seating herself on the bed,
|
|
took her hand, kissed her affectionately several times,
|
|
and then gave way to a burst of tears, which at first
|
|
was scarcely less violent than Marianne's. The latter,
|
|
though unable to speak, seemed to feel all the tenderness
|
|
of this behaviour, and after some time thus spent in
|
|
joint affliction, she put all the letters into Elinor's hands;
|
|
and then covering her face with her handkerchief,
|
|
almost screamed with agony. Elinor, who knew that such grief,
|
|
shocking as it was to witness it, must have its course,
|
|
watched by her till this excess of suffering had somewhat
|
|
spent itself, and then turning eagerly to Willoughby's letter,
|
|
read as follows:
|
|
|
|
"Bond Street, January.
|
|
"MY DEAR MADAM,
|
|
|
|
"I have just had the honour of receiving your
|
|
letter, for which I beg to return my sincere
|
|
acknowledgments. I am much concerned to find there
|
|
was anything in my behaviour last night that did
|
|
not meet your approbation; and though I am quite at
|
|
a loss to discover in what point I could be so
|
|
unfortunate as to offend you, I entreat your
|
|
forgiveness of what I can assure you to have been
|
|
perfectly unintentional. I shall never reflect on
|
|
my former acquaintance with your family in Devonshire
|
|
without the most grateful pleasure, and flatter
|
|
myself it will not be broken by any mistake or
|
|
misapprehension of my actions. My esteem for your
|
|
whole family is very sincere; but if I have been so
|
|
unfortunate as to give rise to a belief of more than
|
|
I felt, or meant to express, I shall reproach myself
|
|
for not having been more guarded in my professions
|
|
of that esteem. That I should ever have meant more
|
|
you will allow to be impossible, when you understand
|
|
that my affections have been long engaged elsewhere,
|
|
and it will not be many weeks, I believe, before
|
|
this engagement is fulfilled. It is with great
|
|
regret that I obey your commands in returning the
|
|
letters with which I have been honoured from you,
|
|
and the lock of hair, which you so obligingly bestowed
|
|
on me.
|
|
|
|
"I am, dear Madam,
|
|
"Your most obedient
|
|
"humble servant,
|
|
"JOHN WILLOUGHBY."
|
|
|
|
With what indignation such a letter as this must
|
|
be read by Miss Dashwood, may be imagined. Though aware,
|
|
before she began it, that it must bring a confession
|
|
of his inconstancy, and confirm their separation for ever,
|
|
she was not aware that such language could be suffered
|
|
to announce it; nor could she have supposed Willoughby
|
|
capable of departing so far from the appearance of every
|
|
honourable and delicate feeling--so far from the common
|
|
decorum of a gentleman, as to send a letter so impudently
|
|
cruel: a letter which, instead of bringing with his desire
|
|
of a release any professions of regret, acknowledged no
|
|
breach of faith, denied all peculiar affection whatever--
|
|
a letter of which every line was an insult, and which
|
|
proclaimed its writer to be deep in hardened villainy.
|
|
|
|
She paused over it for some time with indignant
|
|
astonishment; then read it again and again; but every
|
|
perusal only served to increase her abhorrence of the man,
|
|
and so bitter were her feelings against him, that she
|
|
dared not trust herself to speak, lest she might wound
|
|
Marianne still deeper by treating their disengagement,
|
|
not as a loss to her of any possible good but as an
|
|
escape from the worst and most irremediable of all
|
|
evils, a connection, for life, with an unprincipled man,
|
|
as a deliverance the most real, a blessing the most important.
|
|
|
|
In her earnest meditations on the contents of the letter,
|
|
on the depravity of that mind which could dictate it,
|
|
and probably, on the very different mind of a very different
|
|
person, who had no other connection whatever with the affair
|
|
than what her heart gave him with every thing that passed,
|
|
Elinor forgot the immediate distress of her sister,
|
|
forgot that she had three letters on her lap yet unread,
|
|
and so entirely forgot how long she had been in the room,
|
|
that when on hearing a carriage drive up to the door,
|
|
she went to the window to see who could be coming so
|
|
unreasonably early, she was all astonishment to perceive
|
|
Mrs. Jennings's chariot, which she knew had not been
|
|
ordered till one. Determined not to quit Marianne,
|
|
though hopeless of contributing, at present, to her ease,
|
|
she hurried away to excuse herself from attending
|
|
Mrs. Jennings, on account of her sister being indisposed.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings, with a thoroughly good-humoured concern
|
|
for its cause, admitted the excuse most readily, and Elinor,
|
|
after seeing her safe off, returned to Marianne, whom she
|
|
found attempting to rise from the bed, and whom she reached
|
|
just in time to prevent her from falling on the floor,
|
|
faint and giddy from a long want of proper rest and food;
|
|
for it was many days since she had any appetite, and many
|
|
nights since she had really slept; and now, when her
|
|
mind was no longer supported by the fever of suspense,
|
|
the consequence of all this was felt in an aching head,
|
|
a weakened stomach, and a general nervous faintness.
|
|
A glass of wine, which Elinor procured for her directly,
|
|
made her more comfortable, and she was at last able to express
|
|
some sense of her kindness, by saying,
|
|
|
|
"Poor Elinor! how unhappy I make you!"
|
|
|
|
"I only wish," replied her sister, "there were
|
|
any thing I COULD do, which might be of comfort to you."
|
|
|
|
This, as every thing else would have been,
|
|
was too much for Marianne, who could only exclaim,
|
|
in the anguish of her heart, "Oh! Elinor, I am miserable,
|
|
indeed," before her voice was entirely lost in sobs.
|
|
|
|
Elinor could no longer witness this torrent
|
|
of unresisted grief in silence.
|
|
|
|
"Exert yourself, dear Marianne," she cried,
|
|
"if you would not kill yourself and all who love you.
|
|
Think of your mother; think of her misery while YOU suffer:
|
|
for her sake you must exert yourself."
|
|
|
|
"I cannot, I cannot," cried Marianne; "leave me,
|
|
leave me, if I distress you; leave me, hate me, forget me!
|
|
but do not torture me so. Oh! how easy for those,
|
|
who have no sorrow of their own to talk of exertion! Happy,
|
|
happy Elinor, YOU cannot have an idea of what I suffer."
|
|
|
|
"Do you call ME happy, Marianne? Ah! if you knew!--And
|
|
can you believe me to be so, while I see you so wretched!"
|
|
|
|
"Forgive me, forgive me," throwing her arms round
|
|
her sister's neck; "I know you feel for me; I know what
|
|
a heart you have; but yet you are--you must be happy;
|
|
Edward loves you--what, oh what, can do away such happiness
|
|
as that?"
|
|
|
|
"Many, many circumstances," said Elinor, solemnly.
|
|
|
|
"No, no, no," cried Marianne wildly, "he loves you,
|
|
and only you. You CAN have no grief."
|
|
|
|
"I can have no pleasure while I see you in this state."
|
|
|
|
"And you will never see me otherwise. Mine is
|
|
a misery which nothing can do away."
|
|
|
|
"You must not talk so, Marianne. Have you no
|
|
comforts? no friends? Is your loss such as leaves
|
|
no opening for consolation? Much as you suffer now,
|
|
think of what you would have suffered if the discovery
|
|
of his character had been delayed to a later period--
|
|
if your engagement had been carried on for months and months,
|
|
as it might have been, before he chose to put an end to it.
|
|
Every additional day of unhappy confidence, on your side,
|
|
would have made the blow more dreadful."
|
|
|
|
"Engagement!" cried Marianne, "there has been
|
|
no engagement."
|
|
|
|
"No engagement!"
|
|
|
|
"No, he is not so unworthy as you believe him.
|
|
He has broken no faith with me."
|
|
|
|
"But he told you that he loved you."
|
|
|
|
"Yes--no--never absolutely. It was every day implied,
|
|
but never professedly declared. Sometimes I thought it
|
|
had been--but it never was."
|
|
|
|
"Yet you wrote to him?"--
|
|
|
|
"Yes--could that be wrong after all that had passed?--
|
|
But I cannot talk."
|
|
|
|
Elinor said no more, and turning again to the three
|
|
letters which now raised a much stronger curiosity
|
|
than before, directly ran over the contents of all.
|
|
The first, which was what her sister had sent him
|
|
on their arrival in town, was to this effect.
|
|
|
|
Berkeley Street, January.
|
|
|
|
"How surprised you will be, Willoughby, on
|
|
receiving this; and I think you will feel something
|
|
more than surprise, when you know that I am in town.
|
|
An opportunity of coming hither, though with Mrs.
|
|
Jennings, was a temptation we could not resist.
|
|
I wish you may receive this in time to come here
|
|
to-night, but I will not depend on it. At any rate
|
|
I shall expect you to-morrow. For the present, adieu.
|
|
|
|
"M.D."
|
|
|
|
Her second note, which had been written on the morning
|
|
after the dance at the Middletons', was in these words:--
|
|
|
|
"I cannot express my disappointment in having
|
|
missed you the day before yesterday, nor my astonishment
|
|
at not having received any answer to a note which
|
|
I sent you above a week ago. I have been expecting
|
|
to hear from you, and still more to see you, every
|
|
hour of the day. Pray call again as soon as possible,
|
|
and explain the reason of my having expected this
|
|
in vain. You had better come earlier another time,
|
|
because we are generally out by one. We were last
|
|
night at Lady Middleton's, where there was a dance.
|
|
I have been told that you were asked to be of the
|
|
party. But could it be so? You must be very much
|
|
altered indeed since we parted, if that could be
|
|
the case, and you not there. But I will not suppose
|
|
this possible, and I hope very soon to receive your
|
|
personal assurance of its being otherwise.
|
|
|
|
"M.D."
|
|
|
|
The contents of her last note to him were these:--
|
|
|
|
"What am I to imagine, Willoughby, by your
|
|
behaviour last night? Again I demand an explanation
|
|
of it. I was prepared to meet you with the pleasure
|
|
which our separation naturally produced, with the
|
|
familiarity which our intimacy at Barton appeared
|
|
to me to justify. I was repulsed indeed! I have
|
|
passed a wretched night in endeavouring to excuse
|
|
a conduct which can scarcely be called less than
|
|
insulting; but though I have not yet been able to
|
|
form any reasonable apology for your behaviour,
|
|
I am perfectly ready to hear your justification of
|
|
it. You have perhaps been misinformed, or purposely
|
|
deceived, in something concerning me, which may have
|
|
lowered me in your opinion. Tell me what it is,
|
|
explain the grounds on which you acted, and I shall
|
|
be satisfied, in being able to satisfy you. It
|
|
would grieve me indeed to be obliged to think ill
|
|
of you; but if I am to do it, if I am to learn that
|
|
you are not what we have hitherto believed you, that
|
|
your regard for us all was insincere, that your
|
|
behaviour to me was intended only to deceive, let
|
|
it be told as soon as possible. My feelings are at
|
|
present in a state of dreadful indecision; I wish
|
|
to acquit you, but certainty on either side will be
|
|
ease to what I now suffer. If your sentiments are
|
|
no longer what they were, you will return my notes,
|
|
and the lock of my hair which is in your possession.
|
|
|
|
"M.D."
|
|
|
|
That such letters, so full of affection and confidence,
|
|
could have been so answered, Elinor, for Willoughby's sake,
|
|
would have been unwilling to believe. But her condemnation
|
|
of him did not blind her to the impropriety of their
|
|
having been written at all; and she was silently grieving
|
|
over the imprudence which had hazarded such unsolicited
|
|
proofs of tenderness, not warranted by anything preceding,
|
|
and most severely condemned by the event, when Marianne,
|
|
perceiving that she had finished the letters, observed to
|
|
her that they contained nothing but what any one would
|
|
have written in the same situation.
|
|
|
|
"I felt myself," she added, "to be as solemnly
|
|
engaged to him, as if the strictest legal covenant
|
|
had bound us to each other."
|
|
|
|
"I can believe it," said Elinor; "but unfortunately
|
|
he did not feel the same."
|
|
|
|
"He DID feel the same, Elinor--for weeks and weeks he
|
|
felt it. I know he did. Whatever may have changed him now, (and
|
|
nothing but the blackest art employed against me can have done
|
|
it), I was once as dear to him as my own soul could wish.
|
|
This lock of hair, which now he can so readily give up,
|
|
was begged of me with the most earnest supplication.
|
|
Had you seen his look, his manner, had you heard his voice
|
|
at that moment! Have you forgot the last evening of our
|
|
being together at Barton? The morning that we parted
|
|
too! When he told me that it might be many weeks before
|
|
we met again--his distress--can I ever forget his distress?"
|
|
|
|
For a moment or two she could say no more;
|
|
but when this emotion had passed away, she added,
|
|
in a firmer tone,
|
|
|
|
"Elinor, I have been cruelly used; but not by Willoughby."
|
|
|
|
"Dearest Marianne, who but himself? By whom can he
|
|
have been instigated?"
|
|
|
|
"By all the world, rather than by his own heart.
|
|
I could rather believe every creature of my acquaintance
|
|
leagued together to ruin me in his opinion, than believe
|
|
his nature capable of such cruelty. This woman of whom he
|
|
writes--whoever she be--or any one, in short, but your own
|
|
dear self, mama, and Edward, may have been so barbarous
|
|
to bely me. Beyond you three, is there a creature
|
|
in the world whom I would not rather suspect of evil
|
|
than Willoughby, whose heart I know so well?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor would not contend, and only replied,
|
|
"Whoever may have been so detestably your enemy, let them
|
|
be cheated of their malignant triumph, my dear sister,
|
|
by seeing how nobly the consciousness of your own
|
|
innocence and good intentions supports your spirits.
|
|
It is a reasonable and laudable pride which resists
|
|
such malevolence."
|
|
|
|
"No, no," cried Marianne, "misery such as mine has
|
|
no pride. I care not who knows that I am wretched.
|
|
The triumph of seeing me so may be open to all the world.
|
|
Elinor, Elinor, they who suffer little may be proud and
|
|
independent as they like--may resist insult, or return
|
|
mortification--but I cannot. I must feel--I must be
|
|
wretched--and they are welcome to enjoy the consciousness
|
|
of it that can."
|
|
|
|
"But for my mother's sake and mine--"
|
|
|
|
"I would do more than for my own. But to appear
|
|
happy when I am so miserable--Oh! who can require it?"
|
|
|
|
Again they were both silent. Elinor was employed
|
|
in walking thoughtfully from the fire to the window,
|
|
from the window to the fire, without knowing that she
|
|
received warmth from one, or discerning objects through
|
|
the other; and Marianne, seated at the foot of the bed,
|
|
with her head leaning against one of its posts,
|
|
again took up Willoughby's letter, and, after shuddering
|
|
over every sentence, exclaimed--
|
|
|
|
"It is too much! Oh, Willoughby, Willoughby, could this
|
|
be yours! Cruel, cruel--nothing can acquit you. Elinor,
|
|
nothing can. Whatever he might have heard against me--
|
|
ought he not to have suspended his belief? ought he not to
|
|
have told me of it, to have given me the power of clearing
|
|
myself? 'The lock of hair, (repeating it from the letter,)
|
|
which you so obligingly bestowed on me'--That is unpardonable.
|
|
Willoughby, where was your heart when you wrote those words?
|
|
Oh, barbarously insolent!--Elinor, can he be justified?"
|
|
|
|
"No, Marianne, in no possible way."
|
|
|
|
"And yet this woman--who knows what her art may
|
|
have been?--how long it may have been premeditated,
|
|
and how deeply contrived by her!--Who is she?--Who can
|
|
she be?--Whom did I ever hear him talk of as young and
|
|
attractive among his female acquaintance?--Oh! no one,
|
|
no one--he talked to me only of myself."
|
|
|
|
Another pause ensued; Marianne was greatly agitated,
|
|
and it ended thus.
|
|
|
|
"Elinor, I must go home. I must go and comfort mama.
|
|
Can not we be gone to-morrow?"
|
|
|
|
"To-morrow, Marianne!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, why should I stay here? I came only for
|
|
Willoughby's sake--and now who cares for me? Who regards me?"
|
|
|
|
"It would be impossible to go to-morrow. We owe
|
|
Mrs. Jennings much more than civility; and civility of
|
|
the commonest kind must prevent such a hasty removal as that."
|
|
|
|
"Well then, another day or two, perhaps; but I cannot
|
|
stay here long, I cannot stay to endure the questions
|
|
and remarks of all these people. The Middletons and
|
|
Palmers--how am I to bear their pity? The pity of such
|
|
a woman as Lady Middleton! Oh, what would HE say to that!"
|
|
|
|
Elinor advised her to lie down again, and for a
|
|
moment she did so; but no attitude could give her ease;
|
|
and in restless pain of mind and body she moved from one
|
|
posture to another, till growing more and more hysterical,
|
|
her sister could with difficulty keep her on the bed at all,
|
|
and for some time was fearful of being constrained to call
|
|
for assistance. Some lavender drops, however, which she
|
|
was at length persuaded to take, were of use; and from
|
|
that time till Mrs. Jennings returned, she continued
|
|
on the bed quiet and motionless.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 30
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings came immediately to their room on her return,
|
|
and without waiting to have her request of admittance answered,
|
|
opened the door and walked in with a look of real concern.
|
|
|
|
"How do you do my dear?"--said she in a voice of great
|
|
compassion to Marianne, who turned away her face without
|
|
attempting to answer.
|
|
|
|
"How is she, Miss Dashwood?--Poor thing! she looks very bad.--
|
|
No wonder. Ay, it is but too true. He is to be married
|
|
very soon--a good-for-nothing fellow! I have no patience
|
|
with him. Mrs. Taylor told me of it half an hour ago,
|
|
and she was told it by a particular friend of Miss
|
|
Grey herself, else I am sure I should not have believed it;
|
|
and I was almost ready to sink as it was. Well, said I,
|
|
all I can say is, that if this be true, he has used
|
|
a young lady of my acquaintance abominably ill, and I
|
|
wish with all my soul his wife may plague his heart out.
|
|
And so I shall always say, my dear, you may depend on it.
|
|
I have no notion of men's going on in this way; and if ever
|
|
I meet him again, I will give him such a dressing as he
|
|
has not had this many a day. But there is one comfort,
|
|
my dear Miss Marianne; he is not the only young man
|
|
in the world worth having; and with your pretty face
|
|
you will never want admirers. Well, poor thing! I won't
|
|
disturb her any longer, for she had better have her cry
|
|
out at once and have done with. The Parrys and Sandersons
|
|
luckily are coming tonight you know, and that will amuse her."
|
|
|
|
She then went away, walking on tiptoe out of the room,
|
|
as if she supposed her young friend's affliction could
|
|
be increased by noise.
|
|
|
|
Marianne, to the surprise of her sister,
|
|
determined on dining with them. Elinor even advised
|
|
her against it. But "no, she would go down; she could
|
|
bear it very well, and the bustle about her would
|
|
be less." Elinor, pleased to have her governed for a
|
|
moment by such a motive, though believing it hardly
|
|
possible that she could sit out the dinner, said no more;
|
|
and adjusting her dress for her as well as she could,
|
|
while Marianne still remained on the bed, was ready
|
|
to assist her into the dining room as soon as they were
|
|
summoned to it.
|
|
|
|
When there, though looking most wretchedly,
|
|
she ate more and was calmer than her sister had expected.
|
|
Had she tried to speak, or had she been conscious of half
|
|
Mrs. Jennings's well-meant but ill-judged attentions
|
|
to her, this calmness could not have been maintained;
|
|
but not a syllable escaped her lips; and the abstraction
|
|
of her thoughts preserved her in ignorance of every thing
|
|
that was passing before her.
|
|
|
|
Elinor, who did justice to Mrs. Jennings's kindness,
|
|
though its effusions were often distressing, and sometimes
|
|
almost ridiculous, made her those acknowledgments,
|
|
and returned her those civilities, which her sister could
|
|
not make or return for herself. Their good friend saw
|
|
that Marianne was unhappy, and felt that every thing
|
|
was due to her which might make her at all less so.
|
|
She treated her therefore, with all the indulgent fondness
|
|
of a parent towards a favourite child on the last day of
|
|
its holidays. Marianne was to have the best place by the fire,
|
|
was to be tempted to eat by every delicacy in the house,
|
|
and to be amused by the relation of all the news of the day.
|
|
Had not Elinor, in the sad countenance of her sister,
|
|
seen a check to all mirth, she could have been entertained
|
|
by Mrs. Jennings's endeavours to cure a disappointment in love,
|
|
by a variety of sweetmeats and olives, and a good fire.
|
|
As soon, however, as the consciousness of all this was
|
|
forced by continual repetition on Marianne, she could
|
|
stay no longer. With a hasty exclamation of Misery,
|
|
and a sign to her sister not to follow her, she directly got
|
|
up and hurried out of the room.
|
|
|
|
"Poor soul!" cried Mrs. Jennings, as soon as she was gone,
|
|
"how it grieves me to see her! And I declare if she is
|
|
not gone away without finishing her wine! And the dried
|
|
cherries too! Lord! nothing seems to do her any good.
|
|
I am sure if I knew of any thing she would like, I would
|
|
send all over the town for it. Well, it is the oddest
|
|
thing to me, that a man should use such a pretty girl
|
|
so ill! But when there is plenty of money on one side,
|
|
and next to none on the other, Lord bless you! they care
|
|
no more about such things!--"
|
|
|
|
"The lady then--Miss Grey I think you called her--
|
|
is very rich?"
|
|
|
|
"Fifty thousand pounds, my dear. Did you ever see
|
|
her? a smart, stylish girl they say, but not handsome.
|
|
I remember her aunt very well, Biddy Henshawe; she married
|
|
a very wealthy man. But the family are all rich together.
|
|
Fifty thousand pounds! and by all accounts, it won't come
|
|
before it's wanted; for they say he is all to pieces.
|
|
No wonder! dashing about with his curricle and hunters!
|
|
Well, it don't signify talking; but when a young man,
|
|
be who he will, comes and makes love to a pretty girl,
|
|
and promises marriage, he has no business to fly off
|
|
from his word only because he grows poor, and a richer
|
|
girl is ready to have him. Why don't he, in such a case,
|
|
sell his horses, let his house, turn off his servants,
|
|
and make a thorough reform at once? I warrant you,
|
|
Miss Marianne would have been ready to wait till matters
|
|
came round. But that won't do now-a-days; nothing in the
|
|
way of pleasure can ever be given up by the young men of
|
|
this age."
|
|
|
|
"Do you know what kind of a girl Miss Grey is?
|
|
Is she said to be amiable?"
|
|
|
|
"I never heard any harm of her; indeed I hardly ever
|
|
heard her mentioned; except that Mrs. Taylor did say
|
|
this morning, that one day Miss Walker hinted to her,
|
|
that she believed Mr. and Mrs. Ellison would not be sorry
|
|
to have Miss Grey married, for she and Mrs. Ellison could
|
|
never agree."--
|
|
|
|
"And who are the Ellisons?"
|
|
|
|
"Her guardians, my dear. But now she is of age
|
|
and may choose for herself; and a pretty choice she has
|
|
made!--What now," after pausing a moment--"your poor sister
|
|
is gone to her own room, I suppose, to moan by herself.
|
|
Is there nothing one can get to comfort her? Poor dear,
|
|
it seems quite cruel to let her be alone. Well, by-and-by we
|
|
shall have a few friends, and that will amuse her a little.
|
|
What shall we play at? She hates whist I know; but is there
|
|
no round game she cares for?"
|
|
|
|
"Dear ma'am, this kindness is quite unnecessary.
|
|
Marianne, I dare say, will not leave her room again
|
|
this evening. I shall persuade her if I can to go
|
|
early to bed, for I am sure she wants rest."
|
|
|
|
"Aye, I believe that will be best for her. Let her name
|
|
her own supper, and go to bed. Lord! no wonder she has
|
|
been looking so bad and so cast down this last week or two,
|
|
for this matter I suppose has been hanging over her head as
|
|
long as that. And so the letter that came today finished it!
|
|
Poor soul! I am sure if I had had a notion of it,
|
|
I would not have joked her about it for all my money.
|
|
But then you know, how should I guess such a thing? I made
|
|
sure of its being nothing but a common love letter, and
|
|
you know young people like to be laughed at about them. Lord!
|
|
how concerned Sir John and my daughters will be when they
|
|
hear it! If I had my senses about me I might have called
|
|
in Conduit Street in my way home, and told them of it.
|
|
But I shall see them tomorrow."
|
|
|
|
"It would be unnecessary I am sure, for you to caution
|
|
Mrs. Palmer and Sir John against ever naming Mr. Willoughby,
|
|
or making the slightest allusion to what has passed,
|
|
before my sister. Their own good-nature must point out
|
|
to them the real cruelty of appearing to know any thing
|
|
about it when she is present; and the less that may ever
|
|
be said to myself on the subject, the more my feelings
|
|
will be spared, as you my dear madam will easily believe."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! Lord! yes, that I do indeed. It must be terrible
|
|
for you to hear it talked of; and as for your sister,
|
|
I am sure I would not mention a word about it to her
|
|
for the world. You saw I did not all dinner time.
|
|
No more would Sir John, nor my daughters, for they are
|
|
all very thoughtful and considerate; especially if I
|
|
give them a hint, as I certainly will. For my part,
|
|
I think the less that is said about such things, the better,
|
|
the sooner 'tis blown over and forgot. And what does
|
|
talking ever do you know?"
|
|
|
|
"In this affair it can only do harm; more so
|
|
perhaps than in many cases of a similar kind, for it
|
|
has been attended by circumstances which, for the sake
|
|
of every one concerned in it, make it unfit to become
|
|
the public conversation. I must do THIS justice to
|
|
Mr. Willoughby--he has broken no positive engagement
|
|
with my sister."
|
|
|
|
"Law, my dear! Don't pretend to defend him.
|
|
No positive engagement indeed! after taking her all
|
|
over Allenham House, and fixing on the very rooms they
|
|
were to live in hereafter!"
|
|
|
|
Elinor, for her sister's sake, could not press the
|
|
subject farther, and she hoped it was not required of her
|
|
for Willoughby's; since, though Marianne might lose much,
|
|
he could gain very little by the enforcement of the real truth.
|
|
After a short silence on both sides, Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
with all her natural hilarity, burst forth again.
|
|
|
|
"Well, my dear, 'tis a true saying about an ill-wind,
|
|
for it will be all the better for Colonel Brandon.
|
|
He will have her at last; aye, that he will. Mind me,
|
|
now, if they an't married by Mid-summer. Lord! how he'll
|
|
chuckle over this news! I hope he will come tonight.
|
|
It will be all to one a better match for your sister.
|
|
Two thousand a year without debt or drawback--except
|
|
the little love-child, indeed; aye, I had forgot her;
|
|
but she may be 'prenticed out at a small cost, and then
|
|
what does it signify? Delaford is a nice place, I can
|
|
tell you; exactly what I call a nice old fashioned place,
|
|
full of comforts and conveniences; quite shut in with great
|
|
garden walls that are covered with the best fruit-trees
|
|
in the country; and such a mulberry tree in one corner!
|
|
Lord! how Charlotte and I did stuff the only time we
|
|
were there! Then, there is a dove-cote, some delightful
|
|
stew-ponds, and a very pretty canal; and every thing,
|
|
in short, that one could wish for; and, moreover, it is
|
|
close to the church, and only a quarter of a mile from
|
|
the turnpike-road, so 'tis never dull, for if you only
|
|
go and sit up in an old yew arbour behind the house,
|
|
you may see all the carriages that pass along.
|
|
Oh! 'tis a nice place! A butcher hard by in the village,
|
|
and the parsonage-house within a stone's throw.
|
|
To my fancy, a thousand times prettier than Barton Park,
|
|
where they are forced to send three miles for their meat,
|
|
and have not a neighbour nearer than your mother.
|
|
Well, I shall spirit up the Colonel as soon as I can.
|
|
One shoulder of mutton, you know, drives another down.
|
|
If we CAN but put Willoughby out of her head!"
|
|
|
|
"Ay, if we can do THAT, Ma'am," said Elinor,
|
|
"we shall do very well with or without Colonel Brandon."
|
|
And then rising, she went away to join Marianne,
|
|
whom she found, as she expected, in her own room, leaning,
|
|
in silent misery, over the small remains of a fire,
|
|
which, till Elinor's entrance, had been her only light.
|
|
|
|
"You had better leave me," was all the notice
|
|
that her sister received from her.
|
|
|
|
"I will leave you," said Elinor, "if you will go
|
|
to bed." But this, from the momentary perverseness
|
|
of impatient suffering, she at first refused to do.
|
|
Her sister's earnest, though gentle persuasion, however,
|
|
soon softened her to compliance, and Elinor saw her
|
|
lay her aching head on the pillow, and as she hoped,
|
|
in a way to get some quiet rest before she left her.
|
|
|
|
In the drawing-room, whither she then repaired,
|
|
she was soon joined by Mrs. Jennings, with a wine-glass,
|
|
full of something, in her hand.
|
|
|
|
"My dear," said she, entering, "I have just recollected
|
|
that I have some of the finest old Constantia wine in the
|
|
house that ever was tasted, so I have brought a glass of it
|
|
for your sister. My poor husband! how fond he was of it!
|
|
Whenever he had a touch of his old colicky gout, he said
|
|
it did him more good than any thing else in the world.
|
|
Do take it to your sister."
|
|
|
|
"Dear Ma'am," replied Elinor, smiling at the difference
|
|
of the complaints for which it was recommended, "how good
|
|
you are! But I have just left Marianne in bed, and, I hope,
|
|
almost asleep; and as I think nothing will be of so much
|
|
service to her as rest, if you will give me leave,
|
|
I will drink the wine myself."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings, though regretting that she had not been
|
|
five minutes earlier, was satisfied with the compromise;
|
|
and Elinor, as she swallowed the chief of it, reflected,
|
|
that though its effects on a colicky gout were, at present,
|
|
of little importance to her, its healing powers,
|
|
on a disappointed heart might be as reasonably tried
|
|
on herself as on her sister.
|
|
|
|
Colonel Brandon came in while the party were at tea,
|
|
and by his manner of looking round the room for Marianne,
|
|
Elinor immediately fancied that he neither expected
|
|
nor wished to see her there, and, in short, that he
|
|
was already aware of what occasioned her absence.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings was not struck by the same thought;
|
|
for soon after his entrance, she walked across the room
|
|
to the tea-table where Elinor presided, and whispered--
|
|
"The Colonel looks as grave as ever you see. He knows
|
|
nothing of it; do tell him, my dear."
|
|
|
|
He shortly afterwards drew a chair close to her's,
|
|
and, with a look which perfectly assured her of his
|
|
good information, inquired after her sister.
|
|
|
|
"Marianne is not well," said she. "She has been
|
|
indisposed all day, and we have persuaded her to go to bed."
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps, then," he hesitatingly replied, "what I
|
|
heard this morning may be--there may be more truth in it
|
|
than I could believe possible at first."
|
|
|
|
"What did you hear?"
|
|
|
|
"That a gentleman, whom I had reason to think--in short,
|
|
that a man, whom I KNEW to be engaged--but how shall I
|
|
tell you? If you know it already, as surely you must,
|
|
I may be spared."
|
|
|
|
"You mean," answered Elinor, with forced calmness,
|
|
"Mr. Willoughby's marriage with Miss Grey. Yes, we DO
|
|
know it all. This seems to have been a day of general
|
|
elucidation, for this very morning first unfolded it to us.
|
|
Mr. Willoughby is unfathomable! Where did you hear it?"
|
|
|
|
"In a stationer's shop in Pall Mall, where I
|
|
had business. Two ladies were waiting for their carriage,
|
|
and one of them was giving the other an account of the
|
|
intended match, in a voice so little attempting concealment,
|
|
that it was impossible for me not to hear all. The name
|
|
of Willoughby, John Willoughby, frequently repeated,
|
|
first caught my attention; and what followed was a positive
|
|
assertion that every thing was now finally settled
|
|
respecting his marriage with Miss Grey--it was no longer
|
|
to be a secret--it would take place even within a few weeks,
|
|
with many particulars of preparations and other matters.
|
|
One thing, especially, I remember, because it served
|
|
to identify the man still more:--as soon as the ceremony
|
|
was over, they were to go to Combe Magna, his seat
|
|
in Somersetshire. My astonishment!--but it would be
|
|
impossible to describe what I felt. The communicative
|
|
lady I learnt, on inquiry, for I stayed in the shop
|
|
till they were gone, was a Mrs. Ellison, and that, as I
|
|
have been since informed, is the name of Miss Grey's guardian."
|
|
|
|
"It is. But have you likewise heard that Miss Grey
|
|
has fifty thousand pounds? In that, if in any thing,
|
|
we may find an explanation."
|
|
|
|
"It may be so; but Willoughby is capable--at least
|
|
I think"--he stopped a moment; then added in a voice
|
|
which seemed to distrust itself, "And your sister--
|
|
how did she--"
|
|
|
|
"Her sufferings have been very severe. I have
|
|
only to hope that they may be proportionately short.
|
|
It has been, it is a most cruel affliction. Till yesterday,
|
|
I believe, she never doubted his regard; and even now,
|
|
perhaps--but I am almost convinced that he never was
|
|
really attached to her. He has been very deceitful! and,
|
|
in some points, there seems a hardness of heart about him."
|
|
|
|
"Ah!" said Colonel Brandon, "there is, indeed! But
|
|
your sister does not--I think you said so--she does
|
|
not consider quite as you do?"
|
|
|
|
"You know her disposition, and may believe how eagerly
|
|
she would still justify him if she could."
|
|
|
|
He made no answer; and soon afterwards, by the removal
|
|
of the tea-things, and the arrangement of the card parties,
|
|
the subject was necessarily dropped. Mrs. Jennings, who had
|
|
watched them with pleasure while they were talking, and who
|
|
expected to see the effect of Miss Dashwood's communication,
|
|
in such an instantaneous gaiety on Colonel Brandon's side,
|
|
as might have become a man in the bloom of youth, of hope
|
|
and happiness, saw him, with amazement, remain the whole
|
|
evening more serious and thoughtful than usual.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXI
|
|
|
|
From a night of more sleep than she had expected,
|
|
Marianne awoke the next morning to the same consciousness
|
|
of misery in which she had closed her eyes.
|
|
|
|
Elinor encouraged her as much as possible to talk
|
|
of what she felt; and before breakfast was ready, they had
|
|
gone through the subject again and again; and with the same
|
|
steady conviction and affectionate counsel on Elinor's side,
|
|
the same impetuous feelings and varying opinions on
|
|
Marianne's, as before. Sometimes she could believe
|
|
Willoughby to be as unfortunate and as innocent as herself,
|
|
and at others, lost every consolation in the impossibility
|
|
of acquitting him. At one moment she was absolutely
|
|
indifferent to the observation of all the world, at another
|
|
she would seclude herself from it for ever, and at a third
|
|
could resist it with energy. In one thing, however,
|
|
she was uniform, when it came to the point, in avoiding,
|
|
where it was possible, the presence of Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
and in a determined silence when obliged to endure it.
|
|
Her heart was hardened against the belief of Mrs. Jennings's
|
|
entering into her sorrows with any compassion.
|
|
|
|
"No, no, no, it cannot be," she cried;
|
|
"she cannot feel. Her kindness is not sympathy;
|
|
her good-nature is not tenderness. All that she wants
|
|
is gossip, and she only likes me now because I supply it."
|
|
|
|
Elinor had not needed this to be assured of the injustice
|
|
to which her sister was often led in her opinion of others,
|
|
by the irritable refinement of her own mind, and the too
|
|
great importance placed by her on the delicacies of a
|
|
strong sensibility, and the graces of a polished manner.
|
|
Like half the rest of the world, if more than half there
|
|
be that are clever and good, Marianne, with excellent
|
|
abilities and an excellent disposition, was neither
|
|
reasonable nor candid. She expected from other people
|
|
the same opinions and feelings as her own, and she judged
|
|
of their motives by the immediate effect of their actions
|
|
on herself. Thus a circumstance occurred, while the
|
|
sisters were together in their own room after breakfast,
|
|
which sunk the heart of Mrs. Jennings still lower
|
|
in her estimation; because, through her own weakness,
|
|
it chanced to prove a source of fresh pain to herself,
|
|
though Mrs. Jennings was governed in it by an impulse
|
|
of the utmost goodwill.
|
|
|
|
With a letter in her outstretched hand, and countenance
|
|
gaily smiling, from the persuasion of bringing comfort,
|
|
she entered their room, saying,
|
|
|
|
"Now, my dear, I bring you something that I am sure
|
|
will do you good."
|
|
|
|
Marianne heard enough. In one moment her imagination
|
|
placed before her a letter from Willoughby, full of tenderness
|
|
and contrition, explanatory of all that had passed, satisfactory,
|
|
convincing; and instantly followed by Willoughby himself,
|
|
rushing eagerly into the room to inforce, at her feet,
|
|
by the eloquence of his eyes, the assurances of his letter.
|
|
The work of one moment was destroyed by the next.
|
|
The hand writing of her mother, never till then unwelcome,
|
|
was before her; and, in the acuteness of the disappointment
|
|
which followed such an ecstasy of more than hope,
|
|
she felt as if, till that instant, she had never suffered.
|
|
|
|
The cruelty of Mrs. Jennings no language, within
|
|
her reach in her moments of happiest eloquence,
|
|
could have expressed; and now she could reproach her
|
|
only by the tears which streamed from her eyes with
|
|
passionate violence--a reproach, however, so entirely
|
|
lost on its object, that after many expressions of pity,
|
|
she withdrew, still referring her to the letter of comfort.
|
|
But the letter, when she was calm enough to read it,
|
|
brought little comfort. Willoughby filled every page.
|
|
Her mother, still confident of their engagement, and relying
|
|
as warmly as ever on his constancy, had only been roused
|
|
by Elinor's application, to intreat from Marianne greater
|
|
openness towards them both; and this, with such tenderness
|
|
towards her, such affection for Willoughby, and such
|
|
a conviction of their future happiness in each other,
|
|
that she wept with agony through the whole of it.
|
|
|
|
All her impatience to be at home again now returned;
|
|
her mother was dearer to her than ever; dearer through
|
|
the very excess of her mistaken confidence in Willoughby,
|
|
and she was wildly urgent to be gone. Elinor, unable herself
|
|
to determine whether it were better for Marianne to be
|
|
in London or at Barton, offered no counsel of her own
|
|
except of patience till their mother's wishes could be known;
|
|
and at length she obtained her sister's consent to wait
|
|
for that knowledge.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings left them earlier than usual; for she
|
|
could not be easy till the Middletons and Palmers were able
|
|
to grieve as much as herself; and positively refusing
|
|
Elinor's offered attendance, went out alone for the rest
|
|
of the morning. Elinor, with a very heavy heart, aware of
|
|
the pain she was going to communicate, and perceiving,
|
|
by Marianne's letter, how ill she had succeeded in laying
|
|
any foundation for it, then sat down to write her mother
|
|
an account of what had passed, and entreat her directions
|
|
for the future; while Marianne, who came into the drawing-room
|
|
on Mrs. Jennings's going away, remained fixed at the table
|
|
where Elinor wrote, watching the advancement of her pen,
|
|
grieving over her for the hardship of such a task,
|
|
and grieving still more fondly over its effect on her mother.
|
|
|
|
In this manner they had continued about a quarter
|
|
of an hour, when Marianne, whose nerves could not then
|
|
bear any sudden noise, was startled by a rap at the door.
|
|
|
|
"Who can this be?" cried Elinor. "So early too! I
|
|
thought we HAD been safe."
|
|
|
|
Marianne moved to the window--
|
|
|
|
"It is Colonel Brandon!" said she, with vexation.
|
|
"We are never safe from HIM."
|
|
|
|
"He will not come in, as Mrs. Jennings is from home."
|
|
|
|
"I will not trust to THAT," retreating to her own room.
|
|
"A man who has nothing to do with his own time has no
|
|
conscience in his intrusion on that of others."
|
|
|
|
The event proved her conjecture right, though it
|
|
was founded on injustice and error; for Colonel Brandon
|
|
DID come in; and Elinor, who was convinced that
|
|
solicitude for Marianne brought him thither, and who saw
|
|
THAT solicitude in his disturbed and melancholy look,
|
|
and in his anxious though brief inquiry after her,
|
|
could not forgive her sister for esteeming him so lightly.
|
|
|
|
"I met Mrs. Jennings in Bond Street," said he,
|
|
after the first salutation, "and she encouraged me
|
|
to come on; and I was the more easily encouraged,
|
|
because I thought it probable that I might find you alone,
|
|
which I was very desirous of doing. My object--my
|
|
wish--my sole wish in desiring it--I hope, I believe
|
|
it is--is to be a means of giving comfort;--no, I must
|
|
not say comfort--not present comfort--but conviction,
|
|
lasting conviction to your sister's mind. My regard for her,
|
|
for yourself, for your mother--will you allow me to prove it,
|
|
by relating some circumstances which nothing but a VERY
|
|
sincere regard--nothing but an earnest desire of being
|
|
useful--I think I am justified--though where so many hours
|
|
have been spent in convincing myself that I am right,
|
|
is there not some reason to fear I may be wrong?"
|
|
He stopped.
|
|
|
|
"I understand you," said Elinor. "You have something
|
|
to tell me of Mr. Willoughby, that will open his character
|
|
farther. Your telling it will be the greatest act of friendship
|
|
that can be shewn Marianne. MY gratitude will be insured
|
|
immediately by any information tending to that end, and HERS
|
|
must be gained by it in time. Pray, pray let me hear it."
|
|
|
|
"You shall; and, to be brief, when I quitted Barton
|
|
last October,--but this will give you no idea--I must go
|
|
farther back. You will find me a very awkward narrator,
|
|
Miss Dashwood; I hardly know where to begin. A short
|
|
account of myself, I believe, will be necessary, and it
|
|
SHALL be a short one. On such a subject," sighing heavily,
|
|
"can I have little temptation to be diffuse."
|
|
|
|
He stopt a moment for recollection, and then,
|
|
with another sigh, went on.
|
|
|
|
"You have probably entirely forgotten a conversation--
|
|
(it is not to be supposed that it could make any impression
|
|
on you)--a conversation between us one evening at Barton
|
|
Park--it was the evening of a dance--in which I alluded
|
|
to a lady I had once known, as resembling, in some measure,
|
|
your sister Marianne."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed," answered Elinor, "I have NOT forgotten it."
|
|
He looked pleased by this remembrance, and added,
|
|
|
|
"If I am not deceived by the uncertainty, the partiality
|
|
of tender recollection, there is a very strong resemblance
|
|
between them, as well in mind as person. The same warmth
|
|
of heart, the same eagerness of fancy and spirits.
|
|
This lady was one of my nearest relations, an orphan from
|
|
her infancy, and under the guardianship of my father.
|
|
Our ages were nearly the same, and from our earliest years
|
|
we were playfellows and friends. I cannot remember the
|
|
time when I did not love Eliza; and my affection for her,
|
|
as we grew up, was such, as perhaps, judging from my
|
|
present forlorn and cheerless gravity, you might think me
|
|
incapable of having ever felt. Her's, for me, was, I believe,
|
|
fervent as the attachment of your sister to Mr. Willoughby
|
|
and it was, though from a different cause, no less unfortunate.
|
|
At seventeen she was lost to me for ever. She was
|
|
married--married against her inclination to my brother.
|
|
Her fortune was large, and our family estate much encumbered.
|
|
And this, I fear, is all that can be said for the
|
|
conduct of one, who was at once her uncle and guardian.
|
|
My brother did not deserve her; he did not even love her.
|
|
I had hoped that her regard for me would support her
|
|
under any difficulty, and for some time it did; but at
|
|
last the misery of her situation, for she experienced
|
|
great unkindness, overcame all her resolution, and though
|
|
she had promised me that nothing--but how blindly I
|
|
relate! I have never told you how this was brought on.
|
|
We were within a few hours of eloping together for Scotland.
|
|
The treachery, or the folly, of my cousin's maid betrayed us.
|
|
I was banished to the house of a relation far distant,
|
|
and she was allowed no liberty, no society, no amusement,
|
|
till my father's point was gained. I had depended on her
|
|
fortitude too far, and the blow was a severe one--
|
|
but had her marriage been happy, so young as I then was,
|
|
a few months must have reconciled me to it, or at least
|
|
I should not have now to lament it. This however
|
|
was not the case. My brother had no regard for her;
|
|
his pleasures were not what they ought to have been,
|
|
and from the first he treated her unkindly. The consequence
|
|
of this, upon a mind so young, so lively, so inexperienced
|
|
as Mrs. Brandon's, was but too natural. She resigned
|
|
herself at first to all the misery of her situation;
|
|
and happy had it been if she had not lived to overcome those
|
|
regrets which the remembrance of me occasioned. But can we
|
|
wonder that, with such a husband to provoke inconstancy,
|
|
and without a friend to advise or restrain her (for
|
|
my father lived only a few months after their marriage,
|
|
and I was with my regiment in the East Indies) she
|
|
should fall? Had I remained in England, perhaps--but I
|
|
meant to promote the happiness of both by removing
|
|
from her for years, and for that purpose had procured
|
|
my exchange. The shock which her marriage had given me,"
|
|
he continued, in a voice of great agitation, "was of
|
|
trifling weight--was nothing to what I felt when I heard,
|
|
about two years afterwards, of her divorce. It was
|
|
THAT which threw this gloom,--even now the recollection
|
|
of what I suffered--"
|
|
|
|
He could say no more, and rising hastily walked for a few
|
|
minutes about the room. Elinor, affected by his relation,
|
|
and still more by his distress, could not speak. He saw
|
|
her concern, and coming to her, took her hand, pressed it,
|
|
and kissed it with grateful respect. A few minutes more
|
|
of silent exertion enabled him to proceed with composure.
|
|
|
|
"It was nearly three years after this unhappy
|
|
period before I returned to England. My first care,
|
|
when I DID arrive, was of course to seek for her;
|
|
but the search was as fruitless as it was melancholy.
|
|
I could not trace her beyond her first seducer, and there
|
|
was every reason to fear that she had removed from him
|
|
only to sink deeper in a life of sin. Her legal allowance
|
|
was not adequate to her fortune, nor sufficient for her
|
|
comfortable maintenance, and I learnt from my brother that
|
|
the power of receiving it had been made over some months
|
|
before to another person. He imagined, and calmly could he
|
|
imagine it, that her extravagance, and consequent distress,
|
|
had obliged her to dispose of it for some immediate relief.
|
|
At last, however, and after I had been six months in England,
|
|
I DID find her. Regard for a former servant of my own,
|
|
who had since fallen into misfortune, carried me to visit
|
|
him in a spunging-house, where he was confined for debt;
|
|
and there, the same house, under a similar confinement,
|
|
was my unfortunate sister. So altered--so faded--worn
|
|
down by acute suffering of every kind! hardly could I
|
|
believe the melancholy and sickly figure before me,
|
|
to be the remains of the lovely, blooming, healthful girl,
|
|
on whom I had once doted. What I endured in so beholding
|
|
her--but I have no right to wound your feelings by attempting
|
|
to describe it--I have pained you too much already.
|
|
That she was, to all appearance, in the last stage
|
|
of a consumption, was--yes, in such a situation it was
|
|
my greatest comfort. Life could do nothing for her,
|
|
beyond giving time for a better preparation for death;
|
|
and that was given. I saw her placed in comfortable lodgings,
|
|
and under proper attendants; I visited her every day
|
|
during the rest of her short life: I was with her in her
|
|
last moments."
|
|
|
|
Again he stopped to recover himself; and Elinor
|
|
spoke her feelings in an exclamation of tender concern,
|
|
at the fate of his unfortunate friend.
|
|
|
|
"Your sister, I hope, cannot be offended," said he,
|
|
"by the resemblance I have fancied between her and my
|
|
poor disgraced relation. Their fates, their fortunes,
|
|
cannot be the same; and had the natural sweet
|
|
disposition of the one been guarded by a firmer mind,
|
|
or a happier marriage, she might have been all that you
|
|
will live to see the other be. But to what does all this
|
|
lead? I seem to have been distressing you for nothing.
|
|
Ah! Miss Dashwood--a subject such as this--untouched
|
|
for fourteen years--it is dangerous to handle it at all!
|
|
I WILL be more collected--more concise. She left to my care
|
|
her only child, a little girl, the offspring of her first
|
|
guilty connection, who was then about three years old.
|
|
She loved the child, and had always kept it with her.
|
|
It was a valued, a precious trust to me; and gladly
|
|
would I have discharged it in the strictest sense,
|
|
by watching over her education myself, had the nature
|
|
of our situations allowed it; but I had no family, no home;
|
|
and my little Eliza was therefore placed at school.
|
|
I saw her there whenever I could, and after the death of my
|
|
brother, (which happened about five years ago, and which
|
|
left to me the possession of the family property,) she
|
|
visited me at Delaford. I called her a distant relation;
|
|
but I am well aware that I have in general been suspected
|
|
of a much nearer connection with her. It is now three
|
|
years ago (she had just reached her fourteenth year,)
|
|
that I removed her from school, to place her under the care
|
|
of a very respectable woman, residing in Dorsetshire,
|
|
who had the charge of four or five other girls of about
|
|
the same time of life; and for two years I had every reason
|
|
to be pleased with her situation. But last February,
|
|
almost a twelvemonth back, she suddenly disappeared.
|
|
I had allowed her, (imprudently, as it has since turned
|
|
out,) at her earnest desire, to go to Bath with one of
|
|
her young friends, who was attending her father there
|
|
for his health. I knew him to be a very good sort of man,
|
|
and I thought well of his daughter--better than she deserved,
|
|
for, with a most obstinate and ill-judged secrecy,
|
|
she would tell nothing, would give no clue, though she
|
|
certainly knew all. He, her father, a well-meaning,
|
|
but not a quick-sighted man, could really, I believe,
|
|
give no information; for he had been generally confined
|
|
to the house, while the girls were ranging over the town
|
|
and making what acquaintance they chose; and he tried
|
|
to convince me, as thoroughly as he was convinced himself,
|
|
of his daughter's being entirely unconcerned in the business.
|
|
In short, I could learn nothing but that she was gone;
|
|
all the rest, for eight long months, was left to conjecture.
|
|
What I thought, what I feared, may be imagined; and what I
|
|
suffered too."
|
|
|
|
"Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "could it be--could
|
|
Willoughby!"--
|
|
|
|
"The first news that reached me of her," he continued,
|
|
"came in a letter from herself, last October.
|
|
It was forwarded to me from Delaford, and I received it
|
|
on the very morning of our intended party to Whitwell;
|
|
and this was the reason of my leaving Barton so suddenly,
|
|
which I am sure must at the time have appeared strange
|
|
to every body, and which I believe gave offence to some.
|
|
Little did Mr. Willoughby imagine, I suppose, when his
|
|
looks censured me for incivility in breaking up the party,
|
|
that I was called away to the relief of one whom he
|
|
had made poor and miserable; but HAD he known it,
|
|
what would it have availed? Would he have been less
|
|
gay or less happy in the smiles of your sister? No,
|
|
he had already done that, which no man who CAN feel
|
|
for another would do. He had left the girl whose
|
|
youth and innocence he had seduced, in a situation of
|
|
the utmost distress, with no creditable home, no help,
|
|
no friends, ignorant of his address! He had left her,
|
|
promising to return; he neither returned, nor wrote,
|
|
nor relieved her."
|
|
|
|
"This is beyond every thing!" exclaimed Elinor.
|
|
|
|
"His character is now before you; expensive, dissipated,
|
|
and worse than both. Knowing all this, as I have now
|
|
known it many weeks, guess what I must have felt on seeing
|
|
your sister as fond of him as ever, and on being assured
|
|
that she was to marry him: guess what I must have felt
|
|
for all your sakes. When I came to you last week and
|
|
found you alone, I came determined to know the truth;
|
|
though irresolute what to do when it WAS known.
|
|
My behaviour must have seemed strange to you then;
|
|
but now you will comprehend it. To suffer you all to be
|
|
so deceived; to see your sister--but what could I do?
|
|
I had no hope of interfering with success; and sometimes
|
|
I thought your sister's influence might yet reclaim him.
|
|
But now, after such dishonorable usage, who can tell what
|
|
were his designs on her. Whatever they may have been,
|
|
however, she may now, and hereafter doubtless WILL
|
|
turn with gratitude towards her own condition, when she
|
|
compares it with that of my poor Eliza, when she considers
|
|
the wretched and hopeless situation of this poor girl,
|
|
and pictures her to herself, with an affection for him so strong,
|
|
still as strong as her own, and with a mind tormented
|
|
by self-reproach, which must attend her through life.
|
|
Surely this comparison must have its use with her.
|
|
She will feel her own sufferings to be nothing. They
|
|
proceed from no misconduct, and can bring no disgrace.
|
|
On the contrary, every friend must be made still more
|
|
her friend by them. Concern for her unhappiness,
|
|
and respect for her fortitude under it, must strengthen
|
|
every attachment. Use your own discretion, however,
|
|
in communicating to her what I have told you. You must
|
|
know best what will be its effect; but had I not seriously,
|
|
and from my heart believed it might be of service,
|
|
might lessen her regrets, I would not have suffered
|
|
myself to trouble you with this account of my family
|
|
afflictions, with a recital which may seem to have been
|
|
intended to raise myself at the expense of others."
|
|
|
|
Elinor's thanks followed this speech with grateful
|
|
earnestness; attended too with the assurance of her
|
|
expecting material advantage to Marianne, from the
|
|
communication of what had passed.
|
|
|
|
"I have been more pained," said she, "by her
|
|
endeavors to acquit him than by all the rest; for it
|
|
irritates her mind more than the most perfect conviction
|
|
of his unworthiness can do. Now, though at first she
|
|
will suffer much, I am sure she will soon become easier.
|
|
Have you," she continued, after a short silence,
|
|
"ever seen Mr. Willoughby since you left him at Barton?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," he replied gravely, "once I have. One meeting
|
|
was unavoidable."
|
|
|
|
Elinor, startled by his manner, looked at him anxiously,
|
|
saying,
|
|
|
|
"What? have you met him to--"
|
|
|
|
"I could meet him no other way. Eliza had confessed
|
|
to me, though most reluctantly, the name of her lover;
|
|
and when he returned to town, which was within a fortnight
|
|
after myself, we met by appointment, he to defend,
|
|
I to punish his conduct. We returned unwounded,
|
|
and the meeting, therefore, never got abroad."
|
|
|
|
Elinor sighed over the fancied necessity of this;
|
|
but to a man and a soldier she presumed not to censure it.
|
|
|
|
"Such," said Colonel Brandon, after a pause,
|
|
"has been the unhappy resemblance between the fate of mother
|
|
and daughter! and so imperfectly have I discharged my trust!"
|
|
|
|
"Is she still in town?"
|
|
|
|
"No; as soon as she recovered from her lying-in,
|
|
for I found her near her delivery, I removed her and her
|
|
child into the country, and there she remains."
|
|
|
|
Recollecting, soon afterwards, that he was probably
|
|
dividing Elinor from her sister, he put an end to his visit,
|
|
receiving from her again the same grateful acknowledgments,
|
|
and leaving her full of compassion and esteem for him.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 32
|
|
|
|
When the particulars of this conversation were repeated
|
|
by Miss Dashwood to her sister, as they very soon were,
|
|
the effect on her was not entirely such as the former
|
|
had hoped to see. Not that Marianne appeared to distrust
|
|
the truth of any part of it, for she listened to it all
|
|
with the most steady and submissive attention, made neither
|
|
objection nor remark, attempted no vindication of Willoughby,
|
|
and seemed to shew by her tears that she felt it to
|
|
be impossible. But though this behaviour assured Elinor
|
|
that the conviction of this guilt WAS carried home to
|
|
her mind, though she saw with satisfaction the effect of it,
|
|
in her no longer avoiding Colonel Brandon when he called,
|
|
in her speaking to him, even voluntarily speaking,
|
|
with a kind of compassionate respect, and though she
|
|
saw her spirits less violently irritated than before,
|
|
she did not see her less wretched. Her mind did become
|
|
settled, but it was settled in a gloomy dejection.
|
|
She felt the loss of Willoughby's character yet more heavily
|
|
than she had felt the loss of his heart; his seduction and
|
|
desertion of Miss Williams, the misery of that poor girl,
|
|
and the doubt of what his designs might ONCE have been
|
|
on herself, preyed altogether so much on her spirits,
|
|
that she could not bring herself to speak of what she felt
|
|
even to Elinor; and, brooding over her sorrows in silence,
|
|
gave more pain to her sister than could have been communicated
|
|
by the most open and most frequent confession of them.
|
|
|
|
To give the feelings or the language of Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
on receiving and answering Elinor's letter would be only
|
|
to give a repetition of what her daughters had already felt
|
|
and said; of a disappointment hardly less painful than
|
|
Marianne's, and an indignation even greater than Elinor's.
|
|
Long letters from her, quickly succeeding each other,
|
|
arrived to tell all that she suffered and thought;
|
|
to express her anxious solicitude for Marianne, and entreat
|
|
she would bear up with fortitude under this misfortune.
|
|
Bad indeed must the nature of Marianne's affliction be,
|
|
when her mother could talk of fortitude! mortifying
|
|
and humiliating must be the origin of those regrets,
|
|
which SHE could wish her not to indulge!
|
|
|
|
Against the interest of her own individual comfort,
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood had determined that it would be better for
|
|
Marianne to be any where, at that time, than at Barton,
|
|
where every thing within her view would be bringing back
|
|
the past in the strongest and most afflicting manner,
|
|
by constantly placing Willoughby before her, such as
|
|
she had always seen him there. She recommended it to
|
|
her daughters, therefore, by all means not to shorten their
|
|
visit to Mrs. Jennings; the length of which, though never
|
|
exactly fixed, had been expected by all to comprise at least
|
|
five or six weeks. A variety of occupations, of objects,
|
|
and of company, which could not be procured at Barton,
|
|
would be inevitable there, and might yet, she hoped,
|
|
cheat Marianne, at times, into some interest beyond herself,
|
|
and even into some amusement, much as the ideas of both
|
|
might now be spurned by her.
|
|
|
|
From all danger of seeing Willoughby again,
|
|
her mother considered her to be at least equally safe
|
|
in town as in the country, since his acquaintance must
|
|
now be dropped by all who called themselves her friends.
|
|
Design could never bring them in each other's way:
|
|
negligence could never leave them exposed to a surprise;
|
|
and chance had less in its favour in the crowd of London
|
|
than even in the retirement of Barton, where it might
|
|
force him before her while paying that visit at Allenham
|
|
on his marriage, which Mrs. Dashwood, from foreseeing at
|
|
first as a probable event, had brought herself to expect
|
|
as a certain one.
|
|
|
|
She had yet another reason for wishing her children
|
|
to remain where they were; a letter from her son-in-law
|
|
had told her that he and his wife were to be in town
|
|
before the middle of February, and she judged it right
|
|
that they should sometimes see their brother.
|
|
|
|
Marianne had promised to be guided by her mother's opinion,
|
|
and she submitted to it therefore without opposition,
|
|
though it proved perfectly different from what she wished
|
|
and expected, though she felt it to be entirely wrong,
|
|
formed on mistaken grounds, and that by requiring her
|
|
longer continuance in London it deprived her of the only
|
|
possible alleviation of her wretchedness, the personal
|
|
sympathy of her mother, and doomed her to such society and
|
|
such scenes as must prevent her ever knowing a moment's rest.
|
|
|
|
But it was a matter of great consolation to her,
|
|
that what brought evil to herself would bring good to
|
|
her sister; and Elinor, on the other hand, suspecting that
|
|
it would not be in her power to avoid Edward entirely,
|
|
comforted herself by thinking, that though their longer
|
|
stay would therefore militate against her own happiness,
|
|
it would be better for Marianne than an immediate return
|
|
into Devonshire.
|
|
|
|
Her carefulness in guarding her sister from ever
|
|
hearing Willoughby's name mentioned, was not thrown away.
|
|
Marianne, though without knowing it herself, reaped all
|
|
its advantage; for neither Mrs. Jennings, nor Sir John,
|
|
nor even Mrs. Palmer herself, ever spoke of him before her.
|
|
Elinor wished that the same forbearance could have extended
|
|
towards herself, but that was impossible, and she was
|
|
obliged to listen day after day to the indignation of them all.
|
|
|
|
Sir John, could not have thought it possible.
|
|
"A man of whom he had always had such reason to think well!
|
|
Such a good-natured fellow! He did not believe there was a
|
|
bolder rider in England! It was an unaccountable business.
|
|
He wished him at the devil with all his heart. He would
|
|
not speak another word to him, meet him where he might,
|
|
for all the world! No, not if it were to be by the side
|
|
of Barton covert, and they were kept watching for two
|
|
hours together. Such a scoundrel of a fellow! such
|
|
a deceitful dog! It was only the last time they met
|
|
that he had offered him one of Folly's puppies! and this
|
|
was the end of it!"
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Palmer, in her way, was equally angry.
|
|
"She was determined to drop his acquaintance immediately,
|
|
and she was very thankful that she had never been acquainted
|
|
with him at all. She wished with all her heart Combe
|
|
Magna was not so near Cleveland; but it did not signify,
|
|
for it was a great deal too far off to visit; she hated
|
|
him so much that she was resolved never to mention
|
|
his name again, and she should tell everybody she saw,
|
|
how good-for-nothing he was."
|
|
|
|
The rest of Mrs. Palmer's sympathy was shewn in procuring
|
|
all the particulars in her power of the approaching marriage,
|
|
and communicating them to Elinor. She could soon tell
|
|
at what coachmaker's the new carriage was building,
|
|
by what painter Mr. Willoughby's portrait was drawn,
|
|
and at what warehouse Miss Grey's clothes might be seen.
|
|
|
|
The calm and polite unconcern of Lady Middleton
|
|
on the occasion was a happy relief to Elinor's spirits,
|
|
oppressed as they often were by the clamorous kindness
|
|
of the others. It was a great comfort to her to be sure
|
|
of exciting no interest in ONE person at least among their
|
|
circle of friends: a great comfort to know that there
|
|
was ONE who would meet her without feeling any curiosity
|
|
after particulars, or any anxiety for her sister's health.
|
|
|
|
Every qualification is raised at times, by the
|
|
circumstances of the moment, to more than its real value;
|
|
and she was sometimes worried down by officious condolence
|
|
to rate good-breeding as more indispensable to comfort
|
|
than good-nature.
|
|
|
|
Lady Middleton expressed her sense of the affair
|
|
about once every day, or twice, if the subject occurred
|
|
very often, by saying, "It is very shocking, indeed!"
|
|
and by the means of this continual though gentle vent,
|
|
was able not only to see the Miss Dashwoods from the
|
|
first without the smallest emotion, but very soon
|
|
to see them without recollecting a word of the matter;
|
|
and having thus supported the dignity of her own sex,
|
|
and spoken her decided censure of what was wrong
|
|
in the other, she thought herself at liberty to attend
|
|
to the interest of her own assemblies, and therefore
|
|
determined (though rather against the opinion of Sir John)
|
|
that as Mrs. Willoughby would at once be a woman of elegance
|
|
and fortune, to leave her card with her as soon as she married.
|
|
|
|
Colonel Brandon's delicate, unobtrusive enquiries
|
|
were never unwelcome to Miss Dashwood. He had abundantly
|
|
earned the privilege of intimate discussion of her
|
|
sister's disappointment, by the friendly zeal with
|
|
which he had endeavoured to soften it, and they always
|
|
conversed with confidence. His chief reward for the
|
|
painful exertion of disclosing past sorrows and present
|
|
humiliations, was given in the pitying eye with which
|
|
Marianne sometimes observed him, and the gentleness
|
|
of her voice whenever (though it did not often happen)
|
|
she was obliged, or could oblige herself to speak to him.
|
|
THESE assured him that his exertion had produced an
|
|
increase of good-will towards himself, and THESE gave
|
|
Elinor hopes of its being farther augmented hereafter;
|
|
but Mrs. Jennings, who knew nothing of all this, who knew
|
|
only that the Colonel continued as grave as ever, and that
|
|
she could neither prevail on him to make the offer himself,
|
|
nor commission her to make it for him, began, at the
|
|
end of two days, to think that, instead of Midsummer,
|
|
they would not be married till Michaelmas, and by the
|
|
end of a week that it would not be a match at all.
|
|
The good understanding between the Colonel and Miss
|
|
Dashwood seemed rather to declare that the honours
|
|
of the mulberry-tree, the canal, and the yew arbour,
|
|
would all be made over to HER; and Mrs. Jennings had,
|
|
for some time ceased to think at all of Mrs. Ferrars.
|
|
|
|
Early in February, within a fortnight from the
|
|
receipt of Willoughby's letter, Elinor had the painful
|
|
office of informing her sister that he was married.
|
|
She had taken care to have the intelligence conveyed
|
|
to herself, as soon as it was known that the ceremony
|
|
was over, as she was desirous that Marianne should not
|
|
receive the first notice of it from the public papers,
|
|
which she saw her eagerly examining every morning.
|
|
|
|
She received the news with resolute composure;
|
|
made no observation on it, and at first shed no tears;
|
|
but after a short time they would burst out, and for the
|
|
rest of the day, she was in a state hardly less pitiable
|
|
than when she first learnt to expect the event.
|
|
|
|
The Willoughbys left town as soon as they were married;
|
|
and Elinor now hoped, as there could be no danger
|
|
of her seeing either of them, to prevail on her sister,
|
|
who had never yet left the house since the blow first fell,
|
|
to go out again by degrees as she had done before.
|
|
|
|
About this time the two Miss Steeles, lately arrived
|
|
at their cousin's house in Bartlett's Buildings,
|
|
Holburn, presented themselves again before their more
|
|
grand relations in Conduit and Berkeley Streets;
|
|
and were welcomed by them all with great cordiality.
|
|
|
|
Elinor only was sorry to see them. Their presence
|
|
always gave her pain, and she hardly knew how to make
|
|
a very gracious return to the overpowering delight of Lucy
|
|
in finding her STILL in town.
|
|
|
|
"I should have been quite disappointed if I had not
|
|
found you here STILL," said she repeatedly, with a strong
|
|
emphasis on the word. "But I always thought I SHOULD.
|
|
I was almost sure you would not leave London yet awhile;
|
|
though you TOLD me, you know, at Barton, that you should
|
|
not stay above a MONTH. But I thought, at the time,
|
|
that you would most likely change your mind when it came
|
|
to the point. It would have been such a great pity
|
|
to have went away before your brother and sister came.
|
|
And now to be sure you will be in no hurry to be gone.
|
|
I am amazingly glad you did not keep to YOUR WORD."
|
|
|
|
Elinor perfectly understood her, and was forced
|
|
to use all her self-command to make it appear that she
|
|
did NOT.
|
|
|
|
"Well, my dear," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did
|
|
you travel?"
|
|
|
|
"Not in the stage, I assure you," replied Miss Steele,
|
|
with quick exultation; "we came post all the way, and had
|
|
a very smart beau to attend us. Dr. Davies was coming
|
|
to town, and so we thought we'd join him in a post-chaise;
|
|
and he behaved very genteelly, and paid ten or twelve
|
|
shillings more than we did."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, oh!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "very pretty,
|
|
indeed! and the Doctor is a single man, I warrant you."
|
|
|
|
"There now," said Miss Steele, affectedly simpering,
|
|
"everybody laughs at me so about the Doctor, and I
|
|
cannot think why. My cousins say they are sure I have
|
|
made a conquest; but for my part I declare I never think
|
|
about him from one hour's end to another. 'Lord! here
|
|
comes your beau, Nancy,' my cousin said t'other day,
|
|
when she saw him crossing the street to the house.
|
|
My beau, indeed! said I--I cannot think who you mean.
|
|
The Doctor is no beau of mine."
|
|
|
|
"Aye, aye, that is very pretty talking--but it won't do--
|
|
the Doctor is the man, I see."
|
|
|
|
"No, indeed!" replied her cousin, with affected earnestness,
|
|
"and I beg you will contradict it, if you ever hear it talked of."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings directly gave her the gratifying
|
|
assurance that she certainly would NOT, and Miss Steele
|
|
was made completely happy.
|
|
|
|
"I suppose you will go and stay with your brother
|
|
and sister, Miss Dashwood, when they come to town,"
|
|
said Lucy, returning, after a cessation of hostile hints,
|
|
to the charge.
|
|
|
|
"No, I do not think we shall."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, yes, I dare say you will."
|
|
|
|
Elinor would not humour her by farther opposition.
|
|
|
|
"What a charming thing it is that Mrs. Dashwood can
|
|
spare you both for so long a time together!"
|
|
|
|
"Long a time, indeed!" interposed Mrs. Jennings.
|
|
"Why, their visit is but just begun!"
|
|
|
|
Lucy was silenced.
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry we cannot see your sister, Miss Dashwood,"
|
|
said Miss Steele. "I am sorry she is not well--"
|
|
for Marianne had left the room on their arrival.
|
|
|
|
"You are very good. My sister will be equally
|
|
sorry to miss the pleasure of seeing you; but she has
|
|
been very much plagued lately with nervous head-aches,
|
|
which make her unfit for company or conversation."
|
|
|
|
"Oh, dear, that is a great pity! but such old
|
|
friends as Lucy and me!--I think she might see US;
|
|
and I am sure we would not speak a word."
|
|
|
|
Elinor, with great civility, declined the proposal.
|
|
Her sister was perhaps laid down upon the bed, or in her
|
|
dressing gown, and therefore not able to come to them.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, if that's all," cried Miss Steele, "we can
|
|
just as well go and see HER."
|
|
|
|
Elinor began to find this impertinence too much for
|
|
her temper; but she was saved the trouble of checking it,
|
|
by Lucy's sharp reprimand, which now, as on many occasions,
|
|
though it did not give much sweetness to the manners
|
|
of one sister, was of advantage in governing those of
|
|
the other.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 33
|
|
|
|
After some opposition, Marianne yielded to her
|
|
sister's entreaties, and consented to go out with her
|
|
and Mrs. Jennings one morning for half an hour. She
|
|
expressly conditioned, however, for paying no visits,
|
|
and would do no more than accompany them to Gray's in
|
|
Sackville Street, where Elinor was carrying on a negotiation
|
|
for the exchange of a few old-fashioned jewels of her mother.
|
|
|
|
When they stopped at the door, Mrs. Jennings recollected
|
|
that there was a lady at the other end of the street
|
|
on whom she ought to call; and as she had no business
|
|
at Gray's, it was resolved, that while her young friends
|
|
transacted their's, she should pay her visit and
|
|
return for them.
|
|
|
|
On ascending the stairs, the Miss Dashwoods found
|
|
so many people before them in the room, that there was
|
|
not a person at liberty to tend to their orders; and they
|
|
were obliged to wait. All that could be done was, to sit
|
|
down at that end of the counter which seemed to promise the
|
|
quickest succession; one gentleman only was standing there,
|
|
and it is probable that Elinor was not without hope
|
|
of exciting his politeness to a quicker despatch.
|
|
But the correctness of his eye, and the delicacy
|
|
of his taste, proved to be beyond his politeness.
|
|
He was giving orders for a toothpick-case for himself,
|
|
and till its size, shape, and ornaments were determined,
|
|
all of which, after examining and debating for a quarter
|
|
of an hour over every toothpick-case in the shop,
|
|
were finally arranged by his own inventive fancy, he had
|
|
no leisure to bestow any other attention on the two ladies,
|
|
than what was comprised in three or four very broad stares;
|
|
a kind of notice which served to imprint on Elinor
|
|
the remembrance of a person and face, of strong,
|
|
natural, sterling insignificance, though adorned in
|
|
the first style of fashion.
|
|
|
|
Marianne was spared from the troublesome feelings
|
|
of contempt and resentment, on this impertinent examination
|
|
of their features, and on the puppyism of his manner
|
|
in deciding on all the different horrors of the different
|
|
toothpick-cases presented to his inspection, by remaining
|
|
unconscious of it all; for she was as well able to collect
|
|
her thoughts within herself, and be as ignorant of what was
|
|
passing around her, in Mr. Gray's shop, as in her own bedroom.
|
|
|
|
At last the affair was decided. The ivory,
|
|
the gold, and the pearls, all received their appointment,
|
|
and the gentleman having named the last day on which his
|
|
existence could be continued without the possession of the
|
|
toothpick-case, drew on his gloves with leisurely care,
|
|
and bestowing another glance on the Miss Dashwoods, but such
|
|
a one as seemed rather to demand than express admiration,
|
|
walked off with a happy air of real conceit and affected indifference.
|
|
|
|
Elinor lost no time in bringing her business forward,
|
|
was on the point of concluding it, when another gentleman
|
|
presented himself at her side. She turned her eyes towards
|
|
his face, and found him with some surprise to be her brother.
|
|
|
|
Their affection and pleasure in meeting was just enough
|
|
to make a very creditable appearance in Mr. Gray's shop.
|
|
John Dashwood was really far from being sorry to see
|
|
his sisters again; it rather gave them satisfaction;
|
|
and his inquiries after their mother were respectful
|
|
and attentive.
|
|
|
|
Elinor found that he and Fanny had been in town
|
|
two days.
|
|
|
|
"I wished very much to call upon you yesterday,"
|
|
said he, "but it was impossible, for we were obliged
|
|
to take Harry to see the wild beasts at Exeter Exchange;
|
|
and we spent the rest of the day with Mrs. Ferrars.
|
|
Harry was vastly pleased. THIS morning I had fully intended
|
|
to call on you, if I could possibly find a spare half hour,
|
|
but one has always so much to do on first coming to town.
|
|
I am come here to bespeak Fanny a seal. But tomorrow I
|
|
think I shall certainly be able to call in Berkeley Street,
|
|
and be introduced to your friend Mrs. Jennings.
|
|
I understand she is a woman of very good fortune.
|
|
And the Middletons too, you must introduce me to THEM.
|
|
As my mother-in-law's relations, I shall be happy to show
|
|
them every respect. They are excellent neighbours to you in
|
|
the country, I understand."
|
|
|
|
"Excellent indeed. Their attention to our comfort,
|
|
their friendliness in every particular, is more than I
|
|
can express."
|
|
|
|
"I am extremely glad to hear it, upon my word;
|
|
extremely glad indeed. But so it ought to be; they are
|
|
people of large fortune, they are related to you, and
|
|
every civility and accommodation that can serve to make
|
|
your situation pleasant might be reasonably expected.
|
|
And so you are most comfortably settled in your little cottage
|
|
and want for nothing! Edward brought us a most charming
|
|
account of the place: the most complete thing of its kind,
|
|
he said, that ever was, and you all seemed to enjoy it beyond
|
|
any thing. It was a great satisfaction to us to hear it,
|
|
I assure you."
|
|
|
|
Elinor did feel a little ashamed of her brother;
|
|
and was not sorry to be spared the necessity of answering him,
|
|
by the arrival of Mrs. Jennings's servant, who came to tell
|
|
her that his mistress waited for them at the door.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Dashwood attended them down stairs, was introduced
|
|
to Mrs. Jennings at the door of her carriage, and repeating
|
|
his hope of being able to call on them the next day,
|
|
took leave.
|
|
|
|
His visit was duly paid. He came with a pretence at
|
|
an apology from their sister-in-law, for not coming too;
|
|
"but she was so much engaged with her mother, that really
|
|
she had no leisure for going any where." Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
however, assured him directly, that she should not stand
|
|
upon ceremony, for they were all cousins, or something
|
|
like it, and she should certainly wait on Mrs. John
|
|
Dashwood very soon, and bring her sisters to see her.
|
|
His manners to THEM, though calm, were perfectly kind;
|
|
to Mrs. Jennings, most attentively civil; and on Colonel
|
|
Brandon's coming in soon after himself, he eyed him with a
|
|
curiosity which seemed to say, that he only wanted to know
|
|
him to be rich, to be equally civil to HIM.
|
|
|
|
After staying with them half an hour, he asked
|
|
Elinor to walk with him to Conduit Street, and introduce
|
|
him to Sir John and Lady Middleton. The weather was
|
|
remarkably fine, and she readily consented. As soon
|
|
as they were out of the house, his enquiries began.
|
|
|
|
"Who is Colonel Brandon? Is he a man of fortune?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; he has very good property in Dorsetshire."
|
|
|
|
"I am glad of it. He seems a most gentlemanlike man;
|
|
and I think, Elinor, I may congratulate you on the prospect
|
|
of a very respectable establishment in life."
|
|
|
|
"Me, brother! what do you mean?"
|
|
|
|
"He likes you. I observed him narrowly, and am
|
|
convinced of it. What is the amount of his fortune?"
|
|
|
|
"I believe about two thousand a year."
|
|
|
|
"Two thousand a-year;" and then working himself
|
|
up to a pitch of enthusiastic generosity, he added,
|
|
"Elinor, I wish with all my heart it were TWICE as much,
|
|
for your sake."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed I believe you," replied Elinor; "but I am
|
|
very sure that Colonel Brandon has not the smallest wish
|
|
of marrying ME."
|
|
|
|
"You are mistaken, Elinor; you are very much mistaken.
|
|
A very little trouble on your side secures him.
|
|
Perhaps just at present he may be undecided; the smallness
|
|
of your fortune may make him hang back; his friends
|
|
may all advise him against it. But some of those little
|
|
attentions and encouragements which ladies can so easily
|
|
give will fix him, in spite of himself. And there can be
|
|
no reason why you should not try for him. It is not to be
|
|
supposed that any prior attachment on your side--in short,
|
|
you know as to an attachment of that kind, it is quite
|
|
out of the question, the objections are insurmountable--
|
|
you have too much sense not to see all that. Colonel Brandon
|
|
must be the man; and no civility shall be wanting on
|
|
my part to make him pleased with you and your family.
|
|
It is a match that must give universal satisfaction.
|
|
In short, it is a kind of thing that"--lowering his voice
|
|
to an important whisper--"will be exceedingly welcome
|
|
to ALL PARTIES." Recollecting himself, however, he added,
|
|
"That is, I mean to say--your friends are all truly
|
|
anxious to see you well settled; Fanny particularly,
|
|
for she has your interest very much at heart, I assure you.
|
|
And her mother too, Mrs. Ferrars, a very good-natured woman,
|
|
I am sure it would give her great pleasure; she said as much
|
|
the other day."
|
|
|
|
Elinor would not vouchsafe any answer.
|
|
|
|
"It would be something remarkable, now," he continued,
|
|
"something droll, if Fanny should have a brother and I
|
|
a sister settling at the same time. And yet it is not
|
|
very unlikely."
|
|
|
|
"Is Mr. Edward Ferrars," said Elinor, with resolution,
|
|
"going to be married?"
|
|
|
|
"It is not actually settled, but there is such
|
|
a thing in agitation. He has a most excellent mother.
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars, with the utmost liberality, will come forward,
|
|
and settle on him a thousand a year, if the match
|
|
takes place. The lady is the Hon. Miss Morton, only daughter
|
|
of the late Lord Morton, with thirty thousand pounds.
|
|
A very desirable connection on both sides, and I have not
|
|
a doubt of its taking place in time. A thousand a-year
|
|
is a great deal for a mother to give away, to make over
|
|
for ever; but Mrs. Ferrars has a noble spirit. To give
|
|
you another instance of her liberality:--The other day,
|
|
as soon as we came to town, aware that money could
|
|
not be very plenty with us just now, she put bank-notes
|
|
into Fanny's hands to the amount of two hundred pounds.
|
|
And extremely acceptable it is, for we must live at a great
|
|
expense while we are here."
|
|
|
|
He paused for her assent and compassion; and she
|
|
forced herself to say,
|
|
|
|
"Your expenses both in town and country must certainly
|
|
be considerable; but your income is a large one."
|
|
|
|
"Not so large, I dare say, as many people suppose.
|
|
I do not mean to complain, however; it is undoubtedly
|
|
a comfortable one, and I hope will in time be better.
|
|
The enclosure of Norland Common, now carrying on,
|
|
is a most serious drain. And then I have made a little
|
|
purchase within this half year; East Kingham Farm,
|
|
you must remember the place, where old Gibson used to live.
|
|
The land was so very desirable for me in every respect,
|
|
so immediately adjoining my own property, that I felt it
|
|
my duty to buy it. I could not have answered it to my
|
|
conscience to let it fall into any other hands. A man must
|
|
pay for his convenience; and it HAS cost me a vast deal
|
|
of money."
|
|
|
|
"More than you think it really and intrinsically worth."
|
|
|
|
"Why, I hope not that. I might have sold it again,
|
|
the next day, for more than I gave: but, with regard to the
|
|
purchase-money, I might have been very unfortunate indeed;
|
|
for the stocks were at that time so low, that if I had not
|
|
happened to have the necessary sum in my banker's hands,
|
|
I must have sold out to very great loss."
|
|
|
|
Elinor could only smile.
|
|
|
|
"Other great and inevitable expenses too we have
|
|
had on first coming to Norland. Our respected father,
|
|
as you well know, bequeathed all the Stanhill effects
|
|
that remained at Norland (and very valuable they were)
|
|
to your mother. Far be it from me to repine at his
|
|
doing so; he had an undoubted right to dispose of his
|
|
own property as he chose, but, in consequence of it,
|
|
we have been obliged to make large purchases of linen,
|
|
china, &c. to supply the place of what was taken away.
|
|
You may guess, after all these expenses, how very far we
|
|
must be from being rich, and how acceptable Mrs. Ferrars's
|
|
kindness is."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly," said Elinor; "and assisted by her liberality,
|
|
I hope you may yet live to be in easy circumstances."
|
|
|
|
"Another year or two may do much towards it,"
|
|
he gravely replied; "but however there is still a great
|
|
deal to be done. There is not a stone laid of Fanny's
|
|
green-house, and nothing but the plan of the flower-garden
|
|
marked out."
|
|
|
|
"Where is the green-house to be?"
|
|
|
|
"Upon the knoll behind the house. The old
|
|
walnut trees are all come down to make room for it.
|
|
It will be a very fine object from many parts of the park,
|
|
and the flower-garden will slope down just before it,
|
|
and be exceedingly pretty. We have cleared away all the old
|
|
thorns that grew in patches over the brow."
|
|
|
|
Elinor kept her concern and her censure to herself;
|
|
and was very thankful that Marianne was not present,
|
|
to share the provocation.
|
|
|
|
Having now said enough to make his poverty clear,
|
|
and to do away the necessity of buying a pair of ear-rings
|
|
for each of his sisters, in his next visit at Gray's
|
|
his thoughts took a cheerfuller turn, and he began to
|
|
congratulate Elinor on having such a friend as Mrs. Jennings.
|
|
|
|
"She seems a most valuable woman indeed--Her house,
|
|
her style of living, all bespeak an exceeding good income;
|
|
and it is an acquaintance that has not only been
|
|
of great use to you hitherto, but in the end may prove
|
|
materially advantageous.--Her inviting you to town is
|
|
certainly a vast thing in your favour; and indeed, it
|
|
speaks altogether so great a regard for you, that in all
|
|
probability when she dies you will not be forgotten.--
|
|
She must have a great deal to leave."
|
|
|
|
"Nothing at all, I should rather suppose; for she has
|
|
only her jointure, which will descend to her children."
|
|
|
|
"But it is not to be imagined that she lives up to
|
|
her income. Few people of common prudence will do THAT;
|
|
and whatever she saves, she will be able to dispose of."
|
|
|
|
"And do you not think it more likely that she
|
|
should leave it to her daughters, than to us?"
|
|
|
|
"Her daughters are both exceedingly well married,
|
|
and therefore I cannot perceive the necessity of her
|
|
remembering them farther. Whereas, in my opinion, by her
|
|
taking so much notice of you, and treating you in this
|
|
kind of way, she has given you a sort of claim on her
|
|
future consideration, which a conscientious woman would
|
|
not disregard. Nothing can be kinder than her behaviour;
|
|
and she can hardly do all this, without being aware
|
|
of the expectation it raises."
|
|
|
|
"But she raises none in those most concerned.
|
|
Indeed, brother, your anxiety for our welfare and prosperity
|
|
carries you too far."
|
|
|
|
"Why, to be sure," said he, seeming to recollect himself,
|
|
"people have little, have very little in their power.
|
|
But, my dear Elinor, what is the matter with Marianne?--
|
|
she looks very unwell, has lost her colour, and is grown
|
|
quite thin. Is she ill?"
|
|
|
|
"She is not well, she has had a nervous complaint
|
|
on her for several weeks."
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry for that. At her time of life,
|
|
any thing of an illness destroys the bloom for ever!
|
|
Her's has been a very short one! She was as handsome a girl
|
|
last September, as I ever saw; and as likely to attract
|
|
the man. There was something in her style of beauty,
|
|
to please them particularly. I remember Fanny used to say
|
|
that she would marry sooner and better than you did;
|
|
not but what she is exceedingly fond of YOU, but so it
|
|
happened to strike her. She will be mistaken, however.
|
|
I question whether Marianne NOW, will marry a man worth
|
|
more than five or six hundred a-year, at the utmost,
|
|
and I am very much deceived if YOU do not do better.
|
|
Dorsetshire! I know very little of Dorsetshire; but, my dear
|
|
Elinor, I shall be exceedingly glad to know more of it;
|
|
and I think I can answer for your having Fanny and myself
|
|
among the earliest and best pleased of your visitors."
|
|
|
|
Elinor tried very seriously to convince him that
|
|
there was no likelihood of her marrying Colonel Brandon;
|
|
but it was an expectation of too much pleasure to himself
|
|
to be relinquished, and he was really resolved on seeking
|
|
an intimacy with that gentleman, and promoting the marriage
|
|
by every possible attention. He had just compunction
|
|
enough for having done nothing for his sisters himself,
|
|
to be exceedingly anxious that everybody else should
|
|
do a great deal; and an offer from Colonel Brandon,
|
|
or a legacy from Mrs. Jennings, was the easiest means
|
|
of atoning for his own neglect.
|
|
|
|
They were lucky enough to find Lady Middleton
|
|
at home, and Sir John came in before their visit ended.
|
|
Abundance of civilities passed on all sides. Sir John
|
|
was ready to like anybody, and though Mr. Dashwood did
|
|
not seem to know much about horses, he soon set him
|
|
down as a very good-natured fellow: while Lady Middleton
|
|
saw enough of fashion in his appearance to think his
|
|
acquaintance worth having; and Mr. Dashwood went away
|
|
delighted with both.
|
|
|
|
"I shall have a charming account to carry
|
|
to Fanny," said he, as he walked back with his sister.
|
|
"Lady Middleton is really a most elegant woman! Such
|
|
a woman as I am sure Fanny will be glad to know.
|
|
And Mrs. Jennings too, an exceedingly well-behaved woman,
|
|
though not so elegant as her daughter. Your sister need
|
|
not have any scruple even of visiting HER, which, to say
|
|
the truth, has been a little the case, and very naturally;
|
|
for we only knew that Mrs. Jennings was the widow of a man
|
|
who had got all his money in a low way; and Fanny and
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars were both strongly prepossessed, that neither
|
|
she nor her daughters were such kind of women as Fanny
|
|
would like to associate with. But now I can carry her
|
|
a most satisfactory account of both."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 34
|
|
|
|
Mrs. John Dashwood had so much confidence in her
|
|
husband's judgment, that she waited the very next day
|
|
both on Mrs. Jennings and her daughter; and her
|
|
confidence was rewarded by finding even the former,
|
|
even the woman with whom her sisters were staying,
|
|
by no means unworthy her notice; and as for Lady Middleton,
|
|
she found her one of the most charming women in the world!
|
|
|
|
Lady Middleton was equally pleased with Mrs. Dashwood.
|
|
There was a kind of cold hearted selfishness on both sides,
|
|
which mutually attracted them; and they sympathised
|
|
with each other in an insipid propriety of demeanor,
|
|
and a general want of understanding.
|
|
|
|
The same manners, however, which recommended Mrs. John
|
|
Dashwood to the good opinion of Lady Middleton did not suit
|
|
the fancy of Mrs. Jennings, and to HER she appeared nothing
|
|
more than a little proud-looking woman of uncordial address,
|
|
who met her husband's sisters without any affection,
|
|
and almost without having anything to say to them;
|
|
for of the quarter of an hour bestowed on Berkeley Street,
|
|
she sat at least seven minutes and a half in silence.
|
|
|
|
Elinor wanted very much to know, though she did
|
|
not chuse to ask, whether Edward was then in town;
|
|
but nothing would have induced Fanny voluntarily
|
|
to mention his name before her, till able to tell her
|
|
that his marriage with Miss Morton was resolved on,
|
|
or till her husband's expectations on Colonel Brandon
|
|
were answered; because she believed them still so very
|
|
much attached to each other, that they could not be too
|
|
sedulously divided in word and deed on every occasion.
|
|
The intelligence however, which SHE would not give,
|
|
soon flowed from another quarter. Lucy came very shortly
|
|
to claim Elinor's compassion on being unable to see Edward,
|
|
though he had arrived in town with Mr. and Mrs. Dashwood.
|
|
He dared not come to Bartlett's Buildings for fear
|
|
of detection, and though their mutual impatience to meet,
|
|
was not to be told, they could do nothing at present
|
|
but write.
|
|
|
|
Edward assured them himself of his being in town,
|
|
within a very short time, by twice calling in Berkeley Street.
|
|
Twice was his card found on the table, when they returned
|
|
from their morning's engagements. Elinor was pleased
|
|
that he had called; and still more pleased that she had
|
|
missed him.
|
|
|
|
The Dashwoods were so prodigiously delighted
|
|
with the Middletons, that, though not much in the habit
|
|
of giving anything, they determined to give them--
|
|
a dinner; and soon after their acquaintance began,
|
|
invited them to dine in Harley Street, where they had
|
|
taken a very good house for three months. Their sisters
|
|
and Mrs. Jennings were invited likewise, and John Dashwood
|
|
was careful to secure Colonel Brandon, who, always glad
|
|
to be where the Miss Dashwoods were, received his eager
|
|
civilities with some surprise, but much more pleasure.
|
|
They were to meet Mrs. Ferrars; but Elinor could not learn
|
|
whether her sons were to be of the party. The expectation
|
|
of seeing HER, however, was enough to make her interested
|
|
in the engagement; for though she could now meet Edward's
|
|
mother without that strong anxiety which had once promised
|
|
to attend such an introduction, though she could now see
|
|
her with perfect indifference as to her opinion of herself,
|
|
her desire of being in company with Mrs. Ferrars,
|
|
her curiosity to know what she was like, was as lively as ever.
|
|
|
|
The interest with which she thus anticipated the
|
|
party, was soon afterwards increased, more powerfully
|
|
than pleasantly, by her hearing that the Miss Steeles
|
|
were also to be at it.
|
|
|
|
So well had they recommended themselves to Lady Middleton,
|
|
so agreeable had their assiduities made them to her,
|
|
that though Lucy was certainly not so elegant, and her
|
|
sister not even genteel, she was as ready as Sir John
|
|
to ask them to spend a week or two in Conduit Street;
|
|
and it happened to be particularly convenient to the Miss
|
|
Steeles, as soon as the Dashwoods' invitation was known,
|
|
that their visit should begin a few days before the party
|
|
took place.
|
|
|
|
Their claims to the notice of Mrs. John Dashwood,
|
|
as the nieces of the gentleman who for many years had
|
|
had the care of her brother, might not have done much,
|
|
however, towards procuring them seats at her table;
|
|
but as Lady Middleton's guests they must be welcome; and Lucy,
|
|
who had long wanted to be personally known to the family,
|
|
to have a nearer view of their characters and her own
|
|
difficulties, and to have an opportunity of endeavouring
|
|
to please them, had seldom been happier in her life,
|
|
than she was on receiving Mrs. John Dashwood's card.
|
|
|
|
On Elinor its effect was very different. She began
|
|
immediately to determine, that Edward who lived with
|
|
his mother, must be asked as his mother was, to a party
|
|
given by his sister; and to see him for the first time,
|
|
after all that passed, in the company of Lucy!--she hardly
|
|
knew how she could bear it!
|
|
|
|
These apprehensions, perhaps, were not founded
|
|
entirely on reason, and certainly not at all on truth.
|
|
They were relieved however, not by her own recollection,
|
|
but by the good will of Lucy, who believed herself to be
|
|
inflicting a severe disappointment when she told her
|
|
that Edward certainly would not be in Harley Street on Tuesday,
|
|
and even hoped to be carrying the pain still farther
|
|
by persuading her that he was kept away by the extreme
|
|
affection for herself, which he could not conceal when they
|
|
were together.
|
|
|
|
The important Tuesday came that was to introduce
|
|
the two young ladies to this formidable mother-in-law.
|
|
|
|
"Pity me, dear Miss Dashwood!" said Lucy, as they
|
|
walked up the stairs together--for the Middletons arrived
|
|
so directly after Mrs. Jennings, that they all followed
|
|
the servant at the same time--"There is nobody here but
|
|
you, that can feel for me.--I declare I can hardly stand.
|
|
Good gracious!--In a moment I shall see the person that all
|
|
my happiness depends on--that is to be my mother!"--
|
|
|
|
Elinor could have given her immediate relief
|
|
by suggesting the possibility of its being Miss Morton's mother,
|
|
rather than her own, whom they were about to behold;
|
|
but instead of doing that, she assured her, and with
|
|
great sincerity, that she did pity her--to the utter
|
|
amazement of Lucy, who, though really uncomfortable herself,
|
|
hoped at least to be an object of irrepressible envy to Elinor.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars was a little, thin woman, upright,
|
|
even to formality, in her figure, and serious,
|
|
even to sourness, in her aspect. Her complexion was sallow;
|
|
and her features small, without beauty, and naturally
|
|
without expression; but a lucky contraction of the brow
|
|
had rescued her countenance from the disgrace of insipidity,
|
|
by giving it the strong characters of pride and ill nature.
|
|
She was not a woman of many words; for, unlike people
|
|
in general, she proportioned them to the number of
|
|
her ideas; and of the few syllables that did escape her,
|
|
not one fell to the share of Miss Dashwood, whom she eyed
|
|
with the spirited determination of disliking her at all events.
|
|
|
|
Elinor could not NOW be made unhappy by this behaviour.--
|
|
A few months ago it would have hurt her exceedingly; but it
|
|
was not in Mrs. Ferrars' power to distress her by it now;--
|
|
and the difference of her manners to the Miss Steeles,
|
|
a difference which seemed purposely made to humble her more,
|
|
only amused her. She could not but smile to see the graciousness
|
|
of both mother and daughter towards the very person--
|
|
for Lucy was particularly distinguished--whom of all others,
|
|
had they known as much as she did, they would have been most
|
|
anxious to mortify; while she herself, who had comparatively
|
|
no power to wound them, sat pointedly slighted by both.
|
|
But while she smiled at a graciousness so misapplied,
|
|
she could not reflect on the mean-spirited folly from
|
|
which it sprung, nor observe the studied attentions
|
|
with which the Miss Steeles courted its continuance,
|
|
without thoroughly despising them all four.
|
|
|
|
Lucy was all exultation on being so honorably
|
|
distinguished; and Miss Steele wanted only to be teazed
|
|
about Dr. Davis to be perfectly happy.
|
|
|
|
The dinner was a grand one, the servants were numerous,
|
|
and every thing bespoke the Mistress's inclination
|
|
for show, and the Master's ability to support it.
|
|
In spite of the improvements and additions which were
|
|
making to the Norland estate, and in spite of its owner
|
|
having once been within some thousand pounds of being
|
|
obliged to sell out at a loss, nothing gave any symptom
|
|
of that indigence which he had tried to infer from it;--
|
|
no poverty of any kind, except of conversation, appeared--
|
|
but there, the deficiency was considerable. John Dashwood
|
|
had not much to say for himself that was worth hearing,
|
|
and his wife had still less. But there was no peculiar
|
|
disgrace in this; for it was very much the case with
|
|
the chief of their visitors, who almost all laboured
|
|
under one or other of these disqualifications for being
|
|
agreeable--Want of sense, either natural or improved--want
|
|
of elegance--want of spirits--or want of temper.
|
|
|
|
When the ladies withdrew to the drawing-room
|
|
after dinner, this poverty was particularly evident,
|
|
for the gentlemen HAD supplied the discourse with some
|
|
variety--the variety of politics, inclosing land,
|
|
and breaking horses--but then it was all over; and one
|
|
subject only engaged the ladies till coffee came in,
|
|
which was the comparative heights of Harry Dashwood,
|
|
and Lady Middleton's second son William, who were nearly
|
|
of the same age.
|
|
|
|
Had both the children been there, the affair might
|
|
have been determined too easily by measuring them at once;
|
|
but as Harry only was present, it was all conjectural
|
|
assertion on both sides; and every body had a right to
|
|
be equally positive in their opinion, and to repeat it
|
|
over and over again as often as they liked.
|
|
|
|
The parties stood thus:
|
|
|
|
The two mothers, though each really convinced that
|
|
her own son was the tallest, politely decided in favour
|
|
of the other.
|
|
|
|
The two grandmothers, with not less partiality,
|
|
but more sincerity, were equally earnest in support
|
|
of their own descendant.
|
|
|
|
Lucy, who was hardly less anxious to please one parent
|
|
than the other, thought the boys were both remarkably tall
|
|
for their age, and could not conceive that there could
|
|
be the smallest difference in the world between them;
|
|
and Miss Steele, with yet greater address gave it,
|
|
as fast as she could, in favour of each.
|
|
|
|
Elinor, having once delivered her opinion on
|
|
William's side, by which she offended Mrs. Ferrars and
|
|
Fanny still more, did not see the necessity of enforcing
|
|
it by any farther assertion; and Marianne, when called
|
|
on for her's, offended them all, by declaring that she
|
|
had no opinion to give, as she had never thought about it.
|
|
|
|
Before her removing from Norland, Elinor had painted
|
|
a very pretty pair of screens for her sister-in-law,
|
|
which being now just mounted and brought home,
|
|
ornamented her present drawing room; and these screens,
|
|
catching the eye of John Dashwood on his following
|
|
the other gentlemen into the room, were officiously
|
|
handed by him to Colonel Brandon for his admiration.
|
|
|
|
"These are done by my eldest sister," said he; "and you,
|
|
as a man of taste, will, I dare say, be pleased with them.
|
|
I do not know whether you have ever happened to see any
|
|
of her performances before, but she is in general reckoned
|
|
to draw extremely well."
|
|
|
|
The Colonel, though disclaiming all pretensions
|
|
to connoisseurship, warmly admired the screens, as he
|
|
would have done any thing painted by Miss Dashwood;
|
|
and on the curiosity of the others being of course excited,
|
|
they were handed round for general inspection.
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars, not aware of their being Elinor's work,
|
|
particularly requested to look at them; and after they had
|
|
received gratifying testimony of Lady Middletons's approbation,
|
|
Fanny presented them to her mother, considerately informing
|
|
her, at the same time, that they were done by Miss Dashwood.
|
|
|
|
"Hum"--said Mrs. Ferrars--"very pretty,"--and without
|
|
regarding them at all, returned them to her daughter.
|
|
|
|
Perhaps Fanny thought for a moment that her mother
|
|
had been quite rude enough,--for, colouring a little,
|
|
she immediately said,
|
|
|
|
"They are very pretty, ma'am--an't they?" But then again,
|
|
the dread of having been too civil, too encouraging herself,
|
|
probably came over her, for she presently added,
|
|
|
|
"Do you not think they are something in Miss
|
|
Morton's style of painting, Ma'am?--She DOES paint most
|
|
delightfully!--How beautifully her last landscape is done!"
|
|
|
|
"Beautifully indeed! But SHE does every thing well."
|
|
|
|
Marianne could not bear this.--She was already
|
|
greatly displeased with Mrs. Ferrars; and such ill-timed
|
|
praise of another, at Elinor's expense, though she
|
|
had not any notion of what was principally meant by it,
|
|
provoked her immediately to say with warmth,
|
|
|
|
"This is admiration of a very particular kind!--
|
|
what is Miss Morton to us?--who knows, or who cares,
|
|
for her?--it is Elinor of whom WE think and speak."
|
|
|
|
And so saying, she took the screens out of her
|
|
sister-in-law's hands, to admire them herself as they
|
|
ought to be admired.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars looked exceedingly angry, and drawing
|
|
herself up more stiffly than ever, pronounced in retort
|
|
this bitter philippic, "Miss Morton is Lord Morton's daughter."
|
|
|
|
Fanny looked very angry too, and her husband was
|
|
all in a fright at his sister's audacity. Elinor was
|
|
much more hurt by Marianne's warmth than she had been
|
|
by what produced it; but Colonel Brandon's eyes, as they
|
|
were fixed on Marianne, declared that he noticed only
|
|
what was amiable in it, the affectionate heart which could
|
|
not bear to see a sister slighted in the smallest point.
|
|
|
|
Marianne's feelings did not stop here. The cold
|
|
insolence of Mrs. Ferrars's general behaviour to her sister,
|
|
seemed, to her, to foretell such difficulties and distresses
|
|
to Elinor, as her own wounded heart taught her to think
|
|
of with horror; and urged by a strong impulse of
|
|
affectionate sensibility, she moved after a moment,
|
|
to her sister's chair, and putting one arm round her neck,
|
|
and one cheek close to hers, said in a low, but eager,
|
|
voice,
|
|
|
|
"Dear, dear Elinor, don't mind them. Don't let them
|
|
make YOU unhappy."
|
|
|
|
She could say no more; her spirits were quite overcome,
|
|
and hiding her face on Elinor's shoulder, she burst
|
|
into tears. Every body's attention was called, and almost
|
|
every body was concerned.--Colonel Brandon rose up and went
|
|
to them without knowing what he did.--Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
with a very intelligent "Ah! poor dear," immediately gave
|
|
her her salts; and Sir John felt so desperately enraged
|
|
against the author of this nervous distress, that he
|
|
instantly changed his seat to one close by Lucy Steele,
|
|
and gave her, in a whisper, a brief account of the whole
|
|
shocking affair.
|
|
|
|
In a few minutes, however, Marianne was recovered
|
|
enough to put an end to the bustle, and sit down among
|
|
the rest; though her spirits retained the impression
|
|
of what had passed, the whole evening.
|
|
|
|
"Poor Marianne!" said her brother to Colonel Brandon,
|
|
in a low voice, as soon as he could secure his attention,--
|
|
"She has not such good health as her sister,--she is very
|
|
nervous,--she has not Elinor's constitution;--and one must
|
|
allow that there is something very trying to a young woman
|
|
who HAS BEEN a beauty in the loss of her personal attractions.
|
|
You would not think it perhaps, but Marianne WAS remarkably
|
|
handsome a few months ago; quite as handsome as Elinor.--
|
|
Now you see it is all gone."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 35
|
|
|
|
Elinor's curiosity to see Mrs. Ferrars was satisfied.--
|
|
She had found in her every thing that could tend to make
|
|
a farther connection between the families undesirable.--
|
|
She had seen enough of her pride, her meanness, and her
|
|
determined prejudice against herself, to comprehend all
|
|
the difficulties that must have perplexed the engagement,
|
|
and retarded the marriage, of Edward and herself, had he been
|
|
otherwise free;--and she had seen almost enough to be thankful
|
|
for her OWN sake, that one greater obstacle preserved her
|
|
from suffering under any other of Mrs. Ferrars's creation,
|
|
preserved her from all dependence upon her caprice, or any
|
|
solicitude for her good opinion. Or at least, if she did not
|
|
bring herself quite to rejoice in Edward's being fettered
|
|
to Lucy, she determined, that had Lucy been more amiable,
|
|
she OUGHT to have rejoiced.
|
|
|
|
She wondered that Lucy's spirits could be so very much
|
|
elevated by the civility of Mrs. Ferrars;--that her interest
|
|
and her vanity should so very much blind her as to make
|
|
the attention which seemed only paid her because she was
|
|
NOT ELINOR, appear a compliment to herself--or to allow
|
|
her to derive encouragement from a preference only given her,
|
|
because her real situation was unknown. But that it was so,
|
|
had not only been declared by Lucy's eyes at the time,
|
|
but was declared over again the next morning more openly,
|
|
for at her particular desire, Lady Middleton set her down
|
|
in Berkeley Street on the chance of seeing Elinor alone,
|
|
to tell her how happy she was.
|
|
|
|
The chance proved a lucky one, for a message from
|
|
Mrs. Palmer soon after she arrived, carried Mrs. Jennings away.
|
|
|
|
"My dear friend," cried Lucy, as soon as they were
|
|
by themselves, "I come to talk to you of my happiness.
|
|
Could anything be so flattering as Mrs. Ferrars's way
|
|
of treating me yesterday? So exceeding affable as she
|
|
was!--You know how I dreaded the thoughts of seeing her;--
|
|
but the very moment I was introduced, there was such an
|
|
affability in her behaviour as really should seem to say,
|
|
she had quite took a fancy to me. Now was not it so?--
|
|
You saw it all; and was not you quite struck with it?"
|
|
|
|
"She was certainly very civil to you."
|
|
|
|
"Civil!--Did you see nothing but only civility?--
|
|
I saw a vast deal more. Such kindness as fell to the share
|
|
of nobody but me!--No pride, no hauteur, and your sister
|
|
just the same--all sweetness and affability!"
|
|
|
|
Elinor wished to talk of something else, but Lucy still
|
|
pressed her to own that she had reason for her happiness;
|
|
and Elinor was obliged to go on.--
|
|
|
|
"Undoubtedly, if they had known your engagement,"
|
|
said she, "nothing could be more flattering than their
|
|
treatment of you;--but as that was not the case"--
|
|
|
|
"I guessed you would say so"--replied Lucy
|
|
quickly--"but there was no reason in the world why
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars should seem to like me, if she did not,
|
|
and her liking me is every thing. You shan't talk me
|
|
out of my satisfaction. I am sure it will all end well,
|
|
and there will be no difficulties at all, to what I
|
|
used to think. Mrs. Ferrars is a charming woman,
|
|
and so is your sister. They are both delightful women,
|
|
indeed!--I wonder I should never hear you say how agreeable
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood was!"
|
|
|
|
To this Elinor had no answer to make, and did not
|
|
attempt any.
|
|
|
|
"Are you ill, Miss Dashwood?--you seem low--you
|
|
don't speak;--sure you an't well."
|
|
|
|
"I never was in better health."
|
|
|
|
"I am glad of it with all my heart; but really you did
|
|
not look it. I should be sorry to have YOU ill; you, that have
|
|
been the greatest comfort to me in the world!--Heaven
|
|
knows what I should have done without your friendship."--
|
|
|
|
Elinor tried to make a civil answer, though doubting
|
|
her own success. But it seemed to satisfy Lucy, for she
|
|
directly replied,
|
|
|
|
"Indeed I am perfectly convinced of your regard
|
|
for me, and next to Edward's love, it is the greatest
|
|
comfort I have.--Poor Edward!--But now there is one
|
|
good thing, we shall be able to meet, and meet pretty often,
|
|
for Lady Middleton's delighted with Mrs. Dashwood,
|
|
so we shall be a good deal in Harley Street, I dare say,
|
|
and Edward spends half his time with his sister--besides,
|
|
Lady Middleton and Mrs. Ferrars will visit now;--
|
|
and Mrs. Ferrars and your sister were both so good to say
|
|
more than once, they should always be glad to see me.--
|
|
They are such charming women!--I am sure if ever you
|
|
tell your sister what I think of her, you cannot speak
|
|
too high."
|
|
|
|
But Elinor would not give her any encouragement
|
|
to hope that she SHOULD tell her sister. Lucy continued.
|
|
|
|
"I am sure I should have seen it in a moment,
|
|
if Mrs. Ferrars had took a dislike to me. If she had only
|
|
made me a formal courtesy, for instance, without saying
|
|
a word, and never after had took any notice of me,
|
|
and never looked at me in a pleasant way--you know
|
|
what I mean--if I had been treated in that forbidding
|
|
sort of way, I should have gave it all up in despair.
|
|
I could not have stood it. For where she DOES dislike,
|
|
I know it is most violent."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was prevented from making any reply to this
|
|
civil triumph, by the door's being thrown open, the servant's
|
|
announcing Mr. Ferrars, and Edward's immediately walking in.
|
|
|
|
It was a very awkward moment; and the countenance of each
|
|
shewed that it was so. They all looked exceedingly foolish;
|
|
and Edward seemed to have as great an inclination to walk
|
|
out of the room again, as to advance farther into it.
|
|
The very circumstance, in its unpleasantest form,
|
|
which they would each have been most anxious to avoid,
|
|
had fallen on them.--They were not only all three together,
|
|
but were together without the relief of any other person.
|
|
The ladies recovered themselves first. It was not Lucy's
|
|
business to put herself forward, and the appearance of
|
|
secrecy must still be kept up. She could therefore only
|
|
LOOK her tenderness, and after slightly addressing him,
|
|
said no more.
|
|
|
|
But Elinor had more to do; and so anxious was she,
|
|
for his sake and her own, to do it well, that she
|
|
forced herself, after a moment's recollection,
|
|
to welcome him, with a look and manner that were almost easy,
|
|
and almost open; and another struggle, another effort still
|
|
improved them. She would not allow the presence of Lucy,
|
|
nor the consciousness of some injustice towards herself,
|
|
to deter her from saying that she was happy to see him,
|
|
and that she had very much regretted being from home,
|
|
when he called before in Berkeley Street. She would
|
|
not be frightened from paying him those attentions which,
|
|
as a friend and almost a relation, were his due, by the
|
|
observant eyes of Lucy, though she soon perceived them
|
|
to be narrowly watching her.
|
|
|
|
Her manners gave some re-assurance to Edward, and he
|
|
had courage enough to sit down; but his embarrassment still
|
|
exceeded that of the ladies in a proportion, which the case
|
|
rendered reasonable, though his sex might make it rare;
|
|
for his heart had not the indifference of Lucy's, nor
|
|
could his conscience have quite the ease of Elinor's.
|
|
|
|
Lucy, with a demure and settled air, seemed determined
|
|
to make no contribution to the comfort of the others,
|
|
and would not say a word; and almost every thing that WAS
|
|
said, proceeded from Elinor, who was obliged to volunteer
|
|
all the information about her mother's health, their coming
|
|
to town, &c. which Edward ought to have inquired about,
|
|
but never did.
|
|
|
|
Her exertions did not stop here; for she soon
|
|
afterwards felt herself so heroically disposed as
|
|
to determine, under pretence of fetching Marianne,
|
|
to leave the others by themselves; and she really did it,
|
|
and THAT in the handsomest manner, for she loitered away
|
|
several minutes on the landing-place, with the most
|
|
high-minded fortitude, before she went to her sister.
|
|
When that was once done, however, it was time for the raptures
|
|
of Edward to cease; for Marianne's joy hurried her into
|
|
the drawing-room immediately. Her pleasure in seeing him
|
|
was like every other of her feelings, strong in itself,
|
|
and strongly spoken. She met him with a hand that would
|
|
be taken, and a voice that expressed the affection of a sister.
|
|
|
|
"Dear Edward!" she cried, "this is a moment of great
|
|
happiness!--This would almost make amends for every thing?"
|
|
|
|
Edward tried to return her kindness as it deserved,
|
|
but before such witnesses he dared not say half what he
|
|
really felt. Again they all sat down, and for a moment
|
|
or two all were silent; while Marianne was looking with the
|
|
most speaking tenderness, sometimes at Edward and sometimes
|
|
at Elinor, regretting only that their delight in each
|
|
other should be checked by Lucy's unwelcome presence.
|
|
Edward was the first to speak, and it was to notice
|
|
Marianne's altered looks, and express his fear of her
|
|
not finding London agree with her.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, don't think of me!" she replied with spirited
|
|
earnestness, though her eyes were filled with tears
|
|
as she spoke, "don't think of MY health. Elinor is well,
|
|
you see. That must be enough for us both."
|
|
|
|
This remark was not calculated to make Edward or
|
|
Elinor more easy, nor to conciliate the good will of Lucy,
|
|
who looked up at Marianne with no very benignant expression.
|
|
|
|
"Do you like London?" said Edward, willing to say
|
|
any thing that might introduce another subject.
|
|
|
|
"Not at all. I expected much pleasure in it,
|
|
but I have found none. The sight of you, Edward, is the
|
|
only comfort it has afforded; and thank Heaven! you
|
|
are what you always were!"
|
|
|
|
She paused--no one spoke.
|
|
|
|
"I think, Elinor," she presently added, "we must
|
|
employ Edward to take care of us in our return to Barton.
|
|
In a week or two, I suppose, we shall be going; and, I trust,
|
|
Edward will not be very unwilling to accept the charge."
|
|
|
|
Poor Edward muttered something, but what it was,
|
|
nobody knew, not even himself. But Marianne, who saw
|
|
his agitation, and could easily trace it to whatever
|
|
cause best pleased herself, was perfectly satisfied,
|
|
and soon talked of something else.
|
|
|
|
"We spent such a day, Edward, in Harley Street
|
|
yesterday! So dull, so wretchedly dull!--But I have much
|
|
to say to you on that head, which cannot be said now."
|
|
|
|
And with this admirable discretion did she defer
|
|
the assurance of her finding their mutual relatives more
|
|
disagreeable than ever, and of her being particularly
|
|
disgusted with his mother, till they were more in private.
|
|
|
|
"But why were you not there, Edward?--Why did you
|
|
not come?"
|
|
|
|
"I was engaged elsewhere."
|
|
|
|
"Engaged! But what was that, when such friends
|
|
were to be met?"
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps, Miss Marianne," cried Lucy, eager to take
|
|
some revenge on her, "you think young men never stand
|
|
upon engagements, if they have no mind to keep them,
|
|
little as well as great."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was very angry, but Marianne seemed entirely
|
|
insensible of the sting; for she calmly replied,
|
|
|
|
"Not so, indeed; for, seriously speaking, I am very
|
|
sure that conscience only kept Edward from Harley Street.
|
|
And I really believe he HAS the most delicate conscience
|
|
in the world; the most scrupulous in performing
|
|
every engagement, however minute, and however it
|
|
may make against his interest or pleasure. He is the
|
|
most fearful of giving pain, of wounding expectation,
|
|
and the most incapable of being selfish, of any body
|
|
I ever saw. Edward, it is so, and I will say it.
|
|
What! are you never to hear yourself praised!--Then you
|
|
must be no friend of mine; for those who will accept
|
|
of my love and esteem, must submit to my open commendation."
|
|
|
|
The nature of her commendation, in the present case,
|
|
however, happened to be particularly ill-suited to the
|
|
feelings of two thirds of her auditors, and was so very
|
|
unexhilarating to Edward, that he very soon got up to go away.
|
|
|
|
"Going so soon!" said Marianne; "my dear Edward,
|
|
this must not be."
|
|
|
|
And drawing him a little aside, she whispered
|
|
her persuasion that Lucy could not stay much longer.
|
|
But even this encouragement failed, for he would go;
|
|
and Lucy, who would have outstaid him, had his visit lasted
|
|
two hours, soon afterwards went away.
|
|
|
|
"What can bring her here so often?" said Marianne,
|
|
on her leaving them. "Could not she see that we wanted
|
|
her gone!--how teazing to Edward!"
|
|
|
|
"Why so?--we were all his friends, and Lucy has been
|
|
the longest known to him of any. It is but natural
|
|
that he should like to see her as well as ourselves."
|
|
|
|
Marianne looked at her steadily, and said, "You know,
|
|
Elinor, that this is a kind of talking which I cannot bear.
|
|
If you only hope to have your assertion contradicted,
|
|
as I must suppose to be the case, you ought to recollect
|
|
that I am the last person in the world to do it.
|
|
I cannot descend to be tricked out of assurances, that are
|
|
not really wanted."
|
|
|
|
She then left the room; and Elinor dared not follow
|
|
her to say more, for bound as she was by her promise
|
|
of secrecy to Lucy, she could give no information that
|
|
would convince Marianne; and painful as the consequences
|
|
of her still continuing in an error might be, she was
|
|
obliged to submit to it. All that she could hope, was
|
|
that Edward would not often expose her or himself to the
|
|
distress of hearing Marianne's mistaken warmth, nor to the
|
|
repetition of any other part of the pain that had attended
|
|
their recent meeting--and this she had every reason to expect.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 36
|
|
|
|
Within a few days after this meeting, the newspapers
|
|
announced to the world, that the lady of Thomas Palmer,
|
|
Esq. was safely delivered of a son and heir; a very
|
|
interesting and satisfactory paragraph, at least to all
|
|
those intimate connections who knew it before.
|
|
|
|
This event, highly important to Mrs. Jennings's happiness,
|
|
produced a temporary alteration in the disposal of her time,
|
|
and influenced, in a like degree, the engagements
|
|
of her young friends; for as she wished to be as much
|
|
as possible with Charlotte, she went thither every morning
|
|
as soon as she was dressed, and did not return till late
|
|
in the evening; and the Miss Dashwoods, at the particular
|
|
request of the Middletons, spent the whole of every day,
|
|
in every day in Conduit Street. For their own comfort
|
|
they would much rather have remained, at least all
|
|
the morning, in Mrs. Jennings's house; but it was not
|
|
a thing to be urged against the wishes of everybody.
|
|
Their hours were therefore made over to Lady Middleton
|
|
and the two Miss Steeles, by whom their company, in fact
|
|
was as little valued, as it was professedly sought.
|
|
|
|
They had too much sense to be desirable companions
|
|
to the former; and by the latter they were considered with
|
|
a jealous eye, as intruding on THEIR ground, and sharing
|
|
the kindness which they wanted to monopolize. Though nothing
|
|
could be more polite than Lady Middleton's behaviour to
|
|
Elinor and Marianne, she did not really like them at all.
|
|
Because they neither flattered herself nor her children,
|
|
she could not believe them good-natured; and because they
|
|
were fond of reading, she fancied them satirical: perhaps
|
|
without exactly knowing what it was to be satirical;
|
|
but THAT did not signify. It was censure in common use,
|
|
and easily given.
|
|
|
|
Their presence was a restraint both on her and on Lucy.
|
|
It checked the idleness of one, and the business of the other.
|
|
Lady Middleton was ashamed of doing nothing before them,
|
|
and the flattery which Lucy was proud to think of
|
|
and administer at other times, she feared they would despise
|
|
her for offering. Miss Steele was the least discomposed
|
|
of the three, by their presence; and it was in their power
|
|
to reconcile her to it entirely. Would either of them
|
|
only have given her a full and minute account of the whole
|
|
affair between Marianne and Mr. Willoughby, she would
|
|
have thought herself amply rewarded for the sacrifice
|
|
of the best place by the fire after dinner, which their
|
|
arrival occasioned. But this conciliation was not granted;
|
|
for though she often threw out expressions of pity for her
|
|
sister to Elinor, and more than once dropt a reflection
|
|
on the inconstancy of beaux before Marianne, no effect
|
|
was produced, but a look of indifference from the former,
|
|
or of disgust in the latter. An effort even yet lighter
|
|
might have made her their friend. Would they only have
|
|
laughed at her about the Doctor! But so little were they,
|
|
anymore than the others, inclined to oblige her,
|
|
that if Sir John dined from home, she might spend a whole
|
|
day without hearing any other raillery on the subject,
|
|
than what she was kind enough to bestow on herself.
|
|
|
|
All these jealousies and discontents, however, were so
|
|
totally unsuspected by Mrs. Jennings, that she thought
|
|
it a delightful thing for the girls to be together;
|
|
and generally congratulated her young friends every night,
|
|
on having escaped the company of a stupid old woman so long.
|
|
She joined them sometimes at Sir John's, sometimes
|
|
at her own house; but wherever it was, she always came
|
|
in excellent spirits, full of delight and importance,
|
|
attributing Charlotte's well doing to her own care, and ready
|
|
to give so exact, so minute a detail of her situation,
|
|
as only Miss Steele had curiosity enough to desire.
|
|
One thing DID disturb her; and of that she made her
|
|
daily complaint. Mr. Palmer maintained the common,
|
|
but unfatherly opinion among his sex, of all infants being alike;
|
|
and though she could plainly perceive, at different times,
|
|
the most striking resemblance between this baby and every
|
|
one of his relations on both sides, there was no convincing
|
|
his father of it; no persuading him to believe that it
|
|
was not exactly like every other baby of the same age;
|
|
nor could he even be brought to acknowledge the simple
|
|
proposition of its being the finest child in the world.
|
|
|
|
I come now to the relation of a misfortune,
|
|
which about this time befell Mrs. John Dashwood.
|
|
It so happened that while her two sisters with
|
|
Mrs. Jennings were first calling on her in Harley Street,
|
|
another of her acquaintance had dropt in--a circumstance
|
|
in itself not apparently likely to produce evil to her.
|
|
But while the imaginations of other people will carry
|
|
them away to form wrong judgments of our conduct,
|
|
and to decide on it by slight appearances, one's happiness
|
|
must in some measure be always at the mercy of chance.
|
|
In the present instance, this last-arrived lady allowed
|
|
her fancy to so far outrun truth and probability,
|
|
that on merely hearing the name of the Miss Dashwoods,
|
|
and understanding them to be Mr. Dashwood's sisters,
|
|
she immediately concluded them to be staying in Harley Street;
|
|
and this misconstruction produced within a day
|
|
or two afterwards, cards of invitation for them
|
|
as well as for their brother and sister, to a small
|
|
musical party at her house. The consequence of which was,
|
|
that Mrs. John Dashwood was obliged to submit not only
|
|
to the exceedingly great inconvenience of sending her
|
|
carriage for the Miss Dashwoods, but, what was still worse,
|
|
must be subject to all the unpleasantness of appearing
|
|
to treat them with attention: and who could tell that they
|
|
might not expect to go out with her a second time? The power
|
|
of disappointing them, it was true, must always be her's.
|
|
But that was not enough; for when people are determined
|
|
on a mode of conduct which they know to be wrong, they feel
|
|
injured by the expectation of any thing better from them.
|
|
|
|
Marianne had now been brought by degrees, so much
|
|
into the habit of going out every day, that it was become
|
|
a matter of indifference to her, whether she went or not:
|
|
and she prepared quietly and mechanically for every
|
|
evening's engagement, though without expecting the smallest
|
|
amusement from any, and very often without knowing,
|
|
till the last moment, where it was to take her.
|
|
|
|
To her dress and appearance she was grown so perfectly
|
|
indifferent, as not to bestow half the consideration on it,
|
|
during the whole of her toilet, which it received from
|
|
Miss Steele in the first five minutes of their being
|
|
together, when it was finished. Nothing escaped HER minute
|
|
observation and general curiosity; she saw every thing,
|
|
and asked every thing; was never easy till she knew the price
|
|
of every part of Marianne's dress; could have guessed the
|
|
number of her gowns altogether with better judgment than
|
|
Marianne herself, and was not without hopes of finding out
|
|
before they parted, how much her washing cost per week,
|
|
and how much she had every year to spend upon herself.
|
|
The impertinence of these kind of scrutinies, moreover,
|
|
was generally concluded with a compliment, which
|
|
though meant as its douceur, was considered by Marianne
|
|
as the greatest impertinence of all; for after undergoing
|
|
an examination into the value and make of her gown,
|
|
the colour of her shoes, and the arrangement of her hair,
|
|
she was almost sure of being told that upon "her word
|
|
she looked vastly smart, and she dared to say she would
|
|
make a great many conquests."
|
|
|
|
With such encouragement as this, was she dismissed
|
|
on the present occasion, to her brother's carriage;
|
|
which they were ready to enter five minutes after it
|
|
stopped at the door, a punctuality not very agreeable
|
|
to their sister-in-law, who had preceded them to the house
|
|
of her acquaintance, and was there hoping for some delay
|
|
on their part that might inconvenience either herself
|
|
or her coachman.
|
|
|
|
The events of this evening were not very remarkable.
|
|
The party, like other musical parties, comprehended a
|
|
great many people who had real taste for the performance,
|
|
and a great many more who had none at all; and the performers
|
|
themselves were, as usual, in their own estimation,
|
|
and that of their immediate friends, the first private
|
|
performers in England.
|
|
|
|
As Elinor was neither musical, nor affecting to be so,
|
|
she made no scruple of turning her eyes from the grand
|
|
pianoforte, whenever it suited her, and unrestrained even
|
|
by the presence of a harp, and violoncello, would fix
|
|
them at pleasure on any other object in the room. In one
|
|
of these excursive glances she perceived among a group
|
|
of young men, the very he, who had given them a lecture
|
|
on toothpick-cases at Gray's. She perceived him soon
|
|
afterwards looking at herself, and speaking familiarly
|
|
to her brother; and had just determined to find out his
|
|
name from the latter, when they both came towards her,
|
|
and Mr. Dashwood introduced him to her as Mr. Robert Ferrars.
|
|
|
|
He addressed her with easy civility, and twisted
|
|
his head into a bow which assured her as plainly as
|
|
words could have done, that he was exactly the coxcomb
|
|
she had heard him described to be by Lucy. Happy had
|
|
it been for her, if her regard for Edward had depended
|
|
less on his own merit, than on the merit of his nearest
|
|
relations! For then his brother's bow must have given
|
|
the finishing stroke to what the ill-humour of his mother
|
|
and sister would have begun. But while she wondered
|
|
at the difference of the two young men, she did not find
|
|
that the emptiness of conceit of the one, put her out
|
|
of all charity with the modesty and worth of the other.
|
|
Why they WERE different, Robert exclaimed to her himself
|
|
in the course of a quarter of an hour's conversation;
|
|
for, talking of his brother, and lamenting the extreme
|
|
GAUCHERIE which he really believed kept him from mixing
|
|
in proper society, he candidly and generously attributed it
|
|
much less to any natural deficiency, than to the misfortune
|
|
of a private education; while he himself, though probably
|
|
without any particular, any material superiority
|
|
by nature, merely from the advantage of a public school,
|
|
was as well fitted to mix in the world as any other man.
|
|
|
|
"Upon my soul," he added, "I believe it is nothing more;
|
|
and so I often tell my mother, when she is grieving
|
|
about it. 'My dear Madam,' I always say to her, 'you must
|
|
make yourself easy. The evil is now irremediable,
|
|
and it has been entirely your own doing. Why would
|
|
you be persuaded by my uncle, Sir Robert, against your
|
|
own judgment, to place Edward under private tuition,
|
|
at the most critical time of his life? If you had only sent
|
|
him to Westminster as well as myself, instead of sending
|
|
him to Mr. Pratt's, all this would have been prevented.'
|
|
This is the way in which I always consider the matter,
|
|
and my mother is perfectly convinced of her error."
|
|
|
|
Elinor would not oppose his opinion, because,
|
|
whatever might be her general estimation of the advantage
|
|
of a public school, she could not think of Edward's
|
|
abode in Mr. Pratt's family, with any satisfaction.
|
|
|
|
"You reside in Devonshire, I think,"--was his
|
|
next observation, "in a cottage near Dawlish."
|
|
|
|
Elinor set him right as to its situation;
|
|
and it seemed rather surprising to him that anybody
|
|
could live in Devonshire, without living near Dawlish.
|
|
He bestowed his hearty approbation however on their
|
|
species of house.
|
|
|
|
"For my own part," said he, "I am excessively fond
|
|
of a cottage; there is always so much comfort, so much
|
|
elegance about them. And I protest, if I had any money
|
|
to spare, I should buy a little land and build one myself,
|
|
within a short distance of London, where I might drive
|
|
myself down at any time, and collect a few friends
|
|
about me, and be happy. I advise every body who is going
|
|
to build, to build a cottage. My friend Lord Courtland
|
|
came to me the other day on purpose to ask my advice,
|
|
and laid before me three different plans of Bonomi's.
|
|
I was to decide on the best of them. 'My dear Courtland,'
|
|
said I, immediately throwing them all into the fire, 'do not
|
|
adopt either of them, but by all means build a cottage.'
|
|
And that I fancy, will be the end of it.
|
|
|
|
"Some people imagine that there can be no accommodations,
|
|
no space in a cottage; but this is all a mistake.
|
|
I was last month at my friend Elliott's, near Dartford.
|
|
Lady Elliott wished to give a dance. 'But how can it
|
|
be done?' said she; 'my dear Ferrars, do tell me how it
|
|
is to be managed. There is not a room in this cottage
|
|
that will hold ten couple, and where can the supper be?'
|
|
I immediately saw that there could be no difficulty in it,
|
|
so I said, 'My dear Lady Elliott, do not be uneasy.
|
|
The dining parlour will admit eighteen couple with ease;
|
|
card-tables may be placed in the drawing-room; the library
|
|
may be open for tea and other refreshments; and let the
|
|
supper be set out in the saloon.' Lady Elliott was delighted
|
|
with the thought. We measured the dining-room, and found
|
|
it would hold exactly eighteen couple, and the affair
|
|
was arranged precisely after my plan. So that, in fact,
|
|
you see, if people do but know how to set about it,
|
|
every comfort may be as well enjoyed in a cottage
|
|
as in the most spacious dwelling."
|
|
|
|
Elinor agreed to it all, for she did not think
|
|
he deserved the compliment of rational opposition.
|
|
|
|
As John Dashwood had no more pleasure in music than his
|
|
eldest sister, his mind was equally at liberty to fix on
|
|
any thing else; and a thought struck him during the evening,
|
|
which he communicated to his wife, for her approbation,
|
|
when they got home. The consideration of Mrs. Dennison's mistake,
|
|
in supposing his sisters their guests, had suggested the
|
|
propriety of their being really invited to become such,
|
|
while Mrs. Jenning's engagements kept her from home.
|
|
The expense would be nothing, the inconvenience not more;
|
|
and it was altogether an attention which the delicacy
|
|
of his conscience pointed out to be requisite to its
|
|
complete enfranchisement from his promise to his father.
|
|
Fanny was startled at the proposal.
|
|
|
|
"I do not see how it can be done," said she,
|
|
"without affronting Lady Middleton, for they spend every day
|
|
with her; otherwise I should be exceedingly glad to do it.
|
|
You know I am always ready to pay them any attention
|
|
in my power, as my taking them out this evening shews.
|
|
But they are Lady Middleton's visitors. How can I ask them
|
|
away from her?"
|
|
|
|
Her husband, but with great humility, did not see
|
|
the force of her objection. "They had already spent a week
|
|
in this manner in Conduit Street, and Lady Middleton
|
|
could not be displeased at their giving the same number
|
|
of days to such near relations."
|
|
|
|
Fanny paused a moment, and then, with fresh vigor, said,
|
|
|
|
"My love I would ask them with all my heart, if it
|
|
was in my power. But I had just settled within myself
|
|
to ask the Miss Steeles to spend a few days with us.
|
|
They are very well behaved, good kind of girls; and I think
|
|
the attention is due to them, as their uncle did so very
|
|
well by Edward. We can ask your sisters some other year,
|
|
you know; but the Miss Steeles may not be in town any more.
|
|
I am sure you will like them; indeed, you DO like them,
|
|
you know, very much already, and so does my mother; and they
|
|
are such favourites with Harry!"
|
|
|
|
Mr. Dashwood was convinced. He saw the necessity
|
|
of inviting the Miss Steeles immediately, and his conscience
|
|
was pacified by the resolution of inviting his sisters
|
|
another year; at the same time, however, slyly suspecting
|
|
that another year would make the invitation needless,
|
|
by bringing Elinor to town as Colonel Brandon's wife,
|
|
and Marianne as THEIR visitor.
|
|
|
|
Fanny, rejoicing in her escape, and proud of the ready
|
|
wit that had procured it, wrote the next morning to Lucy,
|
|
to request her company and her sister's, for some days,
|
|
in Harley Street, as soon as Lady Middleton could spare them.
|
|
This was enough to make Lucy really and reasonably happy.
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood seemed actually working for her, herself;
|
|
cherishing all her hopes, and promoting all her views!
|
|
Such an opportunity of being with Edward and his family was,
|
|
above all things, the most material to her interest,
|
|
and such an invitation the most gratifying to her
|
|
feelings! It was an advantage that could not be too
|
|
gratefully acknowledged, nor too speedily made use of;
|
|
and the visit to Lady Middleton, which had not before had
|
|
any precise limits, was instantly discovered to have been
|
|
always meant to end in two days' time.
|
|
|
|
When the note was shown to Elinor, as it was within ten
|
|
minutes after its arrival, it gave her, for the first time,
|
|
some share in the expectations of Lucy; for such a mark
|
|
of uncommon kindness, vouchsafed on so short an acquaintance,
|
|
seemed to declare that the good-will towards her arose
|
|
from something more than merely malice against herself;
|
|
and might be brought, by time and address, to do
|
|
every thing that Lucy wished. Her flattery had already
|
|
subdued the pride of Lady Middleton, and made an entry
|
|
into the close heart of Mrs. John Dashwood; and these
|
|
were effects that laid open the probability of greater.
|
|
|
|
The Miss Steeles removed to Harley Street, and all
|
|
that reached Elinor of their influence there, strengthened
|
|
her expectation of the event. Sir John, who called on
|
|
them more than once, brought home such accounts of the
|
|
favour they were in, as must be universally striking.
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood had never been so much pleased with any
|
|
young women in her life, as she was with them; had given
|
|
each of them a needle book made by some emigrant;
|
|
called Lucy by her Christian name; and did not know
|
|
whether she should ever be able to part with them.
|
|
|
|
[At this point in the first and second edtions, Volume II ended.]
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 37
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Palmer was so well at the end of a fortnight,
|
|
that her mother felt it no longer necessary to give up
|
|
the whole of her time to her; and, contenting herself with
|
|
visiting her once or twice a day, returned from that period
|
|
to her own home, and her own habits, in which she found
|
|
the Miss Dashwoods very ready to ressume their former share.
|
|
|
|
About the third or fourth morning after their
|
|
being thus resettled in Berkeley Street, Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
on returning from her ordinary visit to Mrs. Palmer,
|
|
entered the drawing-room, where Elinor was sitting
|
|
by herself, with an air of such hurrying importance
|
|
as prepared her to hear something wonderful; and giving her
|
|
time only to form that idea, began directly to justify it,
|
|
by saying,
|
|
|
|
"Lord! my dear Miss Dashwood! have you heard the news?"
|
|
|
|
"No, ma'am. What is it?"
|
|
|
|
"Something so strange! But you shall hear it all.--
|
|
When I got to Mr. Palmer's, I found Charlotte quite
|
|
in a fuss about the child. She was sure it was very
|
|
ill--it cried, and fretted, and was all over pimples.
|
|
So I looked at it directly, and, 'Lord! my dear,'
|
|
says I, 'it is nothing in the world, but the red gum--'
|
|
and nurse said just the same. But Charlotte, she would
|
|
not be satisfied, so Mr. Donavan was sent for; and luckily
|
|
he happened to just come in from Harley Street, so he
|
|
stepped over directly, and as soon as ever he saw the child,
|
|
be said just as we did, that it was nothing in the world
|
|
but the red gum, and then Charlotte was easy. And so,
|
|
just as he was going away again, it came into my head,
|
|
I am sure I do not know how I happened to think of it,
|
|
but it came into my head to ask him if there was any news.
|
|
So upon that, he smirked, and simpered, and looked grave,
|
|
and seemed to know something or other, and at last he
|
|
said in a whisper, 'For fear any unpleasant report
|
|
should reach the young ladies under your care as to their
|
|
sister's indisposition, I think it advisable to say,
|
|
that I believe there is no great reason for alarm; I hope
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood will do very well.'"
|
|
|
|
"What! is Fanny ill?"
|
|
|
|
"That is exactly what I said, my dear. 'Lord!' says I,
|
|
'is Mrs. Dashwood ill?' So then it all came out; and the
|
|
long and the short of the matter, by all I can learn,
|
|
seems to be this. Mr. Edward Ferrars, the very young
|
|
man I used to joke with you about (but however, as it
|
|
turns out, I am monstrous glad there was never any thing
|
|
in it), Mr. Edward Ferrars, it seems, has been engaged
|
|
above this twelvemonth to my cousin Lucy!--There's for you,
|
|
my dear!--And not a creature knowing a syllable of the matter,
|
|
except Nancy!--Could you have believed such a thing possible?--
|
|
There is no great wonder in their liking one another;
|
|
but that matters should be brought so forward between them,
|
|
and nobody suspect it!--THAT is strange!--I never happened
|
|
to see them together, or I am sure I should have found it
|
|
out directly. Well, and so this was kept a great secret,
|
|
for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, and neither she nor your
|
|
brother or sister suspected a word of the matter;--
|
|
till this very morning, poor Nancy, who, you know, is a
|
|
well-meaning creature, but no conjurer, popt it all out.
|
|
'Lord!' thinks she to herself, 'they are all so fond
|
|
of Lucy, to be sure they will make no difficulty about it;'
|
|
and so, away she went to your sister, who was sitting all
|
|
alone at her carpet-work, little suspecting what was to
|
|
come--for she had just been saying to your brother, only five
|
|
minutes before, that she thought to make a match between
|
|
Edward and some Lord's daughter or other, I forget who.
|
|
So you may think what a blow it was to all her vanity
|
|
and pride. She fell into violent hysterics immediately,
|
|
with such screams as reached your brother's ears,
|
|
as he was sitting in his own dressing-room down stairs,
|
|
thinking about writing a letter to his steward in the country.
|
|
So up he flew directly, and a terrible scene took place,
|
|
for Lucy was come to them by that time, little dreaming
|
|
what was going on. Poor soul! I pity HER. And I must say,
|
|
I think she was used very hardly; for your sister scolded
|
|
like any fury, and soon drove her into a fainting fit.
|
|
Nancy, she fell upon her knees, and cried bitterly;
|
|
and your brother, he walked about the room, and said
|
|
he did not know what to do. Mrs. Dashwood declared
|
|
they should not stay a minute longer in the house,
|
|
and your brother was forced to go down upon HIS knees too,
|
|
to persuade her to let them stay till they had packed
|
|
up their clothes. THEN she fell into hysterics again,
|
|
and he was so frightened that he would send for Mr. Donavan,
|
|
and Mr. Donavan found the house in all this uproar.
|
|
The carriage was at the door ready to take my poor
|
|
cousins away, and they were just stepping in as he
|
|
came off; poor Lucy in such a condition, he says,
|
|
she could hardly walk; and Nancy, she was almost as bad.
|
|
I declare, I have no patience with your sister; and I hope,
|
|
with all my heart, it will be a match in spite of her.
|
|
Lord! what a taking poor Mr. Edward will be in when he
|
|
hears of it! To have his love used so scornfully! for
|
|
they say he is monstrous fond of her, as well he may.
|
|
I should not wonder, if he was to be in the greatest
|
|
passion!--and Mr. Donavan thinks just the same. He and I
|
|
had a great deal of talk about it; and the best of all is,
|
|
that he is gone back again to Harley Street, that he may
|
|
be within call when Mrs. Ferrars is told of it, for she
|
|
was sent for as soon as ever my cousins left the house,
|
|
for your sister was sure SHE would be in hysterics too;
|
|
and so she may, for what I care. I have no pity for
|
|
either of them. I have no notion of people's making
|
|
such a to-do about money and greatness. There is no
|
|
reason on earth why Mr. Edward and Lucy should not marry;
|
|
for I am sure Mrs. Ferrars may afford to do very well
|
|
by her son, and though Lucy has next to nothing herself,
|
|
she knows better than any body how to make the most
|
|
of every thing; I dare say, if Mrs. Ferrars would only
|
|
allow him five hundred a-year, she would make as good
|
|
an appearance with it as any body else would with eight.
|
|
Lord! how snug they might live in such another cottage
|
|
as yours--or a little bigger--with two maids, and two men;
|
|
and I believe I could help them to a housemaid, for my
|
|
Betty has a sister out of place, that would fit them
|
|
exactly."
|
|
|
|
Here Mrs. Jennings ceased, and as Elinor had had
|
|
time enough to collect her thoughts, she was able
|
|
to give such an answer, and make such observations,
|
|
as the subject might naturally be supposed to produce.
|
|
Happy to find that she was not suspected of any extraordinary
|
|
interest in it; that Mrs. Jennings (as she had of late
|
|
often hoped might be the case) had ceased to imagine her
|
|
at all attached to Edward; and happy above all the rest,
|
|
in the absence of Marianne, she felt very well able
|
|
to speak of the affair without embarrassment, and to
|
|
give her judgment, as she believed, with impartiality
|
|
on the conduct of every one concerned in it.
|
|
|
|
She could hardly determine what her own expectation
|
|
of its event really was; though she earnestly tried
|
|
to drive away the notion of its being possible to end
|
|
otherwise at last, than in the marriage of Edward and Lucy.
|
|
What Mrs. Ferrars would say and do, though there could
|
|
not be a doubt of its nature, she was anxious to hear;
|
|
and still more anxious to know how Edward would
|
|
conduct himself. For HIM she felt much compassion;--
|
|
for Lucy very little--and it cost her some pains to procure
|
|
that little;--for the rest of the party none at all.
|
|
|
|
As Mrs. Jennings could talk on no other subject,
|
|
Elinor soon saw the necessity of preparing Marianne for
|
|
its discussion. No time was to be lost in undeceiving her,
|
|
in making her acquainted with the real truth, and in
|
|
endeavouring to bring her to hear it talked of by others,
|
|
without betraying that she felt any uneasiness for her sister,
|
|
or any resentment against Edward.
|
|
|
|
Elinor's office was a painful one.--She was going
|
|
to remove what she really believed to be her sister's
|
|
chief consolation,--to give such particulars of Edward as she
|
|
feared would ruin him for ever in her good opinion,-and
|
|
to make Marianne, by a resemblance in their situations,
|
|
which to HER fancy would seem strong, feel all her own
|
|
disappointment over again. But unwelcome as such a task
|
|
must be, it was necessary to be done, and Elinor therefore
|
|
hastened to perform it.
|
|
|
|
She was very far from wishing to dwell on her own
|
|
feelings, or to represent herself as suffering much,
|
|
any otherwise than as the self-command she had practised
|
|
since her first knowledge of Edward's engagement, might
|
|
suggest a hint of what was practicable to Marianne.
|
|
Her narration was clear and simple; and though it could
|
|
not be given without emotion, it was not accompanied
|
|
by violent agitation, nor impetuous grief.--THAT belonged
|
|
rather to the hearer, for Marianne listened with horror,
|
|
and cried excessively. Elinor was to be the comforter
|
|
of others in her own distresses, no less than in theirs;
|
|
and all the comfort that could be given by assurances
|
|
of her own composure of mind, and a very earnest
|
|
vindication of Edward from every charge but of imprudence,
|
|
was readily offered.
|
|
|
|
But Marianne for some time would give credit to neither.
|
|
Edward seemed a second Willoughby; and acknowledging
|
|
as Elinor did, that she HAD loved him most sincerely,
|
|
could she feel less than herself! As for Lucy Steele,
|
|
she considered her so totally unamiable, so absolutely
|
|
incapable of attaching a sensible man, that she could
|
|
not be persuaded at first to believe, and afterwards
|
|
to pardon, any former affection of Edward for her.
|
|
She would not even admit it to have been natural;
|
|
and Elinor left her to be convinced that it was so,
|
|
by that which only could convince her, a better knowledge
|
|
of mankind.
|
|
|
|
Her first communication had reached no farther than
|
|
to state the fact of the engagement, and the length of time
|
|
it had existed.--Marianne's feelings had then broken in,
|
|
and put an end to all regularity of detail; and for some
|
|
time all that could be done was to soothe her distress,
|
|
lessen her alarms, and combat her resentment. The first
|
|
question on her side, which led to farther particulars,
|
|
was,
|
|
|
|
"How long has this been known to you, Elinor? has
|
|
he written to you?"
|
|
|
|
"I have known it these four months. When Lucy
|
|
first came to Barton Park last November, she told me
|
|
in confidence of her engagement."
|
|
|
|
At these words, Marianne's eyes expressed the astonishment
|
|
which her lips could not utter. After a pause of wonder,
|
|
she exclaimed--
|
|
|
|
"Four months!--Have you known of this four months?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor confirmed it.
|
|
|
|
"What!--while attending me in all my misery, has this
|
|
been on your heart?--And I have reproached you for being happy!"--
|
|
|
|
"It was not fit that you should then know how much
|
|
I was the reverse!"
|
|
|
|
"Four months!"--cried Marianne again.--"So calm!--
|
|
so cheerful!--how have you been supported?"--
|
|
|
|
"By feeling that I was doing my duty.--My promise to
|
|
Lucy, obliged me to be secret. I owed it to her, therefore,
|
|
to avoid giving any hint of the truth; and I owed it to my
|
|
family and friends, not to create in them a solicitude about me,
|
|
which it could not be in my power to satisfy."
|
|
|
|
Marianne seemed much struck.
|
|
|
|
"I have very often wished to undeceive yourself and my
|
|
mother," added Elinor; "and once or twice I have attempted it;--
|
|
but without betraying my trust, I never could have convinced you."
|
|
|
|
"Four months!--and yet you loved him!"--
|
|
|
|
"Yes. But I did not love only him;--and while the comfort
|
|
of others was dear to me, I was glad to spare them from knowing
|
|
how much I felt. Now, I can think and speak of it with
|
|
little emotion. I would not have you suffer on my account;
|
|
for I assure you I no longer suffer materially myself.
|
|
I have many things to support me. I am not conscious of having
|
|
provoked the disappointment by any imprudence of my own,
|
|
I have borne it as much as possible without spreading
|
|
it farther. I acquit Edward of essential misconduct.
|
|
I wish him very happy; and I am so sure of his always
|
|
doing his duty, that though now he may harbour some regret,
|
|
in the end he must become so. Lucy does not want sense,
|
|
and that is the foundation on which every thing good may
|
|
be built.--And after all, Marianne, after all that is
|
|
bewitching in the idea of a single and constant attachment,
|
|
and all that can be said of one's happiness depending
|
|
entirely on any particular person, it is not meant--it
|
|
is not fit--it is not possible that it should be so.--
|
|
Edward will marry Lucy; he will marry a woman superior
|
|
in person and understanding to half her sex; and time
|
|
and habit will teach him to forget that he ever thought
|
|
another superior to HER."--
|
|
|
|
"If such is your way of thinking," said Marianne,
|
|
"if the loss of what is most valued is so easily
|
|
to be made up by something else, your resolution,
|
|
your self-command, are, perhaps, a little less to be
|
|
wondered at.--They are brought more within my comprehension."
|
|
|
|
"I understand you.--You do not suppose that I have ever
|
|
felt much.--For four months, Marianne, I have had all this
|
|
hanging on my mind, without being at liberty to speak
|
|
of it to a single creature; knowing that it would make
|
|
you and my mother most unhappy whenever it were explained
|
|
to you, yet unable to prepare you for it in the least.--
|
|
It was told me,--it was in a manner forced on me by the
|
|
very person herself, whose prior engagement ruined all
|
|
my prospects; and told me, as I thought, with triumph.--
|
|
This person's suspicions, therefore, I have had to oppose,
|
|
by endeavouring to appear indifferent where I have been most
|
|
deeply interested;--and it has not been only once;--I have
|
|
had her hopes and exultation to listen to again and again.--
|
|
I have known myself to be divided from Edward for ever,
|
|
without hearing one circumstance that could make me less
|
|
desire the connection.--Nothing has proved him unworthy;
|
|
nor has anything declared him indifferent to me.--
|
|
I have had to contend against the unkindness of his sister,
|
|
and the insolence of his mother; and have suffered the
|
|
punishment of an attachment, without enjoying its advantages.--
|
|
And all this has been going on at a time, when, as you
|
|
know too well, it has not been my only unhappiness.--
|
|
If you can think me capable of ever feeling--surely you
|
|
may suppose that I have suffered NOW. The composure
|
|
of mind with which I have brought myself at present
|
|
to consider the matter, the consolation that I have been
|
|
willing to admit, have been the effect of constant and
|
|
painful exertion;--they did not spring up of themselves;--
|
|
they did not occur to relieve my spirits at first.--
|
|
No, Marianne.--THEN, if I had not been bound to silence,
|
|
perhaps nothing could have kept me entirely--not even what I
|
|
owed to my dearest friends--from openly shewing that I was
|
|
VERY unhappy."--
|
|
|
|
Marianne was quite subdued.--
|
|
|
|
"Oh! Elinor," she cried, "you have made me hate
|
|
myself for ever.--How barbarous have I been to you!--
|
|
you, who have been my only comfort, who have borne with me
|
|
in all my misery, who have seemed to be only suffering
|
|
for me!--Is this my gratitude?--Is this the only return I
|
|
can make you?--Because your merit cries out upon myself,
|
|
I have been trying to do it away."
|
|
|
|
The tenderest caresses followed this confession.
|
|
In such a frame of mind as she was now in, Elinor had
|
|
no difficulty in obtaining from her whatever promise
|
|
she required; and at her request, Marianne engaged
|
|
never to speak of the affair to any one with the least
|
|
appearance of bitterness;--to meet Lucy without betraying
|
|
the smallest increase of dislike to her;--and even to see
|
|
Edward himself, if chance should bring them together,
|
|
without any diminution of her usual cordiality.--
|
|
These were great concessions;--but where Marianne felt
|
|
that she had injured, no reparation could be too much
|
|
for her to make.
|
|
|
|
She performed her promise of being discreet,
|
|
to admiration.--She attended to all that Mrs. Jennings
|
|
had to say upon the subject, with an unchanging complexion,
|
|
dissented from her in nothing, and was heard three
|
|
times to say, "Yes, ma'am."--She listened to her praise
|
|
of Lucy with only moving from one chair to another,
|
|
and when Mrs. Jennings talked of Edward's affection,
|
|
it cost her only a spasm in her throat.--Such advances
|
|
towards heroism in her sister, made Elinor feel equal
|
|
to any thing herself.
|
|
|
|
The next morning brought a farther trial of it,
|
|
in a visit from their brother, who came with a most serious
|
|
aspect to talk over the dreadful affair, and bring them
|
|
news of his wife.
|
|
|
|
"You have heard, I suppose," said he with great solemnity,
|
|
as soon as he was seated, "of the very shocking discovery
|
|
that took place under our roof yesterday."
|
|
|
|
They all looked their assent; it seemed too awful
|
|
a moment for speech.
|
|
|
|
"Your sister," he continued, "has suffered dreadfully.
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars too--in short it has been a scene of such
|
|
complicated distress--but I will hope that the storm may
|
|
be weathered without our being any of us quite overcome.
|
|
Poor Fanny! she was in hysterics all yesterday.
|
|
But I would not alarm you too much. Donavan says there
|
|
is nothing materially to be apprehended; her constitution
|
|
is a good one, and her resolution equal to any thing.
|
|
She has borne it all, with the fortitude of an angel!
|
|
She says she never shall think well of anybody again;
|
|
and one cannot wonder at it, after being so deceived!--
|
|
meeting with such ingratitude, where so much kindness
|
|
had been shewn, so much confidence had been placed! It
|
|
was quite out of the benevolence of her heart, that she
|
|
had asked these young women to her house; merely because
|
|
she thought they deserved some attention, were harmless,
|
|
well-behaved girls, and would be pleasant companions;
|
|
for otherwise we both wished very much to have invited you
|
|
and Marianne to be with us, while your kind friend there,
|
|
was attending her daughter. And now to be so rewarded!
|
|
'I wish, with all my heart,' says poor Fanny in her
|
|
affectionate way, 'that we had asked your sisters instead
|
|
of them.'"
|
|
|
|
Here he stopped to be thanked; which being done,
|
|
he went on.
|
|
|
|
"What poor Mrs. Ferrars suffered, when first Fanny
|
|
broke it to her, is not to be described. While she with
|
|
the truest affection had been planning a most eligible
|
|
connection for him, was it to be supposed that he could
|
|
be all the time secretly engaged to another person!--such
|
|
a suspicion could never have entered her head! If she
|
|
suspected ANY prepossession elsewhere, it could not be
|
|
in THAT quarter. 'THERE, to be sure,' said she, 'I might
|
|
have thought myself safe.' She was quite in an agony.
|
|
We consulted together, however, as to what should be done,
|
|
and at last she determined to send for Edward.
|
|
He came. But I am sorry to relate what ensued.
|
|
All that Mrs. Ferrars could say to make him put an end
|
|
to the engagement, assisted too as you may well suppose
|
|
by my arguments, and Fanny's entreaties, was of
|
|
no avail. Duty, affection, every thing was disregarded.
|
|
I never thought Edward so stubborn, so unfeeling before.
|
|
His mother explained to him her liberal designs, in case
|
|
of his marrying Miss Morton; told him she would settle on
|
|
him the Norfolk estate, which, clear of land-tax, brings
|
|
in a good thousand a-year; offered even, when matters
|
|
grew desperate, to make it twelve hundred; and in opposition
|
|
to this, if he still persisted in this low connection,
|
|
represented to him the certain penury that must attend
|
|
the match. His own two thousand pounds she protested
|
|
should be his all; she would never see him again; and so far
|
|
would she be from affording him the smallest assistance,
|
|
that if he were to enter into any profession with a view
|
|
of better support, she would do all in her power to prevent
|
|
him advancing in it."
|
|
|
|
Here Marianne, in an ecstasy of indignation,
|
|
clapped her hands together, and cried, "Gracious God!
|
|
can this be possible!"
|
|
|
|
"Well may you wonder, Marianne," replied her brother,
|
|
"at the obstinacy which could resist such arguments as these.
|
|
Your exclamation is very natural."
|
|
|
|
Marianne was going to retort, but she remembered
|
|
her promises, and forbore.
|
|
|
|
"All this, however," he continued, "was urged in vain.
|
|
Edward said very little; but what he did say, was in
|
|
the most determined manner. Nothing should prevail on
|
|
him to give up his engagement. He would stand to it,
|
|
cost him what it might."
|
|
|
|
"Then," cried Mrs. Jennings with blunt sincerity,
|
|
no longer able to be silent, "he has acted like an honest
|
|
man! I beg your pardon, Mr. Dashwood, but if he had
|
|
done otherwise, I should have thought him a rascal.
|
|
I have some little concern in the business, as well
|
|
as yourself, for Lucy Steele is my cousin, and I believe
|
|
there is not a better kind of girl in the world, nor one
|
|
who more deserves a good husband."
|
|
|
|
John Dashwood was greatly astonished; but his nature
|
|
was calm, not open to provocation, and he never wished
|
|
to offend anybody, especially anybody of good fortune.
|
|
He therefore replied, without any resentment,
|
|
|
|
"I would by no means speak disrespectfully of any
|
|
relation of yours, madam. Miss Lucy Steele is, I dare say,
|
|
a very deserving young woman, but in the present case
|
|
you know, the connection must be impossible.
|
|
And to have entered into a secret engagement with a
|
|
young man under her uncle's care, the son of a woman
|
|
especially of such very large fortune as Mrs. Ferrars,
|
|
is perhaps, altogether a little extraordinary. In short,
|
|
I do not mean to reflect upon the behaviour of any person
|
|
whom you have a regard for, Mrs. Jennings. We all wish
|
|
her extremely happy; and Mrs. Ferrars's conduct throughout
|
|
the whole, has been such as every conscientious, good mother,
|
|
in like circumstances, would adopt. It has been dignified
|
|
and liberal. Edward has drawn his own lot, and I fear
|
|
it will be a bad one."
|
|
|
|
Marianne sighed out her similar apprehension;
|
|
and Elinor's heart wrung for the feelings of Edward,
|
|
while braving his mother's threats, for a woman who could
|
|
not reward him.
|
|
|
|
"Well, sir," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did it end?"
|
|
|
|
"I am sorry to say, ma'am, in a most unhappy rupture:--
|
|
Edward is dismissed for ever from his mother's notice.
|
|
He left her house yesterday, but where he is gone, or whether
|
|
he is still in town, I do not know; for WE of course can
|
|
make no inquiry."
|
|
|
|
"Poor young man!--and what is to become of him?"
|
|
|
|
"What, indeed, ma'am! It is a melancholy consideration.
|
|
Born to the prospect of such affluence! I cannot conceive
|
|
a situation more deplorable. The interest of two thousand
|
|
pounds--how can a man live on it?--and when to that is added
|
|
the recollection, that he might, but for his own folly,
|
|
within three months have been in the receipt of two
|
|
thousand, five hundred a-year (for Miss Morton has
|
|
thirty thousand pounds,) I cannot picture to myself
|
|
a more wretched condition. We must all feel for him;
|
|
and the more so, because it is totally out of our power
|
|
to assist him."
|
|
|
|
"Poor young man!" cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure
|
|
he should be very welcome to bed and board at my house;
|
|
and so I would tell him if I could see him. It is not fit
|
|
that he should be living about at his own charge now,
|
|
at lodgings and taverns."
|
|
|
|
Elinor's heart thanked her for such kindness towards Edward,
|
|
though she could not forbear smiling at the form of it.
|
|
|
|
"If he would only have done as well by himself,"
|
|
said John Dashwood, "as all his friends were disposed to do
|
|
by him, he might now have been in his proper situation,
|
|
and would have wanted for nothing. But as it is, it must
|
|
be out of anybody's power to assist him. And there is one
|
|
thing more preparing against him, which must be worse than
|
|
all--his mother has determined, with a very natural kind
|
|
of spirit, to settle THAT estate upon Robert immediately,
|
|
which might have been Edward's, on proper conditions.
|
|
I left her this morning with her lawyer, talking over
|
|
the business."
|
|
|
|
"Well!" said Mrs. Jennings, "that is HER revenge.
|
|
Everybody has a way of their own. But I don't think mine
|
|
would be, to make one son independent, because another had
|
|
plagued me."
|
|
|
|
Marianne got up and walked about the room.
|
|
|
|
"Can anything be more galling to the spirit of a man,"
|
|
continued John, "than to see his younger brother in
|
|
possession of an estate which might have been his own?
|
|
Poor Edward! I feel for him sincerely."
|
|
|
|
A few minutes more spent in the same kind of effusion,
|
|
concluded his visit; and with repeated assurances to his
|
|
sisters that he really believed there was no material
|
|
danger in Fanny's indisposition, and that they need
|
|
not therefore be very uneasy about it, he went away;
|
|
leaving the three ladies unanimous in their sentiments
|
|
on the present occasion, as far at least as it regarded
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars's conduct, the Dashwoods', and Edward's.
|
|
|
|
Marianne's indignation burst forth as soon as he
|
|
quitted the room; and as her vehemence made reserve
|
|
impossible in Elinor, and unnecessary in Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
they all joined in a very spirited critique upon the party.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 38
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings was very warm in her praise of Edward's
|
|
conduct, but only Elinor and Marianne understood its
|
|
true merit. THEY only knew how little he had had to tempt
|
|
him to be disobedient, and how small was the consolation,
|
|
beyond the consciousness of doing right, that could
|
|
remain to him in the loss of friends and fortune.
|
|
Elinor gloried in his integrity; and Marianne forgave all
|
|
his offences in compassion for his punishment. But though
|
|
confidence between them was, by this public discovery,
|
|
restored to its proper state, it was not a subject on
|
|
which either of them were fond of dwelling when alone.
|
|
Elinor avoided it upon principle, as tending to fix still
|
|
more upon her thoughts, by the too warm, too positive
|
|
assurances of Marianne, that belief of Edward's continued
|
|
affection for herself which she rather wished to do away;
|
|
and Marianne's courage soon failed her, in trying
|
|
to converse upon a topic which always left her more
|
|
dissatisfied with herself than ever, by the comparison
|
|
it necessarily produced between Elinor's conduct and her own.
|
|
|
|
She felt all the force of that comparison; but not
|
|
as her sister had hoped, to urge her to exertion now;
|
|
she felt it with all the pain of continual self-reproach,
|
|
regretted most bitterly that she had never exerted
|
|
herself before; but it brought only the torture of penitence,
|
|
without the hope of amendment. Her mind was so much weakened
|
|
that she still fancied present exertion impossible,
|
|
and therefore it only dispirited her more.
|
|
|
|
Nothing new was heard by them, for a day or two afterwards,
|
|
of affairs in Harley Street, or Bartlett's Buildings.
|
|
But though so much of the matter was known to them already,
|
|
that Mrs. Jennings might have had enough to do in spreading
|
|
that knowledge farther, without seeking after more,
|
|
she had resolved from the first to pay a visit of comfort
|
|
and inquiry to her cousins as soon as she could;
|
|
and nothing but the hindrance of more visitors than usual,
|
|
had prevented her going to them within that time.
|
|
|
|
The third day succeeding their knowledge of the
|
|
particulars, was so fine, so beautiful a Sunday as to draw
|
|
many to Kensington Gardens, though it was only the second
|
|
week in March. Mrs. Jennings and Elinor were of the number;
|
|
but Marianne, who knew that the Willoughbys were again
|
|
in town, and had a constant dread of meeting them,
|
|
chose rather to stay at home, than venture into so public
|
|
a place.
|
|
|
|
An intimate acquaintance of Mrs. Jennings joined
|
|
them soon after they entered the Gardens, and Elinor was
|
|
not sorry that by her continuing with them, and engaging
|
|
all Mrs. Jennings's conversation, she was herself left
|
|
to quiet reflection. She saw nothing of the Willoughbys,
|
|
nothing of Edward, and for some time nothing of anybody
|
|
who could by any chance whether grave or gay, be interesting
|
|
to her. But at last she found herself with some surprise,
|
|
accosted by Miss Steele, who, though looking rather shy,
|
|
expressed great satisfaction in meeting them, and on receiving
|
|
encouragement from the particular kindness of Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
left her own party for a short time, to join their's.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings immediately whispered to Elinor,
|
|
|
|
"Get it all out of her, my dear. She will tell you
|
|
any thing if you ask. You see I cannot leave Mrs. Clarke."
|
|
|
|
It was lucky, however, for Mrs. Jennings's curiosity
|
|
and Elinor's too, that she would tell any thing WITHOUT
|
|
being asked; for nothing would otherwise have been learnt.
|
|
|
|
"I am so glad to meet you;" said Miss Steele,
|
|
taking her familiarly by the arm--"for I wanted to see you
|
|
of all things in the world." And then lowering her voice,
|
|
"I suppose Mrs. Jennings has heard all about it.
|
|
Is she angry?"
|
|
|
|
"Not at all, I believe, with you."
|
|
|
|
"That is a good thing. And Lady Middleton, is SHE angry?"
|
|
|
|
"I cannot suppose it possible that she should."
|
|
|
|
"I am monstrous glad of it. Good gracious! I have
|
|
had such a time of it! I never saw Lucy in such a rage
|
|
in my life. She vowed at first she would never trim me
|
|
up a new bonnet, nor do any thing else for me again,
|
|
so long as she lived; but now she is quite come to,
|
|
and we are as good friends as ever. Look, she made me
|
|
this bow to my hat, and put in the feather last night.
|
|
There now, YOU are going to laugh at me too. But why
|
|
should not I wear pink ribbons? I do not care if it IS
|
|
the Doctor's favourite colour. I am sure, for my part,
|
|
I should never have known he DID like it better than
|
|
any other colour, if he had not happened to say so.
|
|
My cousins have been so plaguing me! I declare sometimes
|
|
I do not know which way to look before them."
|
|
|
|
She had wandered away to a subject on which Elinor
|
|
had nothing to say, and therefore soon judged it expedient
|
|
to find her way back again to the first.
|
|
|
|
"Well, but Miss Dashwood," speaking triumphantly,
|
|
"people may say what they chuse about Mr. Ferrars's
|
|
declaring he would not have Lucy, for it is no such thing
|
|
I can tell you; and it is quite a shame for such ill-natured
|
|
reports to be spread abroad. Whatever Lucy might think
|
|
about it herself, you know, it was no business of other
|
|
people to set it down for certain."
|
|
|
|
"I never heard any thing of the kind hinted at before,
|
|
I assure you," said Elinor.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, did not you? But it WAS said, I know, very well,
|
|
and by more than one; for Miss Godby told Miss Sparks,
|
|
that nobody in their senses could expect Mr. Ferrars
|
|
to give up a woman like Miss Morton, with thirty thousand
|
|
pounds to her fortune, for Lucy Steele that had
|
|
nothing at all; and I had it from Miss Sparks myself.
|
|
And besides that, my cousin Richard said himself,
|
|
that when it came to the point he was afraid Mr. Ferrars
|
|
would be off; and when Edward did not come near us
|
|
for three days, I could not tell what to think myself;
|
|
and I believe in my heart Lucy gave it up all for lost;
|
|
for we came away from your brother's Wednesday,
|
|
and we saw nothing of him not all Thursday, Friday,
|
|
and Saturday, and did not know what was become of him.
|
|
Once Lucy thought to write to him, but then her spirits
|
|
rose against that. However this morning he came just
|
|
as we came home from church; and then it all came out,
|
|
how he had been sent for Wednesday to Harley Street,
|
|
and been talked to by his mother and all of them,
|
|
and how he had declared before them all that he loved
|
|
nobody but Lucy, and nobody but Lucy would he have.
|
|
And how he had been so worried by what passed,
|
|
that as soon as he had went away from his mother's house,
|
|
he had got upon his horse, and rid into the country,
|
|
some where or other; and how he had stayed about at an inn
|
|
all Thursday and Friday, on purpose to get the better
|
|
of it. And after thinking it all over and over again,
|
|
he said, it seemed to him as if, now he had no fortune,
|
|
and no nothing at all, it would be quite unkind to keep
|
|
her on to the engagement, because it must be for her loss,
|
|
for he had nothing but two thousand pounds, and no hope
|
|
of any thing else; and if he was to go into orders,
|
|
as he had some thoughts, he could get nothing but a curacy,
|
|
and how was they to live upon that?--He could not bear
|
|
to think of her doing no better, and so he begged,
|
|
if she had the least mind for it, to put an end to the
|
|
matter directly, and leave him shift for himself.
|
|
I heard him say all this as plain as could possibly be.
|
|
And it was entirely for HER sake, and upon HER account,
|
|
that he said a word about being off, and not upon his own.
|
|
I will take my oath he never dropt a syllable of being
|
|
tired of her, or of wishing to marry Miss Morton, or any
|
|
thing like it. But, to be sure, Lucy would not give
|
|
ear to such kind of talking; so she told him directly
|
|
(with a great deal about sweet and love, you know,
|
|
and all that--Oh, la! one can't repeat such kind of things
|
|
you know)--she told him directly, she had not the least
|
|
mind in the world to be off, for she could live with him
|
|
upon a trifle, and how little so ever he might have,
|
|
she should be very glad to have it all, you know,
|
|
or something of the kind. So then he was monstrous happy,
|
|
and talked on some time about what they should do,
|
|
and they agreed he should take orders directly,
|
|
and they must wait to be married till he got a living.
|
|
And just then I could not hear any more, for my cousin
|
|
called from below to tell me Mrs. Richardson was come in
|
|
her coach, and would take one of us to Kensington Gardens;
|
|
so I was forced to go into the room and interrupt them,
|
|
to ask Lucy if she would like to go, but she did not
|
|
care to leave Edward; so I just run up stairs and put
|
|
on a pair of silk stockings and came off with the
|
|
Richardsons."
|
|
|
|
"I do not understand what you mean by interrupting them,"
|
|
said Elinor; "you were all in the same room together,
|
|
were not you?"
|
|
|
|
"No, indeed, not us. La! Miss Dashwood, do you
|
|
think people make love when any body else is by? Oh,
|
|
for shame!--To be sure you must know better than that.
|
|
(Laughing affectedly.)--No, no; they were shut up in the
|
|
drawing-room together, and all I heard was only by listening
|
|
at the door."
|
|
|
|
"How!" cried Elinor; "have you been repeating to me
|
|
what you only learnt yourself by listening at the door?
|
|
I am sorry I did not know it before; for I certainly
|
|
would not have suffered you to give me particulars of a
|
|
conversation which you ought not to have known yourself.
|
|
How could you behave so unfairly by your sister?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh, la! there is nothing in THAT. I only stood at
|
|
the door, and heard what I could. And I am sure Lucy would
|
|
have done just the same by me; for a year or two back,
|
|
when Martha Sharpe and I had so many secrets together,
|
|
she never made any bones of hiding in a closet, or behind
|
|
a chimney-board, on purpose to hear what we said."
|
|
|
|
Elinor tried to talk of something else; but Miss
|
|
Steele could not be kept beyond a couple of minutes,
|
|
from what was uppermost in her mind.
|
|
|
|
"Edward talks of going to Oxford soon," said she;
|
|
"but now he is lodging at No. --, Pall Mall. What an
|
|
ill-natured woman his monther is, an't she? And your
|
|
brother and sister were not very kind! However,
|
|
I shan't say anything against them to YOU; and to be sure
|
|
they did send us home in their own chariot, which
|
|
was more than I looked for. And for my part, I was all
|
|
in a fright for fear your sister should ask us for the
|
|
huswifes she had gave us a day or two before; but, however,
|
|
nothing was said about them, and I took care to keep mine
|
|
out of sight. Edward have got some business at Oxford,
|
|
he says; so he must go there for a time; and after THAT,
|
|
as soon as he can light upon a Bishop, he will be ordained.
|
|
I wonder what curacy he will get!--Good gracious!
|
|
(giggling as she spoke) I'd lay my life I know what
|
|
my cousins will say, when they hear of it. They will
|
|
tell me I should write to the Doctor, to get Edward
|
|
the curacy of his new living. I know they will; but I am
|
|
sure I would not do such a thing for all the world.--
|
|
'La!' I shall say directly, 'I wonder how you could think
|
|
of such a thing? I write to the Doctor, indeed!'"
|
|
|
|
"Well," said Elinor, "it is a comfort to be prepared
|
|
against the worst. You have got your answer ready."
|
|
|
|
Miss Steele was going to reply on the same subject,
|
|
but the approach of her own party made another more necessary.
|
|
|
|
"Oh, la! here come the Richardsons. I had a vast deal
|
|
more to say to you, but I must not stay away from them not
|
|
any longer. I assure you they are very genteel people.
|
|
He makes a monstrous deal of money, and they keep their
|
|
own coach. I have not time to speak to Mrs. Jennings about
|
|
it myself, but pray tell her I am quite happy to hear she
|
|
is not in anger against us, and Lady Middleton the same;
|
|
and if anything should happen to take you and your
|
|
sister away, and Mrs. Jennings should want company,
|
|
I am sure we should be very glad to come and stay with her
|
|
for as long a time as she likes. I suppose Lady Middleton
|
|
won't ask us any more this bout. Good-by; I am sorry
|
|
Miss Marianne was not here. Remember me kindly to her.
|
|
La! if you have not got your spotted muslin on!--I wonder
|
|
you was not afraid of its being torn."
|
|
|
|
Such was her parting concern; for after this, she had
|
|
time only to pay her farewell compliments to Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
before her company was claimed by Mrs. Richardson;
|
|
and Elinor was left in possession of knowledge which
|
|
might feed her powers of reflection some time, though she
|
|
had learnt very little more than what had been already
|
|
foreseen and foreplanned in her own mind. Edward's marriage
|
|
with Lucy was as firmly determined on, and the time
|
|
of its taking place remained as absolutely uncertain,
|
|
as she had concluded it would be;--every thing depended,
|
|
exactly after her expectation, on his getting that preferment,
|
|
of which, at present, there seemed not the smallest chance.
|
|
|
|
As soon as they returned to the carriage,
|
|
Mrs. Jennings was eager for information; but as Elinor
|
|
wished to spread as little as possible intelligence
|
|
that had in the first place been so unfairly obtained,
|
|
she confined herself to the brief repetition of such
|
|
simple particulars, as she felt assured that Lucy,
|
|
for the sake of her own consequence, would choose
|
|
to have known. The continuance of their engagement,
|
|
and the means that were able to be taken for promoting
|
|
its end, was all her communication; and this produced
|
|
from Mrs. Jennings the following natural remark.
|
|
|
|
"Wait for his having a living!--ay, we all know how
|
|
THAT will end:--they will wait a twelvemonth, and finding
|
|
no good comes of it, will set down upon a curacy of fifty
|
|
pounds a-year, with the interest of his two thousand pounds,
|
|
and what little matter Mr. Steele and Mr. Pratt can
|
|
give her.--Then they will have a child every year! and
|
|
Lord help 'em! how poor they will be!--I must see
|
|
what I can give them towards furnishing their house.
|
|
Two maids and two men, indeed!--as I talked of t'other
|
|
day.--No, no, they must get a stout girl of all works.--
|
|
Betty's sister would never do for them NOW."
|
|
|
|
The next morning brought Elinor a letter by the
|
|
two-penny post from Lucy herself. It was as follows:
|
|
|
|
"Bartlett's Building, March.
|
|
|
|
"I hope my dear Miss Dashwood will excuse the
|
|
liberty I take of writing to her; but I know your
|
|
friendship for me will make you pleased to hear such
|
|
a good account of myself and my dear Edward, after
|
|
all the troubles we have went through lately,
|
|
therefore will make no more apologies, but proceed
|
|
to say that, thank God! though we have suffered
|
|
dreadfully, we are both quite well now, and as happy
|
|
as we must always be in one another's love. We have
|
|
had great trials, and great persecutions, but
|
|
however, at the same time, gratefully acknowledge
|
|
many friends, yourself not the least among them,
|
|
whose great kindness I shall always thankfully
|
|
remember, as will Edward too, who I have told of
|
|
it. I am sure you will be glad to hear, as likewise
|
|
dear Mrs. Jennings, I spent two happy hours with
|
|
him yesterday afternoon, he would not hear of our
|
|
parting, though earnestly did I, as I thought my
|
|
duty required, urge him to it for prudence sake,
|
|
and would have parted for ever on the spot, would
|
|
he consent to it; but he said it should never be,
|
|
he did not regard his mother's anger, while he could
|
|
have my affections; our prospects are not very
|
|
bright, to be sure, but we must wait, and hope for
|
|
the best; he will be ordained shortly; and should
|
|
it ever be in your power to recommend him to any
|
|
body that has a living to bestow, am very sure you
|
|
will not forget us, and dear Mrs. Jennings too,
|
|
trust she will speak a good word for us to Sir John,
|
|
or Mr. Palmer, or any friend that may be able to
|
|
assist us.--Poor Anne was much to blame for what
|
|
she did, but she did it for the best, so I say
|
|
nothing; hope Mrs. Jennings won't think it too much
|
|
trouble to give us a call, should she come this way
|
|
any morning, 'twould be a great kindness, and my
|
|
cousins would be proud to know her.--My paper reminds
|
|
me to conclude; and begging to be most gratefully
|
|
and respectfully remembered to her, and to Sir John,
|
|
and Lady Middleton, and the dear children, when you
|
|
chance to see them, and love to Miss Marianne,
|
|
|
|
"I am, &c."
|
|
|
|
As soon as Elinor had finished it, she performed
|
|
what she concluded to be its writer's real design,
|
|
by placing it in the hands of Mrs. Jennings, who read it
|
|
aloud with many comments of satisfaction and praise.
|
|
|
|
"Very well indeed!--how prettily she writes!--aye,
|
|
that was quite proper to let him be off if he would.
|
|
That was just like Lucy.--Poor soul! I wish I COULD get
|
|
him a living, with all my heart.--She calls me dear
|
|
Mrs. Jennings, you see. She is a good-hearted girl
|
|
as ever lived.--Very well upon my word. That sentence
|
|
is very prettily turned. Yes, yes, I will go and see her,
|
|
sure enough. How attentive she is, to think of every
|
|
body!--Thank you, my dear, for shewing it me. It is
|
|
as pretty a letter as ever I saw, and does Lucy's head
|
|
and heart great credit."
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 39
|
|
|
|
The Miss Dashwoods had now been rather more than
|
|
two months in town, and Marianne's impatience to be gone
|
|
increased every day. She sighed for the air, the liberty,
|
|
the quiet of the country; and fancied that if any place
|
|
could give her ease, Barton must do it. Elinor was hardly
|
|
less anxious than herself for their removal, and only so much
|
|
less bent on its being effected immediately, as that she
|
|
was conscious of the difficulties of so long a journey,
|
|
which Marianne could not be brought to acknowledge.
|
|
She began, however, seriously to turn her thoughts towards
|
|
its accomplishment, and had already mentioned their wishes
|
|
to their kind hostess, who resisted them with all the
|
|
eloquence of her good-will, when a plan was suggested,
|
|
which, though detaining them from home yet a few weeks
|
|
longer, appeared to Elinor altogether much more eligible
|
|
than any other. The Palmers were to remove to Cleveland
|
|
about the end of March, for the Easter holidays;
|
|
and Mrs. Jennings, with both her friends, received a very
|
|
warm invitation from Charlotte to go with them. This would
|
|
not, in itself, have been sufficient for the delicacy of
|
|
Miss Dashwood;--but it was inforced with so much real
|
|
politeness by Mr. Palmer himself, as, joined to the very
|
|
great amendment of his manners towards them since her
|
|
sister had been known to be unhappy, induced her to accept
|
|
it with pleasure.
|
|
|
|
When she told Marianne what she had done, however,
|
|
her first reply was not very auspicious.
|
|
|
|
"Cleveland!"--she cried, with great agitation.
|
|
"No, I cannot go to Cleveland."--
|
|
|
|
"You forget," said Elinor gently, "that its situation
|
|
is not...that it is not in the neighbourhood of..."
|
|
|
|
"But it is in Somersetshire.--I cannot go
|
|
into Somersetshire.--There, where I looked forward
|
|
to going...No, Elinor, you cannot expect me to go there."
|
|
|
|
Elinor would not argue upon the propriety of overcoming
|
|
such feelings;--she only endeavoured to counteract them by
|
|
working on others;--represented it, therefore, as a measure
|
|
which would fix the time of her returning to that dear mother,
|
|
whom she so much wished to see, in a more eligible,
|
|
more comfortable manner, than any other plan could do,
|
|
and perhaps without any greater delay. From Cleveland,
|
|
which was within a few miles of Bristol, the distance to
|
|
Barton was not beyond one day, though a long day's journey;
|
|
and their mother's servant might easily come there to attend
|
|
them down; and as there could be no occasion of their
|
|
staying above a week at Cleveland, they might now be at
|
|
home in little more than three weeks' time. As Marianne's
|
|
affection for her mother was sincere, it must triumph
|
|
with little difficulty, over the imaginary evils she had started.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings was so far from being weary of her guest,
|
|
that she pressed them very earnestly to return with her again
|
|
from Cleveland. Elinor was grateful for the attention,
|
|
but it could not alter her design; and their mother's
|
|
concurrence being readily gained, every thing relative
|
|
to their return was arranged as far as it could be;--
|
|
and Marianne found some relief in drawing up a statement
|
|
of the hours that were yet to divide her from Barton.
|
|
|
|
"Ah! Colonel, I do not know what you and I shall
|
|
do without the Miss Dashwoods;"--was Mrs. Jennings's
|
|
address to him when he first called on her, after their
|
|
leaving her was settled--"for they are quite resolved
|
|
upon going home from the Palmers;--and how forlorn we
|
|
shall be, when I come back!--Lord! we shall sit and gape
|
|
at one another as dull as two cats."
|
|
|
|
Perhaps Mrs. Jennings was in hopes, by this vigorous
|
|
sketch of their future ennui, to provoke him to make
|
|
that offer, which might give himself an escape from it;--
|
|
and if so, she had soon afterwards good reason to think
|
|
her object gained; for, on Elinor's moving to the window
|
|
to take more expeditiously the dimensions of a print,
|
|
which she was going to copy for her friend, he followed
|
|
her to it with a look of particular meaning, and conversed
|
|
with her there for several minutes. The effect of his
|
|
discourse on the lady too, could not escape her observation,
|
|
for though she was too honorable to listen, and had even
|
|
changed her seat, on purpose that she might NOT hear,
|
|
to one close by the piano forte on which Marianne
|
|
was playing, she could not keep herself from seeing
|
|
that Elinor changed colour, attended with agitation,
|
|
and was too intent on what he said to pursue her employment.--
|
|
Still farther in confirmation of her hopes, in the interval
|
|
of Marianne's turning from one lesson to another,
|
|
some words of the Colonel's inevitably reached her ear,
|
|
in which he seemed to be apologising for the badness
|
|
of his house. This set the matter beyond a doubt.
|
|
She wondered, indeed, at his thinking it necessary
|
|
to do so; but supposed it to be the proper etiquette.
|
|
What Elinor said in reply she could not distinguish,
|
|
but judged from the motion of her lips, that she did
|
|
not think THAT any material objection;--and Mrs. Jennings
|
|
commended her in her heart for being so honest.
|
|
They then talked on for a few minutes longer without her
|
|
catching a syllable, when another lucky stop in Marianne's
|
|
performance brought her these words in the Colonel's calm
|
|
voice,--
|
|
|
|
"I am afraid it cannot take place very soon."
|
|
|
|
Astonished and shocked at so unlover-like a speech,
|
|
she was almost ready to cry out, "Lord! what should
|
|
hinder it?"--but checking her desire, confined herself
|
|
to this silent ejaculation.
|
|
|
|
"This is very strange!--sure he need not wait
|
|
to be older."
|
|
|
|
This delay on the Colonel's side, however, did not
|
|
seem to offend or mortify his fair companion in the least,
|
|
for on their breaking up the conference soon afterwards,
|
|
and moving different ways, Mrs. Jennings very plainly heard
|
|
Elinor say, and with a voice which shewed her to feel what she said,
|
|
|
|
"I shall always think myself very much obliged to you."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Jennings was delighted with her gratitude,
|
|
and only wondered that after hearing such a sentence,
|
|
the Colonel should be able to take leave of them, as he
|
|
immediately did, with the utmost sang-froid, and go away
|
|
without making her any reply!--She had not thought her old
|
|
friend could have made so indifferent a suitor.
|
|
|
|
What had really passed between them was to this effect.
|
|
|
|
"I have heard," said he, with great compassion,
|
|
"of the injustice your friend Mr. Ferrars has suffered
|
|
from his family; for if I understand the matter right,
|
|
he has been entirely cast off by them for persevering
|
|
in his engagement with a very deserving young woman.--
|
|
Have I been rightly informed?--Is it so?--"
|
|
|
|
Elinor told him that it was.
|
|
|
|
"The cruelty, the impolitic cruelty,"--he replied,
|
|
with great feeling,--"of dividing, or attempting to divide,
|
|
two young people long attached to each other, is terrible.--
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars does not know what she may be doing--what
|
|
she may drive her son to. I have seen Mr. Ferrars two
|
|
or three times in Harley Street, and am much pleased
|
|
with him. He is not a young man with whom one can
|
|
be intimately acquainted in a short time, but I have
|
|
seen enough of him to wish him well for his own sake,
|
|
and as a friend of yours, I wish it still more.
|
|
I understand that he intends to take orders. Will you
|
|
be so good as to tell him that the living of Delaford,
|
|
now just vacant, as I am informed by this day's post,
|
|
is his, if he think it worth his acceptance--but THAT,
|
|
perhaps, so unfortunately circumstanced as he is now,
|
|
it may be nonsense to appear to doubt; I only wish it
|
|
were more valuable.-- It is a rectory, but a small one;
|
|
the late incumbent, I believe, did not make more than
|
|
200 L per annum, and though it is certainly capable
|
|
of improvement, I fear, not to such an amount as
|
|
to afford him a very comfortable income. Such as it is,
|
|
however, my pleasure in presenting him to it,
|
|
will be very great. Pray assure him of it."
|
|
|
|
Elinor's astonishment at this commission could
|
|
hardly have been greater, had the Colonel been really
|
|
making her an offer of his hand. The preferment,
|
|
which only two days before she had considered as hopeless
|
|
for Edward, was already provided to enable him to marry;--
|
|
and SHE, of all people in the world, was fixed on to
|
|
bestow it!--Her emotion was such as Mrs. Jennings had
|
|
attributed to a very different cause;--but whatever minor
|
|
feelings less pure, less pleasing, might have a share
|
|
in that emotion, her esteem for the general benevolence,
|
|
and her gratitude for the particular friendship,
|
|
which together prompted Colonel Brandon to this act,
|
|
were strongly felt, and warmly expressed. She thanked him
|
|
for it with all her heart, spoke of Edward's principles and
|
|
disposition with that praise which she knew them to deserve;
|
|
and promised to undertake the commission with pleasure,
|
|
if it were really his wish to put off so agreeable an office
|
|
to another. But at the same time, she could not help
|
|
thinking that no one could so well perform it as himself.
|
|
It was an office in short, from which, unwilling to give
|
|
Edward the pain of receiving an obligation from HER,
|
|
she would have been very glad to be spared herself;--
|
|
but Colonel Brandon, on motives of equal delicacy,
|
|
declining it likewise, still seemed so desirous of its being
|
|
given through her means, that she would not on any account
|
|
make farther opposition. Edward, she believed, was still in town,
|
|
and fortunately she had heard his address from Miss Steele.
|
|
She could undertake therefore to inform him of it,
|
|
in the course of the day. After this had been settled,
|
|
Colonel Brandon began to talk of his own advantage
|
|
in securing so respectable and agreeable a neighbour,
|
|
and THEN it was that he mentioned with regret, that the
|
|
house was small and indifferent;--an evil which Elinor,
|
|
as Mrs. Jennings had supposed her to do, made very light of,
|
|
at least as far as regarded its size.
|
|
|
|
"The smallness of the house," said she,
|
|
"I cannot imagine any inconvenience to them,
|
|
for it will be in proportion to their family and income."
|
|
|
|
By which the Colonel was surprised to find that SHE
|
|
was considering Mr. Ferrars's marriage as the certain
|
|
consequence of the presentation; for he did not suppose it
|
|
possible that Delaford living could supply such an income,
|
|
as anybody in his style of life would venture to settle on--
|
|
and he said so.
|
|
|
|
"This little rectory CAN do no more than make Mr. Ferrars
|
|
comfortable as a bachelor; it cannot enable him to marry.
|
|
I am sorry to say that my patronage ends with this;
|
|
and my interest is hardly more extensive. If, however,
|
|
by an unforeseen chance it should be in my power to serve
|
|
him farther, I must think very differently of him
|
|
from what I now do, if I am not as ready to be useful
|
|
to him then as I sincerely wish I could be at present.
|
|
What I am now doing indeed, seems nothing at all,
|
|
since it can advance him so little towards what must
|
|
be his principal, his only object of happiness.
|
|
His marriage must still be a distant good;--at least,
|
|
I am afraid it cannot take place very soon.--"
|
|
|
|
Such was the sentence which, when misunderstood,
|
|
so justly offended the delicate feelings of Mrs. Jennings;
|
|
but after this narration of what really passed between
|
|
Colonel Brandon and Elinor, while they stood at the window,
|
|
the gratitude expressed by the latter on their parting, may
|
|
perhaps appear in general, not less reasonably excited,
|
|
nor less properly worded than if it had arisen from
|
|
an offer of marriage.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 40
|
|
|
|
"Well, Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
sagaciously smiling, as soon as the gentleman had withdrawn,
|
|
"I do not ask you what the Colonel has been saying to you;
|
|
for though, upon my honour, I TRIED to keep out of hearing,
|
|
I could not help catching enough to understand his business.
|
|
And I assure you I never was better pleased in my life,
|
|
and I wish you joy of it with all my heart."
|
|
|
|
"Thank you, ma'am," said Elinor. "It is a matter
|
|
of great joy to me; and I feel the goodness of Colonel
|
|
Brandon most sensibly. There are not many men who would
|
|
act as he has done. Few people who have so compassionate
|
|
a heart! I never was more astonished in my life."
|
|
|
|
"Lord! my dear, you are very modest. I an't the least
|
|
astonished at it in the world, for I have often thought
|
|
of late, there was nothing more likely to happen."
|
|
|
|
"You judged from your knowledge of the Colonel's
|
|
general benevolence; but at least you could not foresee
|
|
that the opportunity would so very soon occur."
|
|
|
|
"Opportunity!" repeated Mrs. Jennings--"Oh! as to that,
|
|
when a man has once made up his mind to such a thing,
|
|
somehow or other he will soon find an opportunity.
|
|
Well, my dear, I wish you joy of it again and again;
|
|
and if ever there was a happy couple in the world, I think
|
|
I shall soon know where to look for them."
|
|
|
|
"You mean to go to Delaford after them I suppose,"
|
|
said Elinor, with a faint smile.
|
|
|
|
"Aye, my dear, that I do, indeed. And as to the house
|
|
being a bad one, I do not know what the Colonel would be at,
|
|
for it is as good a one as ever I saw."
|
|
|
|
"He spoke of its being out of repair."
|
|
|
|
"Well, and whose fault is that? why don't he repair it?--
|
|
who should do it but himself?"
|
|
|
|
They were interrupted by the servant's coming in to
|
|
announce the carriage being at the door; and Mrs. Jennings
|
|
immediately preparing to go, said,--
|
|
|
|
"Well, my dear, I must be gone before I have had half
|
|
my talk out. But, however, we may have it all over in
|
|
the evening; for we shall be quite alone. I do not ask
|
|
you to go with me, for I dare say your mind is too full
|
|
of the matter to care for company; and besides, you must
|
|
long to tell your sister all about it."
|
|
|
|
Marianne had left the room before the conversation began.
|
|
|
|
"Certainly, ma'am, I shall tell Marianne of it;
|
|
but I shall not mention it at present to any body else."
|
|
|
|
"Oh! very well," said Mrs. Jennings rather disappointed.
|
|
"Then you would not have me tell it to Lucy, for I think
|
|
of going as far as Holborn to-day."
|
|
|
|
"No, ma'am, not even Lucy if you please.
|
|
One day's delay will not be very material; and till I
|
|
have written to Mr. Ferrars, I think it ought not to be
|
|
mentioned to any body else. I shall do THAT directly.
|
|
It is of importance that no time should be lost with him,
|
|
for he will of course have much to do relative to
|
|
his ordination."
|
|
|
|
This speech at first puzzled Mrs. Jennings exceedingly.
|
|
Why Mr. Ferrars was to have been written to about it
|
|
in such a hurry, she could not immediately comprehend.
|
|
A few moments' reflection, however, produced a very happy idea,
|
|
and she exclaimed;--
|
|
|
|
"Oh, ho!--I understand you. Mr. Ferrars is to be
|
|
the man. Well, so much the better for him. Ay, to be sure,
|
|
he must be ordained in readiness; and I am very glad
|
|
to find things are so forward between you. But, my dear,
|
|
is not this rather out of character? Should not the Colonel
|
|
write himself?--sure, he is the proper person."
|
|
|
|
Elinor did not quite understand the beginning of
|
|
Mrs. Jennings's speech, neither did she think it worth
|
|
inquiring into; and therefore only replied to its conclusion.
|
|
|
|
"Colonel Brandon is so delicate a man, that he rather
|
|
wished any one to announce his intentions to Mr. Ferrars
|
|
than himself."
|
|
|
|
"And so YOU are forced to do it. Well THAT is an odd
|
|
kind of delicacy! However, I will not disturb you (seeing
|
|
her preparing to write.) You know your own concerns best.
|
|
So goodby, my dear. I have not heard of any thing to
|
|
please me so well since Charlotte was brought to bed."
|
|
|
|
And away she went; but returning again in a moment,
|
|
|
|
"I have just been thinking of Betty's sister, my dear.
|
|
I should be very glad to get her so good a mistress.
|
|
But whether she would do for a lady's maid, I am sure I
|
|
can't tell. She is an excellent housemaid, and works
|
|
very well at her needle. However, you will think of all
|
|
that at your leisure."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly, ma'am," replied Elinor, not hearing
|
|
much of what she said, and more anxious to be alone,
|
|
than to be mistress of the subject.
|
|
|
|
How she should begin--how she should express
|
|
herself in her note to Edward, was now all her concern.
|
|
The particular circumstances between them made
|
|
a difficulty of that which to any other person would
|
|
have been the easiest thing in the world; but she
|
|
equally feared to say too much or too little, and sat
|
|
deliberating over her paper, with the pen in her band,
|
|
till broken in on by the entrance of Edward himself.
|
|
|
|
He had met Mrs. Jennings at the door in her way to
|
|
the carriage, as he came to leave his farewell card; and she,
|
|
after apologising for not returning herself, had obliged
|
|
him to enter, by saying that Miss Dashwood was above,
|
|
and wanted to speak with him on very particular business.
|
|
|
|
Elinor had just been congratulating herself,
|
|
in the midst of her perplexity, that however difficult it
|
|
might be to express herself properly by letter, it was
|
|
at least preferable to giving the information by word
|
|
of mouth, when her visitor entered, to force her upon this
|
|
greatest exertion of all. Her astonishment and confusion
|
|
were very great on his so sudden appearance. She had
|
|
not seen him before since his engagement became public,
|
|
and therefore not since his knowing her to be acquainted
|
|
with it; which, with the consciousness of what she
|
|
had been thinking of, and what she had to tell him,
|
|
made her feel particularly uncomfortable for some minutes.
|
|
He too was much distressed; and they sat down together
|
|
in a most promising state of embarrassment.--Whether he
|
|
had asked her pardon for his intrusion on first coming
|
|
into the room, he could not recollect; but determining
|
|
to be on the safe side, he made his apology in form
|
|
as soon as he could say any thing, after taking a chair.
|
|
|
|
"Mrs. Jennings told me," said he, "that you wished
|
|
to speak with me, at least I understood her so--or I
|
|
certainly should not have intruded on you in such a manner;
|
|
though at the same time, I should have been extremely
|
|
sorry to leave London without seeing you and your sister;
|
|
especially as it will most likely be some time--it
|
|
is not probable that I should soon have the pleasure
|
|
of meeting you again. I go to Oxford tomorrow."
|
|
|
|
"You would not have gone, however," said Elinor,
|
|
recovering herself, and determined to get over what she
|
|
so much dreaded as soon as possible, "without receiving
|
|
our good wishes, even if we had not been able to give them
|
|
in person. Mrs. Jennings was quite right in what she said.
|
|
I have something of consequence to inform you of,
|
|
which I was on the point of communicating by paper.
|
|
I am charged with a most agreeable office (breathing
|
|
rather faster than usual as she spoke.) Colonel Brandon,
|
|
who was here only ten minutes ago, has desired me to say,
|
|
that understanding you mean to take orders, he has
|
|
great pleasure in offering you the living of Delaford
|
|
now just vacant, and only wishes it were more valuable.
|
|
Allow me to congratulate you on having so respectable
|
|
and well-judging a friend, and to join in his wish that
|
|
the living--it is about two hundred a-year--were much
|
|
more considerable, and such as might better enable you
|
|
to--as might be more than a temporary accommodation to
|
|
yourself--such, in short, as might establish all your views
|
|
of happiness."
|
|
|
|
What Edward felt, as he could not say it himself,
|
|
it cannot be expected that any one else should say for him.
|
|
He LOOKED all the astonishment which such unexpected,
|
|
such unthought-of information could not fail of exciting;
|
|
but he said only these two words,
|
|
|
|
"Colonel Brandon!"
|
|
|
|
"Yes," continued Elinor, gathering more resolution,
|
|
as some of the worst was over, "Colonel Brandon means
|
|
it as a testimony of his concern for what has lately
|
|
passed--for the cruel situation in which the unjustifiable
|
|
conduct of your family has placed you--a concern
|
|
which I am sure Marianne, myself, and all your friends,
|
|
must share; and likewise as a proof of his high esteem
|
|
for your general character, and his particular approbation
|
|
of your behaviour on the present occasion."
|
|
|
|
"Colonel Brandon give ME a living!--Can it be possible?"
|
|
|
|
"The unkindness of your own relations has made you
|
|
astonished to find friendship any where."
|
|
|
|
"No," replied be, with sudden consciousness, "not to
|
|
find it in YOU; for I cannot be ignorant that to you,
|
|
to your goodness, I owe it all.--I feel it--I would express
|
|
it if I could--but, as you well know, I am no orator."
|
|
|
|
"You are very much mistaken. I do assure you
|
|
that you owe it entirely, at least almost entirely,
|
|
to your own merit, and Colonel Brandon's discernment
|
|
of it. I have had no hand in it. I did not even know,
|
|
till I understood his design, that the living was vacant;
|
|
nor had it ever occurred to me that he might have
|
|
had such a living in his gift. As a friend of mine,
|
|
of my family, he may, perhaps--indeed I know he HAS,
|
|
still greater pleasure in bestowing it; but, upon my word,
|
|
you owe nothing to my solicitation."
|
|
|
|
Truth obliged her to acknowledge some small share
|
|
in the action, but she was at the same time so unwilling
|
|
to appear as the benefactress of Edward, that she acknowledged
|
|
it with hesitation; which probably contributed to fix
|
|
that suspicion in his mind which had recently entered it.
|
|
For a short time he sat deep in thought, after Elinor had ceased
|
|
to speak;--at last, and as if it were rather an effort, he said,
|
|
|
|
"Colonel Brandon seems a man of great worth
|
|
and respectability. I have always heard him spoken
|
|
of as such, and your brother I know esteems him highly.
|
|
He is undoubtedly a sensible man, and in his manners
|
|
perfectly the gentleman."
|
|
|
|
"Indeed," replied Elinor, "I believe that you will find him,
|
|
on farther acquaintance, all that you have heard him to be,
|
|
and as you will be such very near neighbours (for I understand
|
|
the parsonage is almost close to the mansion-house,)
|
|
it is particularly important that he SHOULD be all this."
|
|
|
|
Edward made no answer; but when she had turned
|
|
away her head, gave her a look so serious, so earnest,
|
|
so uncheerful, as seemed to say, that he might hereafter wish
|
|
the distance between the parsonage and the mansion-house
|
|
much greater.
|
|
|
|
"Colonel Brandon, I think, lodges in St. James Street,"
|
|
said he, soon afterwards, rising from his chair.
|
|
|
|
Elinor told him the number of the house.
|
|
|
|
"I must hurry away then, to give him those thanks
|
|
which you will not allow me to give YOU; to assure him
|
|
that he has made me a very--an exceedingly happy man."
|
|
|
|
Elinor did not offer to detain him; and they parted,
|
|
with a very earnest assurance on HER side of her unceasing
|
|
good wishes for his happiness in every change of situation
|
|
that might befall him; on HIS, with rather an attempt to
|
|
return the same good will, than the power of expressing it.
|
|
|
|
"When I see him again," said Elinor to herself,
|
|
as the door shut him out, "I shall see him the husband
|
|
of Lucy."
|
|
|
|
And with this pleasing anticipation, she sat down
|
|
to reconsider the past, recall the words and endeavour
|
|
to comprehend all the feelings of Edward; and, of course,
|
|
to reflect on her own with discontent.
|
|
|
|
When Mrs. Jennings came home, though she returned
|
|
from seeing people whom she had never seen before,
|
|
and of whom therefore she must have a great deal to say,
|
|
her mind was so much more occupied by the important secret
|
|
in her possession, than by anything else, that she
|
|
reverted to it again as soon as Elinor appeared.
|
|
|
|
"Well, my dear," she cried, "I sent you up to the
|
|
young man. Did not I do right?--And I suppose you had
|
|
no great difficulty--You did not find him very unwilling
|
|
to accept your proposal?"
|
|
|
|
"No, ma'am; THAT was not very likely."
|
|
|
|
"Well, and how soon will he be ready?--For it seems
|
|
all to depend upon that."
|
|
|
|
"Really," said Elinor, "I know so little of these kind
|
|
of forms, that I can hardly even conjecture as to the time,
|
|
or the preparation necessary; but I suppose two or three
|
|
months will complete his ordination."
|
|
|
|
"Two or three months!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "Lord! my dear,
|
|
how calmly you talk of it; and can the Colonel wait two
|
|
or three months! Lord bless me!--I am sure it would put ME
|
|
quite out of patience!--And though one would be very glad
|
|
to do a kindness by poor Mr. Ferrars, I do think it is
|
|
not worth while to wait two or three months for him.
|
|
Sure somebody else might be found that would do as well;
|
|
somebody that is in orders already."
|
|
|
|
"My dear ma'am," said Elinor, "what can you be thinking of?--
|
|
Why, Colonel Brandon's only object is to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
|
|
|
|
"Lord bless you, my dear!--Sure you do not mean to persuade
|
|
me that the Colonel only marries you for the sake of giving
|
|
ten guineas to Mr. Ferrars!"
|
|
|
|
The deception could not continue after this;
|
|
and an explanation immediately took place, by which both
|
|
gained considerable amusement for the moment, without any
|
|
material loss of happiness to either, for Mrs. Jennings
|
|
only exchanged one form of delight for another, and still
|
|
without forfeiting her expectation of the first.
|
|
|
|
"Aye, aye, the parsonage is but a small one," said she,
|
|
after the first ebullition of surprise and satisfaction
|
|
was over, "and very likely MAY be out of repair; but to hear
|
|
a man apologising, as I thought, for a house that to my
|
|
knowledge has five sitting rooms on the ground-floor, and I
|
|
think the housekeeper told me could make up fifteen beds!--
|
|
and to you too, that had been used to live in Barton
|
|
cottage!--It seems quite ridiculous. But, my dear, we must
|
|
touch up the Colonel to do some thing to the parsonage,
|
|
and make it comfortable for them, before Lucy goes to it."
|
|
|
|
"But Colonel Brandon does not seem to have any idea
|
|
of the living's being enough to allow them to marry."
|
|
|
|
"The Colonel is a ninny, my dear; because he has two
|
|
thousand a-year himself, he thinks that nobody else can marry
|
|
on less. Take my word for it, that, if I am alive, I shall
|
|
be paying a visit at Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas;
|
|
and I am sure I sha'nt go if Lucy an't there."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was quite of her opinion, as to the probability
|
|
of their not waiting for any thing more.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 41
|
|
|
|
Edward, having carried his thanks to Colonel Brandon,
|
|
proceeded with his happiness to Lucy; and such was the
|
|
excess of it by the time he reached Bartlett's Buildings,
|
|
that she was able to assure Mrs. Jennings, who called
|
|
on her again the next day with her congratulations,
|
|
that she had never seen him in such spirits before in
|
|
her life.
|
|
|
|
Her own happiness, and her own spirits, were at
|
|
least very certain; and she joined Mrs. Jennings most
|
|
heartily in her expectation of their being all comfortably
|
|
together in Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas.
|
|
So far was she, at the same time, from any backwardness
|
|
to give Elinor that credit which Edward WOULD give her,
|
|
that she spoke of her friendship for them both with the most
|
|
grateful warmth, was ready to own all their obligation
|
|
to her, and openly declared that no exertion for their
|
|
good on Miss Dashwood's part, either present or future,
|
|
would ever surprise her, for she believed her capable of
|
|
doing any thing in the world for those she really valued.
|
|
As for Colonel Brandon, she was not only ready to worship
|
|
him as a saint, but was moreover truly anxious that
|
|
he should be treated as one in all worldly concerns;
|
|
anxious that his tithes should be raised to the utmost;
|
|
and scarcely resolved to avail herself, at Delaford,
|
|
as far as she possibly could, of his servants, his carriage,
|
|
his cows, and his poultry.
|
|
|
|
It was now above a week since John Dashwood had
|
|
called in Berkeley Street, and as since that time no notice
|
|
had been taken by them of his wife's indisposition,
|
|
beyond one verbal enquiry, Elinor began to feel it
|
|
necessary to pay her a visit.--This was an obligation,
|
|
however, which not only opposed her own inclination,
|
|
but which had not the assistance of any encouragement
|
|
from her companions. Marianne, not contented with
|
|
absolutely refusing to go herself, was very urgent
|
|
to prevent her sister's going at all; and Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
though her carriage was always at Elinor's service,
|
|
so very much disliked Mrs. John Dashwood, that not even her
|
|
curiosity to see how she looked after the late discovery,
|
|
nor her strong desire to affront her by taking Edward's part,
|
|
could overcome her unwillingness to be in her company again.
|
|
The consequence was, that Elinor set out by herself
|
|
to pay a visit, for which no one could really have
|
|
less inclination, and to run the risk of a tete-a-tete
|
|
with a woman, whom neither of the others had so much
|
|
reason to dislike.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood was denied; but before the carriage could
|
|
turn from the house, her husband accidentally came out.
|
|
He expressed great pleasure in meeting Elinor, told her
|
|
that he had been just going to call in Berkeley Street, and,
|
|
assuring her that Fanny would be very glad to see her,
|
|
invited her to come in.
|
|
|
|
They walked up stairs in to the drawing-room.--Nobody
|
|
was there.
|
|
|
|
"Fanny is in her own room, I suppose," said he:--"I
|
|
will go to her presently, for I am sure she will not
|
|
have the least objection in the world to seeing YOU.--
|
|
Very far from it, indeed. NOW especially there
|
|
cannot be--but however, you and Marianne were always
|
|
great favourites.--Why would not Marianne come?"--
|
|
|
|
Elinor made what excuse she could for her.
|
|
|
|
"I am not sorry to see you alone," he replied,
|
|
"for I have a good deal to say to you. This living
|
|
of Colonel Brandon's--can it be true?--has he really given
|
|
it to Edward?--I heard it yesterday by chance, and was
|
|
coming to you on purpose to enquire farther about it."
|
|
|
|
"It is perfectly true.--Colonel Brandon has given
|
|
the living of Delaford to Edward."
|
|
|
|
"Really!--Well, this is very astonishing!--no
|
|
relationship!--no connection between them!--and now
|
|
that livings fetch such a price!--what was the value of this?"
|
|
|
|
"About two hundred a year."
|
|
|
|
"Very well--and for the next presentation to a living
|
|
of that value--supposing the late incumbent to have
|
|
been old and sickly, and likely to vacate it soon--he
|
|
might have got I dare say--fourteen hundred pounds.
|
|
And how came he not to have settled that matter before this
|
|
person's death?--NOW indeed it would be too late to sell it,
|
|
but a man of Colonel Brandon's sense!--I wonder he should
|
|
be so improvident in a point of such common, such natural,
|
|
concern!--Well, I am convinced that there is a vast deal
|
|
of inconsistency in almost every human character. I suppose,
|
|
however--on recollection--that the case may probably be THIS.
|
|
Edward is only to hold the living till the person to whom
|
|
the Colonel has really sold the presentation, is old enough
|
|
to take it.--Aye, aye, that is the fact, depend upon it."
|
|
|
|
Elinor contradicted it, however, very positively;
|
|
and by relating that she had herself been employed
|
|
in conveying the offer from Colonel Brandon to Edward,
|
|
and, therefore, must understand the terms on which it
|
|
was given, obliged him to submit to her authority.
|
|
|
|
"It is truly astonishing!"--he cried, after hearing
|
|
what she said--"what could be the Colonel's motive?"
|
|
|
|
"A very simple one--to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
|
|
|
|
"Well, well; whatever Colonel Brandon may be,
|
|
Edward is a very lucky man.--You will not mention the matter
|
|
to Fanny, however, for though I have broke it to her,
|
|
and she bears it vastly well,--she will not like to hear
|
|
it much talked of."
|
|
|
|
Elinor had some difficulty here to refrain from observing,
|
|
that she thought Fanny might have borne with composure,
|
|
an acquisition of wealth to her brother, by which neither
|
|
she nor her child could be possibly impoverished.
|
|
|
|
"Mrs. Ferrars," added he, lowering his voice to the
|
|
tone becoming so important a subject, "knows nothing
|
|
about it at present, and I believe it will be best to
|
|
keep it entirely concealed from her as long as may be.--
|
|
When the marriage takes place, I fear she must hear
|
|
of it all."
|
|
|
|
"But why should such precaution be used?--Though
|
|
it is not to be supposed that Mrs. Ferrars can have
|
|
the smallest satisfaction in knowing that her son has
|
|
money enough to live upon,--for THAT must be quite
|
|
out of the question; yet why, upon her late behaviour,
|
|
is she supposed to feel at all?--She has done with her
|
|
son, she cast him off for ever, and has made all those
|
|
over whom she had any influence, cast him off likewise.
|
|
Surely, after doing so, she cannot be imagined liable
|
|
to any impression of sorrow or of joy on his account--
|
|
she cannot be interested in any thing that befalls him.--
|
|
She would not be so weak as to throw away the comfort
|
|
of a child, and yet retain the anxiety of a parent!"
|
|
|
|
"Ah! Elinor," said John, "your reasoning is very good,
|
|
but it is founded on ignorance of human nature.
|
|
When Edward's unhappy match takes place, depend upon it
|
|
his mother will feel as much as if she had never discarded him;
|
|
and, therefore every circumstance that may accelerate that
|
|
dreadful event, must be concealed from her as much as possible.
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars can never forget that Edward is her son."
|
|
|
|
"You surprise me; I should think it must nearly
|
|
have escaped her memory by THIS time."
|
|
|
|
"You wrong her exceedingly. Mrs. Ferrars is one
|
|
of the most affectionate mothers in the world."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was silent.
|
|
|
|
"We think NOW,"--said Mr. Dashwood, after a short pause,
|
|
"of ROBERT'S marrying Miss Morton."
|
|
|
|
Elinor, smiling at the grave and decisive importance
|
|
of her brother's tone, calmly replied,
|
|
|
|
"The lady, I suppose, has no choice in the affair."
|
|
|
|
"Choice!--how do you mean?"
|
|
|
|
"I only mean that I suppose, from your manner
|
|
of speaking, it must be the same to Miss Morton whether
|
|
she marry Edward or Robert."
|
|
|
|
"Certainly, there can be no difference; for Robert
|
|
will now to all intents and purposes be considered
|
|
as the eldest son;--and as to any thing else, they are
|
|
both very agreeable young men: I do not know that one
|
|
is superior to the other."
|
|
|
|
Elinor said no more, and John was also for a short
|
|
time silent.--His reflections ended thus.
|
|
|
|
"Of ONE thing, my dear sister," kindly taking her hand,
|
|
and speaking in an awful whisper,--"I may assure you;--
|
|
and I WILL do it, because I know it must gratify you.
|
|
I have good reason to think--indeed I have it from the
|
|
best authority, or I should not repeat it, for otherwise
|
|
it would be very wrong to say any thing about it--but
|
|
I have it from the very best authority--not that I ever
|
|
precisely heard Mrs. Ferrars say it herself--but her
|
|
daughter DID, and I have it from her--That in short,
|
|
whatever objections there might be against a certain--a
|
|
certain connection--you understand me--it would have been
|
|
far preferable to her, it would not have given her half
|
|
the vexation that THIS does. I was exceedingly pleased
|
|
to hear that Mrs. Ferrars considered it in that light--
|
|
a very gratifying circumstance you know to us all.
|
|
'It would have been beyond comparison,' she said, 'the least
|
|
evil of the two, and she would be glad to compound NOW
|
|
for nothing worse.' But however, all that is quite out
|
|
of the question--not to be thought of or mentioned--
|
|
as to any attachment you know--it never could be--all
|
|
that is gone by. But I thought I would just tell you
|
|
of this, because I knew how much it must please you.
|
|
Not that you have any reason to regret, my dear Elinor. There
|
|
is no doubt of your doing exceedingly well--quite as well,
|
|
or better, perhaps, all things considered. Has Colonel
|
|
Brandon been with you lately?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor had heard enough, if not to gratify her vanity,
|
|
and raise her self-importance, to agitate her nerves
|
|
and fill her mind;--and she was therefore glad to be
|
|
spared from the necessity of saying much in reply herself,
|
|
and from the danger of hearing any thing more from
|
|
her brother, by the entrance of Mr. Robert Ferrars.
|
|
After a few moments' chat, John Dashwood, recollecting that
|
|
Fanny was yet uninformed of her sister's being there,
|
|
quitted the room in quest of her; and Elinor was left
|
|
to improve her acquaintance with Robert, who, by the
|
|
gay unconcern, the happy self-complacency of his manner
|
|
while enjoying so unfair a division of his mother's love
|
|
and liberality, to the prejudice of his banished brother,
|
|
earned only by his own dissipated course of life, and that
|
|
brother's integrity, was confirming her most unfavourable
|
|
opinion of his head and heart.
|
|
|
|
They had scarcely been two minutes by themselves,
|
|
before he began to speak of Edward; for he, too, had heard
|
|
of the living, and was very inquisitive on the subject.
|
|
Elinor repeated the particulars of it, as she had given them
|
|
to John; and their effect on Robert, though very different,
|
|
was not less striking than it had been on HIM. He laughed
|
|
most immoderately. The idea of Edward's being a clergyman,
|
|
and living in a small parsonage-house, diverted him
|
|
beyond measure;--and when to that was added the fanciful
|
|
imagery of Edward reading prayers in a white surplice,
|
|
and publishing the banns of marriage between John Smith and
|
|
Mary Brown, he could conceive nothing more ridiculous.
|
|
|
|
Elinor, while she waited in silence and immovable
|
|
gravity, the conclusion of such folly, could not restrain
|
|
her eyes from being fixed on him with a look that spoke
|
|
all the contempt it excited. It was a look, however,
|
|
very well bestowed, for it relieved her own feelings, and gave
|
|
no intelligence to him. He was recalled from wit to wisdom,
|
|
not by any reproof of her's, but by his own sensibility.
|
|
|
|
"We may treat it as a joke," said he, at last,
|
|
recovering from the affected laugh which had considerably
|
|
lengthened out the genuine gaiety of the moment--"but, upon
|
|
my soul, it is a most serious business. Poor Edward!
|
|
he is ruined for ever. I am extremely sorry for it--
|
|
for I know him to be a very good-hearted creature; as
|
|
well-meaning a fellow perhaps, as any in the world.
|
|
You must not judge of him, Miss Dashwood, from YOUR
|
|
slight acquaintance.--Poor Edward!--His manners are certainly
|
|
not the happiest in nature.--But we are not all born,
|
|
you know, with the same powers,--the same address.--
|
|
Poor fellow!--to see him in a circle of strangers!--
|
|
to be sure it was pitiable enough!--but upon my soul,
|
|
I believe he has as good a heart as any in the kingdom;
|
|
and I declare and protest to you I never was so shocked in my
|
|
life, as when it all burst forth. I could not believe it.--
|
|
My mother was the first person who told me of it;
|
|
and I, feeling myself called on to act with resolution,
|
|
immediately said to her, 'My dear madam, I do not know
|
|
what you may intend to do on the occasion, but as for myself,
|
|
I must say, that if Edward does marry this young woman,
|
|
I never will see him again.' That was what I said immediately.--
|
|
I was most uncommonly shocked, indeed!--Poor Edward!--he has
|
|
done for himself completely--shut himself out for ever from
|
|
all decent society!--but, as I directly said to my mother,
|
|
I am not in the least surprised at it; from his style
|
|
of education, it was always to be expected. My poor mother
|
|
was half frantic."
|
|
|
|
"Have you ever seen the lady?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes; once, while she was staying in this house,
|
|
I happened to drop in for ten minutes; and I saw
|
|
quite enough of her. The merest awkward country girl,
|
|
without style, or elegance, and almost without beauty.--
|
|
I remember her perfectly. Just the kind of girl I
|
|
should suppose likely to captivate poor Edward.
|
|
I offered immediately, as soon as my mother related
|
|
the affair to me, to talk to him myself, and dissuade
|
|
him from the match; but it was too late THEN, I found,
|
|
to do any thing, for unluckily, I was not in the way
|
|
at first, and knew nothing of it till after the breach
|
|
had taken place, when it was not for me, you know,
|
|
to interfere. But had I been informed of it a few
|
|
hours earlier--I think it is most probable--that something
|
|
might have been hit on. I certainly should have represented
|
|
it to Edward in a very strong light. 'My dear fellow,'
|
|
I should have said, 'consider what you are doing.
|
|
You are making a most disgraceful connection, and such a one
|
|
as your family are unanimous in disapproving.' I cannot
|
|
help thinking, in short, that means might have been found.
|
|
But now it is all too late. He must be starved, you know;--
|
|
that is certain; absolutely starved."
|
|
|
|
He had just settled this point with great composure,
|
|
when the entrance of Mrs. John Dashwood put an end to the subject.
|
|
But though SHE never spoke of it out of her own family,
|
|
Elinor could see its influence on her mind, in the something
|
|
like confusion of countenance with which she entered,
|
|
and an attempt at cordiality in her behaviour to herself.
|
|
She even proceeded so far as to be concerned to find
|
|
that Elinor and her sister were so soon to leave town,
|
|
as she had hoped to see more of them;--an exertion
|
|
in which her husband, who attended her into the room,
|
|
and hung enamoured over her accents, seemed to distinguish
|
|
every thing that was most affectionate and graceful.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 42
|
|
|
|
One other short call in Harley Street, in which Elinor
|
|
received her brother's congratulations on their travelling
|
|
so far towards Barton without any expense, and on Colonel
|
|
Brandon's being to follow them to Cleveland in a day or two,
|
|
completed the intercourse of the brother and sisters
|
|
in town;--and a faint invitation from Fanny, to come
|
|
to Norland whenever it should happen to be in their way,
|
|
which of all things was the most unlikely to occur,
|
|
with a more warm, though less public, assurance, from John
|
|
to Elinor, of the promptitude with which he should come
|
|
to see her at Delaford, was all that foretold any meeting
|
|
in the country.
|
|
|
|
It amused her to observe that all her friends seemed
|
|
determined to send her to Delaford;--a place, in which,
|
|
of all others, she would now least chuse to visit, or wish
|
|
to reside; for not only was it considered as her future
|
|
home by her brother and Mrs. Jennings, but even Lucy,
|
|
when they parted, gave her a pressing invitation to visit
|
|
her there.
|
|
|
|
Very early in April, and tolerably early in the day,
|
|
the two parties from Hanover Square and Berkeley Street set
|
|
out from their respective homes, to meet, by appointment,
|
|
on the road. For the convenience of Charlotte and her child,
|
|
they were to be more than two days on their journey,
|
|
and Mr. Palmer, travelling more expeditiously with
|
|
Colonel Brandon, was to join them at Cleveland soon after
|
|
their arrival.
|
|
|
|
Marianne, few as had been her hours of comfort
|
|
in London, and eager as she had long been to quit it,
|
|
could not, when it came to the point, bid adieu to
|
|
the house in which she had for the last time enjoyed
|
|
those hopes, and that confidence, in Willoughby,
|
|
which were now extinguished for ever, without great pain.
|
|
Nor could she leave the place in which Willoughby remained,
|
|
busy in new engagements, and new schemes, in which SHE
|
|
could have no share, without shedding many tears.
|
|
|
|
Elinor's satisfaction, at the moment of removal,
|
|
was more positive. She had no such object for her lingering
|
|
thoughts to fix on, she left no creature behind, from whom
|
|
it would give her a moment's regret to be divided for ever,
|
|
she was pleased to be free herself from the persecution
|
|
of Lucy's friendship, she was grateful for bringing
|
|
her sister away unseen by Willoughby since his marriage,
|
|
and she looked forward with hope to what a few months
|
|
of tranquility at Barton might do towards restoring
|
|
Marianne's peace of mind, and confirming her own.
|
|
|
|
Their journey was safely performed. The second
|
|
day brought them into the cherished, or the prohibited,
|
|
county of Somerset, for as such was it dwelt on by turns
|
|
in Marianne's imagination; and in the forenoon of the third
|
|
they drove up to Cleveland.
|
|
|
|
Cleveland was a spacious, modern-built house,
|
|
situated on a sloping lawn. It had no park, but the
|
|
pleasure-grounds were tolerably extensive; and like
|
|
every other place of the same degree of importance,
|
|
it had its open shrubbery, and closer wood walk,
|
|
a road of smooth gravel winding round a plantation,
|
|
led to the front, the lawn was dotted over with timber,
|
|
the house itself was under the guardianship of the fir,
|
|
the mountain-ash, and the acacia, and a thick screen of
|
|
them altogether, interspersed with tall Lombardy poplars,
|
|
shut out the offices.
|
|
|
|
Marianne entered the house with a heart swelling
|
|
with emotion from the consciousness of being only eighty
|
|
miles from Barton, and not thirty from Combe Magna;
|
|
and before she had been five minutes within its walls,
|
|
while the others were busily helping Charlotte to show
|
|
her child to the housekeeper, she quitted it again,
|
|
stealing away through the winding shrubberies, now just
|
|
beginning to be in beauty, to gain a distant eminence;
|
|
where, from its Grecian temple, her eye, wandering over
|
|
a wide tract of country to the south-east, could fondly
|
|
rest on the farthest ridge of hills in the horizon,
|
|
and fancy that from their summits Combe Magna might
|
|
be seen.
|
|
|
|
In such moments of precious, invaluable misery,
|
|
she rejoiced in tears of agony to be at Cleveland;
|
|
and as she returned by a different circuit to the house,
|
|
feeling all the happy privilege of country liberty,
|
|
of wandering from place to place in free and luxurious solitude,
|
|
she resolved to spend almost every hour of every day
|
|
while she remained with the Palmers, in the indulgence of
|
|
such solitary rambles.
|
|
|
|
She returned just in time to join the others
|
|
as they quitted the house, on an excursion through its
|
|
more immediate premises; and the rest of the morning was
|
|
easily whiled away, in lounging round the kitchen garden,
|
|
examining the bloom upon its walls, and listening to the
|
|
gardener's lamentations upon blights, in dawdling through
|
|
the green-house, where the loss of her favourite plants,
|
|
unwarily exposed, and nipped by the lingering frost,
|
|
raised the laughter of Charlotte,--and in visiting her
|
|
poultry-yard, where, in the disappointed hopes of her
|
|
dairy-maid, by hens forsaking their nests, or being
|
|
stolen by a fox, or in the rapid decrease of a promising
|
|
young brood, she found fresh sources of merriment.
|
|
|
|
The morning was fine and dry, and Marianne,
|
|
in her plan of employment abroad, had not calculated
|
|
for any change of weather during their stay at Cleveland.
|
|
With great surprise therefore, did she find herself prevented
|
|
by a settled rain from going out again after dinner.
|
|
She had depended on a twilight walk to the Grecian temple,
|
|
and perhaps all over the grounds, and an evening merely
|
|
cold or damp would not have deterred her from it;
|
|
but a heavy and settled rain even SHE could not fancy dry
|
|
or pleasant weather for walking.
|
|
|
|
Their party was small, and the hours passed quietly away.
|
|
Mrs. Palmer had her child, and Mrs. Jennings her carpet-work;
|
|
they talked of the friends they had left behind,
|
|
arranged Lady Middleton's engagements, and wondered
|
|
whether Mr. Palmer and Colonel Brandon would get farther
|
|
than Reading that night. Elinor, however little concerned
|
|
in it, joined in their discourse; and Marianne, who had
|
|
the knack of finding her way in every house to the library,
|
|
however it might be avoided by the family in general,
|
|
soon procured herself a book.
|
|
|
|
Nothing was wanting on Mrs. Palmer's side that constant
|
|
and friendly good humour could do, to make them feel
|
|
themselves welcome. The openness and heartiness of her
|
|
manner more than atoned for that want of recollection
|
|
and elegance which made her often deficient in the forms
|
|
of politeness; her kindness, recommended by so pretty
|
|
a face, was engaging; her folly, though evident
|
|
was not disgusting, because it was not conceited;
|
|
and Elinor could have forgiven every thing but her laugh.
|
|
|
|
The two gentlemen arrived the next day to a very
|
|
late dinner, affording a pleasant enlargement of the party,
|
|
and a very welcome variety to their conversation, which a
|
|
long morning of the same continued rain had reduced very low.
|
|
|
|
Elinor had seen so little of Mr. Palmer, and in that
|
|
little had seen so much variety in his address to her
|
|
sister and herself, that she knew not what to expect
|
|
to find him in his own family. She found him, however,
|
|
perfectly the gentleman in his behaviour to all his visitors,
|
|
and only occasionally rude to his wife and her mother;
|
|
she found him very capable of being a pleasant companion,
|
|
and only prevented from being so always, by too great
|
|
an aptitude to fancy himself as much superior to people
|
|
in general, as he must feel himself to be to Mrs. Jennings
|
|
and Charlotte. For the rest of his character and habits,
|
|
they were marked, as far as Elinor could perceive,
|
|
with no traits at all unusual in his sex and time of life.
|
|
He was nice in his eating, uncertain in his hours;
|
|
fond of his child, though affecting to slight it;
|
|
and idled away the mornings at billiards, which ought
|
|
to have been devoted to business. She liked him, however,
|
|
upon the whole, much better than she had expected, and in
|
|
her heart was not sorry that she could like him no more;--
|
|
not sorry to be driven by the observation of his Epicurism,
|
|
his selfishness, and his conceit, to rest with complacency
|
|
on the remembrance of Edward's generous temper, simple taste,
|
|
and diffident feelings.
|
|
|
|
Of Edward, or at least of some of his concerns,
|
|
she now received intelligence from Colonel Brandon,
|
|
who had been into Dorsetshire lately; and who,
|
|
treating her at once as the disinterested friend
|
|
of Mr. Ferrars, and the kind of confidant of himself,
|
|
talked to her a great deal of the parsonage at Delaford,
|
|
described its deficiencies, and told her what he meant
|
|
to do himself towards removing them.--His behaviour
|
|
to her in this, as well as in every other particular,
|
|
his open pleasure in meeting her after an absence
|
|
of only ten days, his readiness to converse with her,
|
|
and his deference for her opinion, might very well
|
|
justify Mrs. Jennings's persuasion of his attachment,
|
|
and would have been enough, perhaps, had not Elinor still,
|
|
as from the first, believed Marianne his real favourite,
|
|
to make her suspect it herself. But as it was,
|
|
such a notion had scarcely ever entered her head,
|
|
except by Mrs. Jennings's suggestion; and she could
|
|
not help believing herself the nicest observer of the
|
|
two;--she watched his eyes, while Mrs. Jennings thought
|
|
only of his behaviour;--and while his looks of anxious
|
|
solicitude on Marianne's feeling, in her head and throat,
|
|
the beginning of a heavy cold, because unexpressed by words,
|
|
entirely escaped the latter lady's observation;--SHE could
|
|
discover in them the quick feelings, and needless alarm
|
|
of a lover.
|
|
|
|
Two delighful twilight walks on the third and fourth
|
|
evenings of her being there, not merely on the dry gravel
|
|
of the shrubbery, but all over the grounds, and especially
|
|
in the most distant parts of them, where there was something
|
|
more of wildness than in the rest, where the trees were
|
|
the oldest, and the grass was the longest and wettest,
|
|
had--assisted by the still greater imprudence of sitting
|
|
in her wet shoes and stockings--given Marianne a cold
|
|
so violent as, though for a day or two trifled with
|
|
or denied, would force itself by increasing ailments on
|
|
the concern of every body, and the notice of herself.
|
|
Prescriptions poured in from all quarters, and as usual,
|
|
were all declined. Though heavy and feverish, with a pain
|
|
in her limbs, and a cough, and a sore throat, a good night's
|
|
rest was to cure her entirely; and it was with difficulty
|
|
that Elinor prevailed on her, when she went to bed,
|
|
to try one or two of the simplest of the remedies.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 43
|
|
|
|
Marianne got up the next morning at her usual time;
|
|
to every inquiry replied that she was better, and tried to
|
|
prove herself so, by engaging in her accustomary employments.
|
|
But a day spent in sitting shivering over the fire
|
|
with a book in her hand, which she was unable to read,
|
|
or in lying, weary and languid, on a sofa, did not speak
|
|
much in favour of her amendment; and when, at last,
|
|
she went early to bed, more and more indisposed, Colonel
|
|
Brandon was only astonished at her sister's composure,
|
|
who, though attending and nursing her the whole day,
|
|
against Marianne inclination, and forcing proper medicines
|
|
on her at night, trusted, like Marianne, to the certainty
|
|
and efficacy of sleep, and felt no real alarm.
|
|
|
|
A very restless and feverish night, however,
|
|
disappointed the expectation of both; and when Marianne,
|
|
after persisting in rising, confessed herself unable
|
|
to sit up, and returned voluntarily to her bed,
|
|
Elinor was very ready to adopt Mrs. Jennings's advice,
|
|
of sending for the Palmers' apothecary.
|
|
|
|
He came, examined his patient, and though encouraging
|
|
Miss Dashwood to expect that a very few days would restore
|
|
her sister to health, yet, by pronouncing her disorder
|
|
to have a putrid tendency, and allowing the word "infection"
|
|
to pass his lips, gave instant alarm to Mrs. Palmer,
|
|
on her baby's account. Mrs. Jennings, who had been inclined
|
|
from the first to think Marianne's complaint more serious
|
|
than Elinor, now looked very grave on Mr. Harris's report,
|
|
and confirming Charlotte's fears and caution, urged the
|
|
necessity of her immediate removal with her infant;
|
|
and Mr. Palmer, though treating their apprehensions as idle,
|
|
found the anxiety and importunity of his wife too great
|
|
to be withstood. Her departure, therefore, was fixed on;
|
|
and within an hour after Mr. Harris's arrival, she set off,
|
|
with her little boy and his nurse, for the house of a
|
|
near relation of Mr. Palmer's, who lived a few miles
|
|
on the other side of Bath; whither her husband promised,
|
|
at her earnest entreaty, to join her in a day or two;
|
|
and whither she was almost equally urgent with her
|
|
mother to accompany her. Mrs. Jennings, however, with a
|
|
kindness of heart which made Elinor really love her,
|
|
declared her resolution of not stirring from Cleveland
|
|
as long as Marianne remained ill, and of endeavouring,
|
|
by her own attentive care, to supply to her the place
|
|
of the mother she had taken her from; and Elinor found her
|
|
on every occasion a most willing and active helpmate,
|
|
desirous to share in all her fatigues, and often by her
|
|
better experience in nursing, of material use.
|
|
|
|
Poor Marianne, languid and low from the nature
|
|
of her malady, and feeling herself universally ill,
|
|
could no longer hope that tomorrow would find her recovered;
|
|
and the idea of what tomorrow would have produced,
|
|
but for this unlucky illness, made every ailment severe;
|
|
for on that day they were to have begun their journey home;
|
|
and, attended the whole way by a servant of Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
were to have taken their mother by surprise on the
|
|
following forenoon. The little she said was all in
|
|
lamentation of this inevitable delay; though Elinor tried
|
|
to raise her spirits, and make her believe, as she THEN
|
|
really believed herself, that it would be a very short one.
|
|
|
|
The next day produced little or no alteration in the
|
|
state of the patient; she certainly was not better, and,
|
|
except that there was no amendment, did not appear worse.
|
|
Their party was now farther reduced; for Mr. Palmer,
|
|
though very unwilling to go as well from real humanity
|
|
and good-nature, as from a dislike of appearing to be
|
|
frightened away by his wife, was persuaded at last
|
|
by Colonel Brandon to perform his promise of following her;
|
|
and while he was preparing to go, Colonel Brandon himself,
|
|
with a much greater exertion, began to talk of going
|
|
likewise.--Here, however, the kindness of Mrs. Jennings
|
|
interposed most acceptably; for to send the Colonel away
|
|
while his love was in so much uneasiness on her sister's
|
|
account, would be to deprive them both, she thought,
|
|
of every comfort; and therefore telling him at once
|
|
that his stay at Cleveland was necessary to herself,
|
|
that she should want him to play at piquet of an evening,
|
|
while Miss Dashwood was above with her sister, &c. she
|
|
urged him so strongly to remain, that he, who was gratifying
|
|
the first wish of his own heart by a compliance, could not
|
|
long even affect to demur; especially as Mrs. Jennings's
|
|
entreaty was warmly seconded by Mr. Palmer, who seemed
|
|
to feel a relief to himself, in leaving behind him a person
|
|
so well able to assist or advise Miss Dashwood in any emergence.
|
|
|
|
Marianne was, of course, kept in ignorance of all
|
|
these arrangements. She knew not that she had been
|
|
the means of sending the owners of Cleveland away,
|
|
in about seven days from the time of their arrival.
|
|
It gave her no surprise that she saw nothing of Mrs. Palmer;
|
|
and as it gave her likewise no concern, she never mentioned
|
|
her name.
|
|
|
|
Two days passed away from the time of Mr. Palmer's departure,
|
|
and her situation continued, with little variation,
|
|
the same. Mr. Harris, who attended her every day,
|
|
still talked boldly of a speedy recovery, and Miss Dashwood
|
|
was equally sanguine; but the expectation of the others
|
|
was by no means so cheerful. Mrs. Jennings had determined
|
|
very early in the seizure that Marianne would never
|
|
get over it, and Colonel Brandon, who was chiefly
|
|
of use in listening to Mrs. Jennings's forebodings,
|
|
was not in a state of mind to resist their influence.
|
|
He tried to reason himself out of fears, which the different
|
|
judgment of the apothecary seemed to render absurd;
|
|
but the many hours of each day in which he was left
|
|
entirely alone, were but too favourable for the admission
|
|
of every melancholy idea, and he could not expel from
|
|
his mind the persuasion that he should see Marianne no more.
|
|
|
|
On the morning of the third day however, the gloomy
|
|
anticipations of both were almost done away; for when
|
|
Mr. Harris arrived, he declared his patient materially better.
|
|
Her pulse was much stronger, and every symptom more favourable
|
|
than on the preceding visit. Elinor, confirmed in every
|
|
pleasant hope, was all cheerfulness; rejoicing that
|
|
in her letters to her mother, she had pursued her own
|
|
judgment rather than her friend's, in making very light
|
|
of the indisposition which delayed them at Cleveland;
|
|
and almost fixing on the time when Marianne would be able
|
|
to travel.
|
|
|
|
But the day did not close so auspiciously as it began.--
|
|
Towards the evening Marianne became ill again, growing
|
|
more heavy, restless, and uncomfortable than before.
|
|
Her sister, however, still sanguine, was willing to
|
|
attribute the change to nothing more than the fatigue
|
|
of having sat up to have her bed made; and carefully
|
|
administering the cordials prescribed, saw her, with
|
|
satisfaction, sink at last into a slumber, from which
|
|
she expected the most beneficial effects. Her sleep,
|
|
though not so quiet as Elinor wished to see it,
|
|
lasted a considerable time; and anxious to observe
|
|
the result of it herself, she resolved to sit with her
|
|
during the whole of it. Mrs. Jennings, knowing nothing
|
|
of any change in the patient, went unusually early to bed;
|
|
her maid, who was one of the principal nurses, was recreating
|
|
herself in the housekeeper's room, and Elinor remained
|
|
alone with Marianne.
|
|
|
|
The repose of the latter became more and more disturbed;
|
|
and her sister, who watched, with unremitting attention
|
|
her continual change of posture, and heard the frequent
|
|
but inarticulate sounds of complaint which passed her lips,
|
|
was almost wishing to rouse her from so painful a slumber,
|
|
when Marianne, suddenly awakened by some accidental noise
|
|
in the house, started hastily up, and, with feverish wildness,
|
|
cried out,--
|
|
|
|
"Is mama coming?--"
|
|
|
|
"Not yet," cried the other, concealing her terror,
|
|
and assisting Marianne to lie down again, "but she will
|
|
be here, I hope, before it is long. It is a great way,
|
|
you know, from hence to Barton."
|
|
|
|
"But she must not go round by London," cried Marianne,
|
|
in the same hurried manner. "I shall never see her,
|
|
if she goes by London."
|
|
|
|
Elinor perceived with alarm that she was not
|
|
quite herself, and, while attempting to soothe her,
|
|
eagerly felt her pulse. It was lower and quicker than ever!
|
|
and Marianne, still talking wildly of mama, her alarm
|
|
increased so rapidly, as to determine her on sending
|
|
instantly for Mr. Harris, and despatching a messenger
|
|
to Barton for her mother. To consult with Colonel Brandon
|
|
on the best means of effecting the latter, was a thought
|
|
which immediately followed the resolution of its performance;
|
|
and as soon she had rung up the maid to take her place
|
|
by her sister, she hastened down to the drawing-room,
|
|
where she knew he was generally to be found at a much
|
|
later hour than the present.
|
|
|
|
It was no time for hesitation. Her fears and her
|
|
difficulties were immediately before him. Her fears,
|
|
he had no courage, no confidence to attempt the removal of:--
|
|
he listened to them in silent despondence;--but her
|
|
difficulties were instantly obviated, for with a readiness
|
|
that seemed to speak the occasion, and the service
|
|
pre-arranged in his mind, he offered himself as the
|
|
messenger who should fetch Mrs. Dashwood. Elinor made no
|
|
resistance that was not easily overcome. She thanked him
|
|
with brief, though fervent gratitude, and while he went
|
|
to hurry off his servant with a message to Mr. Harris, and
|
|
an order for post-horses directly, she wrote a few lines
|
|
to her mother.
|
|
|
|
The comfort of such a friend at that moment as Colonel
|
|
Brandon--or such a companion for her mother,--how gratefully
|
|
was it felt!--a companion whose judgment would guide,
|
|
whose attendance must relieve, and whose friendship might
|
|
soothe her!--as far as the shock of such a summons COULD
|
|
be lessened to her, his presence, his manners, his assistance,
|
|
would lessen it.
|
|
|
|
HE, meanwhile, whatever he might feel, acted with all
|
|
the firmness of a collected mind, made every necessary
|
|
arrangement with the utmost despatch, and calculated
|
|
with exactness the time in which she might look for
|
|
his return. Not a moment was lost in delay of any kind.
|
|
The horses arrived, even before they were expected,
|
|
and Colonel Brandon only pressing her hand with a look
|
|
of solemnity, and a few words spoken too low to reach her ear,
|
|
hurried into the carriage. It was then about twelve
|
|
o'clock, and she returned to her sister's apartment to wait
|
|
for the arrival of the apothecary, and to watch by her
|
|
the rest of the night. It was a night of almost equal
|
|
suffering to both. Hour after hour passed away in sleepless
|
|
pain and delirium on Marianne's side, and in the most
|
|
cruel anxiety on Elinor's, before Mr. Harris appeared.
|
|
Her apprehensions once raised, paid by their excess for all
|
|
her former security; and the servant who sat up with her,
|
|
for she would not allow Mrs. Jennings to be called,
|
|
only tortured her more, by hints of what her mistress
|
|
had always thought.
|
|
|
|
Marianne's ideas were still, at intervals,
|
|
fixed incoherently on her mother, and whenever she
|
|
mentioned her name, it gave a pang to the heart of
|
|
poor Elinor, who, reproaching herself for having trifled
|
|
with so many days of illness, and wretched for some
|
|
immediate relief, fancied that all relief might soon
|
|
be in vain, that every thing had been delayed too long,
|
|
and pictured to herself her suffering mother arriving
|
|
too late to see this darling child, or to see her rational.
|
|
|
|
She was on the point of sending again for Mr. Harris,
|
|
or if HE could not come, for some other advice,
|
|
when the former--but not till after five o'clock--arrived.
|
|
His opinion, however, made some little amends for his delay,
|
|
for though acknowledging a very unexpected and unpleasant
|
|
alteration in his patient, he would not allow the danger
|
|
to be material, and talked of the relief which a fresh
|
|
mode of treatment must procure, with a confidence which,
|
|
in a lesser degree, was communicated to Elinor. He promised
|
|
to call again in the course of three or four hours,
|
|
and left both the patient and her anxious attendant more
|
|
composed than he had found them.
|
|
|
|
With strong concern, and with many reproaches for not
|
|
being called to their aid, did Mrs. Jennings hear in the
|
|
morning of what had passed. Her former apprehensions,
|
|
now with greater reason restored, left her no doubt of
|
|
the event; and though trying to speak comfort to Elinor,
|
|
her conviction of her sister's danger would not allow her
|
|
to offer the comfort of hope. Her heart was really grieved.
|
|
The rapid decay, the early death of a girl so young,
|
|
so lovely as Marianne, must have struck a less interested
|
|
person with concern. On Mrs. Jennings's compassion
|
|
she had other claims. She had been for three months
|
|
her companion, was still under her care, and she was
|
|
known to have been greatly injured, and long unhappy.
|
|
The distress of her sister too, particularly a favourite,
|
|
was before her;--and as for their mother, when Mrs. Jennings
|
|
considered that Marianne might probably be to HER what
|
|
Charlotte was to herself, her sympathy in HER sufferings
|
|
was very sincere.
|
|
|
|
Mr. Harris was punctual in his second visit;--
|
|
but he came to be disappointed in his hopes of what the
|
|
last would produce. His medicines had failed;--the fever
|
|
was unabated; and Marianne only more quiet--not more
|
|
herself--remained in a heavy stupor. Elinor, catching all,
|
|
and more than all, his fears in a moment, proposed to call
|
|
in further advice. But he judged it unnecessary: he had
|
|
still something more to try, some more fresh application,
|
|
of whose success he was as confident as the last, and his
|
|
visit concluded with encouraging assurances which reached
|
|
the ear, but could not enter the heart of Miss Dashwood.
|
|
She was calm, except when she thought of her mother;
|
|
but she was almost hopeless; and in this state she continued
|
|
till noon, scarcely stirring from her sister's bed,
|
|
her thoughts wandering from one image of grief,
|
|
one suffering friend to another, and her spirits oppressed
|
|
to the utmost by the conversation of Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
who scrupled not to attribute the severity and danger
|
|
of this attack to the many weeks of previous indisposition
|
|
which Marianne's disappointment had brought on.
|
|
Elinor felt all the reasonableness of the idea, and it
|
|
gave fresh misery to her reflections.
|
|
|
|
About noon, however, she began--but with a caution--a
|
|
dread of disappointment which for some time kept her silent,
|
|
even to her friend--to fancy, to hope she could perceive
|
|
a slight amendment in her sister's pulse;--she waited,
|
|
watched, and examined it again and again;--and at last,
|
|
with an agitation more difficult to bury under exterior calmness,
|
|
than all her foregoing distress, ventured to communicate
|
|
her hopes. Mrs. Jennings, though forced, on examination,
|
|
to acknowledge a temporary revival, tried to keep her
|
|
young friend from indulging a thought of its continuance;--
|
|
and Elinor, conning over every injunction of distrust,
|
|
told herself likewise not to hope. But it was too late.
|
|
Hope had already entered; and feeling all its anxious flutter,
|
|
she bent over her sister to watch--she hardly knew for what.
|
|
Half an hour passed away, and the favourable symptom
|
|
yet blessed her. Others even arose to confirm it.
|
|
Her breath, her skin, her lips, all flattered Elinor
|
|
with signs of amendment; and Marianne fixed her eyes on
|
|
her with a rational, though languid, gaze. Anxiety and
|
|
hope now oppressed her in equal degrees, and left her no
|
|
moment of tranquillity till the arrival of Mr. Harris at
|
|
four o'clock;--when his assurances, his felicitations on
|
|
a recovery in her sister even surpassing his expectation,
|
|
gave her confidence, comfort, and tears of joy.
|
|
|
|
Marianne was in every respect materially better,
|
|
and he declared her entirely out of danger. Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
perhaps satisfied with the partial justification of her
|
|
forebodings which had been found in their late alarm,
|
|
allowed herself to trust in his judgment, and admitted,
|
|
with unfeigned joy, and soon with unequivocal cheerfulness,
|
|
the probability of an entire recovery.
|
|
|
|
Elinor could not be cheerful. Her joy was of a
|
|
different kind, and led to any thing rather than to gaiety.
|
|
Marianne restored to life, health, friends, and to her
|
|
doting mother, was an idea to fill her heart with sensations
|
|
of exquisite comfort, and expand it in fervent gratitude;--
|
|
but it lead to no outward demonstrations of joy, no words,
|
|
no smiles. All within Elinor's breast was satisfaction,
|
|
silent and strong.
|
|
|
|
She continued by the side of her sister, with little
|
|
intermission the whole afternoon, calming every fear,
|
|
satisfying every inquiry of her enfeebled spirits,
|
|
supplying every succour, and watching almost every look and
|
|
every breath. The possibility of a relapse would of course,
|
|
in some moments, occur to remind her of what anxiety was--
|
|
but when she saw, on her frequent and minute examination,
|
|
that every symptom of recovery continued, and saw Marianne
|
|
at six o'clock sink into a quiet, steady, and to all
|
|
appearance comfortable, sleep, she silenced every doubt.
|
|
|
|
The time was now drawing on, when Colonel Brandon
|
|
might be expected back. At ten o'clock, she trusted,
|
|
or at least not much later her mother would be relieved
|
|
from the dreadful suspense in which she must now be
|
|
travelling towards them. The Colonel, too!--perhaps scarcely
|
|
less an object of pity!--Oh!--how slow was the progress
|
|
of time which yet kept them in ignorance!
|
|
|
|
At seven o'clock, leaving Marianne still sweetly asleep,
|
|
she joined Mrs. Jennings in the drawing-room to tea.
|
|
Of breakfast she had been kept by her fears, and of
|
|
dinner by their sudden reverse, from eating much;--
|
|
and the present refreshment, therefore, with such feelings
|
|
of content as she brought to it, was particularly welcome.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings would have persuaded her, at its conclusion,
|
|
to take some rest before her mother's arrival, and allow HER to
|
|
take her place by Marianne; but Elinor had no sense of fatigue,
|
|
no capability of sleep at that moment about her, and she was
|
|
not to be kept away from her sister an unnecessary instant.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings therefore attending her up stairs into the
|
|
sick chamber, to satisfy herself that all continued right,
|
|
left her there again to her charge and her thoughts,
|
|
and retired to her own room to write letters and sleep.
|
|
|
|
The night was cold and stormy. The wind roared
|
|
round the house, and the rain beat against the windows;
|
|
but Elinor, all happiness within, regarded it not.
|
|
Marianne slept through every blast; and the travellers--
|
|
they had a rich reward in store, for every present inconvenience.
|
|
|
|
The clock struck eight. Had it been ten,
|
|
Elinor would have been convinced that at that moment
|
|
she heard a carriage driving up to the house;
|
|
and so strong was the persuasion that she DID, in spite
|
|
of the ALMOST impossibility of their being already come,
|
|
that she moved into the adjoining dressing-closet and
|
|
opened a window shutter, to be satisfied of the truth.
|
|
She instantly saw that her ears had not deceived her.
|
|
The flaring lamps of a carriage were immediately in view.
|
|
By their uncertain light she thought she could discern it
|
|
to be drawn by four horses; and this, while it told the
|
|
excess of her poor mother's alarm, gave some explanation
|
|
to such unexpected rapidity.
|
|
|
|
Never in her life had Elinor found it so difficult
|
|
to be calm, as at that moment. The knowledge of what her
|
|
mother must be feeling as the carriage stopt at the door--
|
|
of her doubt--her dread--perhaps her despair!--and
|
|
of what SHE had to tell!--with such knowledge it was
|
|
impossible to be calm. All that remained to be done
|
|
was to be speedy; and, therefore staying only till
|
|
she could leave Mrs. Jennings's maid with her sister,
|
|
she hurried down stairs.
|
|
|
|
The bustle in the vestibule, as she passed along
|
|
an inner lobby, assured her that they were already
|
|
in the house. She rushed to the drawing-room,--she
|
|
entered it,--and saw only Willoughby.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 44
|
|
|
|
Elinor, starting back with a look of horror at
|
|
the sight of him, obeyed the first impulse of her heart
|
|
in turning instantly to quit the room, and her hand
|
|
was already on the lock, when its action was suspended
|
|
by his hastily advancing, and saying, in a voice rather
|
|
of command than supplication,
|
|
|
|
"Miss Dashwood, for half an hour--for ten minutes--
|
|
I entreat you to stay."
|
|
|
|
"No, sir," she replied with firmness, "I shall NOT stay.
|
|
Your business cannot be with ME. The servants, I suppose,
|
|
forgot to tell you that Mr. Palmer was not in the house."
|
|
|
|
"Had they told me," he cried with vehemence,
|
|
"that Mr. Palmer and all his relations were at the devil,
|
|
it would not have turned me from the door. My business
|
|
is with you, and only you."
|
|
|
|
"With me!"--in the utmost amazement--"well, sir,--
|
|
be quick--and if you can--less violent."
|
|
|
|
"Sit down, and I will be both."
|
|
|
|
She hesitated; she knew not what to do. The possibility
|
|
of Colonel Brandon's arriving and finding her there,
|
|
came across her. But she had promised to hear him,
|
|
and her curiosity no less than her honor was engaged.
|
|
After a moment's recollection, therefore, concluding that
|
|
prudence required dispatch, and that her acquiescence would
|
|
best promote it, she walked silently towards the table,
|
|
and sat down. He took the opposite chair, and for half
|
|
a minute not a word was said by either.
|
|
|
|
"Pray be quick, sir,"--said Elinor, impatiently;--
|
|
"I have no time to spare."
|
|
|
|
He was sitting in an attitude of deep meditation,
|
|
and seemed not to hear her.
|
|
|
|
"Your sister," said he, with abruptness, a moment
|
|
afterwards--"is out of danger. I heard it from the servant.
|
|
God be praised!--But is it true? is it really true?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor would not speak. He repeated the inquiry
|
|
with yet greater eagerness.
|
|
|
|
"For God's sake tell me, is she out of danger,
|
|
or is she not?"
|
|
|
|
"We hope she is."
|
|
|
|
He rose up, and walked across the room.
|
|
|
|
"Had I known as much half an hour ago--But
|
|
since I AM here,"--speaking with a forced vivacity as he
|
|
returned to his seat--"what does it signify?--For once,
|
|
Miss Dashwood--it will be the last time, perhaps--let us
|
|
be cheerful together.--I am in a fine mood for gaiety.--
|
|
Tell me honestly"--a deeper glow overspreading his cheeks--
|
|
"do you think me most a knave or a fool?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor looked at him with greater astonishment than ever.
|
|
She began to think that be must be in liquor;--the
|
|
strangeness of such a visit, and of such manners,
|
|
seemed no otherwise intelligible; and with this impression
|
|
she immediately rose, saying,
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Willoughby, I advise you at present to return
|
|
to Combe--I am not at leisure to remain with you longer.--
|
|
Whatever your business may be with me, will it be better
|
|
recollected and explained to-morrow."
|
|
|
|
"I understand you," he replied, with an expressive smile,
|
|
and a voice perfectly calm; "yes, I am very drunk.--
|
|
A pint of porter with my cold beef at Marlborough was
|
|
enough to over-set me."
|
|
|
|
"At Marlborough!"--cried Elinor, more and more at
|
|
a loss to understand what he would be at.
|
|
|
|
"Yes,--I left London this morning at eight o'clock,
|
|
and the only ten minutes I have spent out of my chaise
|
|
since that time procured me a nuncheon at Marlborough."
|
|
|
|
The steadiness of his manner, and the intelligence
|
|
of his eye as he spoke, convincing Elinor, that whatever
|
|
other unpardonable folly might bring him to Cleveland,
|
|
he was not brought there by intoxication, she said,
|
|
after a moment's recollection,
|
|
|
|
"Mr. Willoughby, you OUGHT to feel, and I certainly
|
|
DO--that after what has passed--your coming here in
|
|
this manner, and forcing yourself upon my notice,
|
|
requires a very particular excuse.--What is it,
|
|
that you mean by it?"--
|
|
|
|
"I mean,"--said he, with serious energy--"if I can,
|
|
to make you hate me one degree less than you do NOW.
|
|
I mean to offer some kind of explanation, some kind
|
|
of apology, for the past; to open my whole heart to you,
|
|
and by convincing you, that though I have been always
|
|
a blockhead, I have not been always a rascal, to obtain
|
|
something like forgiveness from Ma--from your sister."
|
|
|
|
"Is this the real reason of your coming?"
|
|
|
|
"Upon my soul it is,"--was his answer, with a warmth
|
|
which brought all the former Willoughby to her remembrance,
|
|
and in spite of herself made her think him sincere.
|
|
|
|
"If that is all, you may be satisfied already,--
|
|
for Marianne DOES--she has LONG forgiven you."
|
|
|
|
"Has she?"--he cried, in the same eager tone.--
|
|
"Then she has forgiven me before she ought to have done it.
|
|
But she shall forgive me again, and on more reasonable
|
|
grounds.--NOW will you listen to me?"
|
|
|
|
Elinor bowed her assent.
|
|
|
|
"I do not know," said he, after a pause of expectation
|
|
on her side, and thoughtfulness on his own,--"how YOU
|
|
may have accounted for my behaviour to your sister,
|
|
or what diabolical motive you may have imputed to me.--
|
|
Perhaps you will hardly think the better of me,--it is
|
|
worth the trial however, and you shall hear every thing.
|
|
When I first became intimate in your family, I had no
|
|
other intention, no other view in the acquaintance
|
|
than to pass my time pleasantly while I was obliged to remain
|
|
in Devonshire, more pleasantly than I had ever done before.
|
|
Your sister's lovely person and interesting manners
|
|
could not but please me; and her behaviour to me almost
|
|
from the first, was of a kind--It is astonishing,
|
|
when I reflect on what it was, and what SHE was, that my
|
|
heart should have been so insensible! But at first
|
|
I must confess, my vanity only was elevated by it.
|
|
Careless of her happiness, thinking only of my own amusement,
|
|
giving way to feelings which I had always been too much
|
|
in the habit of indulging, I endeavoured, by every means
|
|
in my power, to make myself pleasing to her, without any
|
|
design of returning her affection."
|
|
|
|
Miss Dashwood, at this point, turning her eyes on him
|
|
with the most angry contempt, stopped him, by saying,
|
|
|
|
"It is hardly worth while, Mr. Willoughby,
|
|
for you to relate, or for me to listen any longer.
|
|
Such a beginning as this cannot be followed by any thing.--
|
|
Do not let me be pained by hearing any thing more on
|
|
the subject."
|
|
|
|
"I insist on you hearing the whole of it," he replied,
|
|
"My fortune was never large, and I had always been expensive,
|
|
always in the habit of associating with people of better
|
|
income than myself. Every year since my coming of age,
|
|
or even before, I believe, had added to my debts; and though
|
|
the death of my old cousin, Mrs. Smith, was to set me free;
|
|
yet that event being uncertain, and possibly far distant,
|
|
it had been for some time my intention to re-establish my
|
|
circumstances by marrying a woman of fortune. To attach
|
|
myself to your sister, therefore, was not a thing to be
|
|
thought of;--and with a meanness, selfishness, cruelty--
|
|
which no indignant, no contemptuous look, even of yours,
|
|
Miss Dashwood, can ever reprobate too much--I was acting
|
|
in this manner, trying to engage her regard, without a
|
|
thought of returning it.--But one thing may be said
|
|
for me: even in that horrid state of selfish vanity,
|
|
I did not know the extent of the injury I meditated,
|
|
because I did not THEN know what it was to love.
|
|
But have I ever known it?--Well may it be doubted; for, had I
|
|
really loved, could I have sacrificed my feelings to vanity,
|
|
to avarice?--or, what is more, could I have sacrificed hers?--
|
|
But I have done it. To avoid a comparative poverty,
|
|
which her affection and her society would have deprived
|
|
of all its horrors, I have, by raising myself to affluence,
|
|
lost every thing that could make it a blessing."
|
|
|
|
"You did then," said Elinor, a little softened,
|
|
"believe yourself at one time attached to her?"
|
|
|
|
"To have resisted such attractions, to have withstood
|
|
such tenderness!--Is there a man on earth who could have
|
|
done it?--Yes, I found myself, by insensible degrees,
|
|
sincerely fond of her; and the happiest hours of my life
|
|
were what I spent with her when I felt my intentions
|
|
were strictly honourable, and my feelings blameless.
|
|
Even THEN, however, when fully determined on paying
|
|
my addresses to her, I allowed myself most improperly
|
|
to put off, from day to day, the moment of doing it,
|
|
from an unwillingness to enter into an engagement
|
|
while my circumstances were so greatly embarrassed.
|
|
I will not reason here--nor will I stop for YOU to expatiate
|
|
on the absurdity, and the worse than absurdity, of scrupling
|
|
to engage my faith where my honour was already bound.
|
|
The event has proved, that I was a cunning fool,
|
|
providing with great circumspection for a possible
|
|
opportunity of making myself contemptible and wretched
|
|
for ever. At last, however, my resolution was taken,
|
|
and I had determined, as soon as I could engage her alone,
|
|
to justify the attentions I had so invariably paid her,
|
|
and openly assure her of an affection which I had already
|
|
taken such pains to display. But in the interim--in the
|
|
interim of the very few hours that were to pass, before I
|
|
could have an opportunity of speaking with her in private--
|
|
a circumstance occurred--an unlucky circumstance, to ruin
|
|
all my resolution, and with it all my comfort. A discovery
|
|
took place,"--here he hesitated and looked down.--"Mrs. Smith
|
|
had somehow or other been informed, I imagine by some
|
|
distant relation, whose interest it was to deprive me of
|
|
her favour, of an affair, a connection--but I need not
|
|
explain myself farther," he added, looking at her with an
|
|
heightened colour and an enquiring eye--"your particular
|
|
intimacy--you have probably heard the whole story long ago."
|
|
|
|
"I have," returned Elinor, colouring likewise,
|
|
and hardening her heart anew against any compassion for him,
|
|
"I have heard it all. And how you will explain away any
|
|
part of your guilt in that dreadful business, I confess
|
|
is beyond my comprehension."
|
|
|
|
"Remember," cried Willoughby, "from whom you received
|
|
the account. Could it be an impartial one? I acknowledge
|
|
that her situation and her character ought to have been
|
|
respected by me. I do not mean to justify myself, but at
|
|
the same time cannot leave you to suppose that I have nothing
|
|
to urge--that because she was injured she was irreproachable,
|
|
and because I was a libertine, SHE must be a saint.
|
|
If the violence of her passions, the weakness of her
|
|
understanding--I do not mean, however, to defend myself.
|
|
Her affection for me deserved better treatment, and I often,
|
|
with great self-reproach, recall the tenderness which,
|
|
for a very short time, had the power of creating any return.
|
|
I wish--I heartily wish it had never been. But I have injured
|
|
more than herself; and I have injured one, whose affection
|
|
for me--(may I say it?) was scarcely less warm than hers;
|
|
and whose mind--Oh! how infinitely superior!"--
|
|
|
|
"Your indifference, however, towards that unfortunate
|
|
girl--I must say it, unpleasant to me as the discussion
|
|
of such a subject may well be--your indifference is no
|
|
apology for your cruel neglect of her. Do not think yourself
|
|
excused by any weakness, any natural defect of understanding
|
|
on her side, in the wanton cruelty so evident on yours.
|
|
You must have known, that while you were enjoying yourself
|
|
in Devonshire pursuing fresh schemes, always gay,
|
|
always happy, she was reduced to the extremest indigence."
|
|
|
|
"But, upon my soul, I did NOT know it," he warmly
|
|
replied; "I did not recollect that I had omitted to give
|
|
her my direction; and common sense might have told her
|
|
how to find it out."
|
|
|
|
"Well, sir, and what said Mrs. Smith?"
|
|
|
|
"She taxed me with the offence at once, and my confusion
|
|
may be guessed. The purity of her life, the formality
|
|
of her notions, her ignorance of the world--every thing
|
|
was against me. The matter itself I could not deny,
|
|
and vain was every endeavour to soften it. She was
|
|
previously disposed, I believe, to doubt the morality of my
|
|
conduct in general, and was moreover discontented with
|
|
the very little attention, the very little portion of my
|
|
time that I had bestowed on her, in my present visit.
|
|
In short, it ended in a total breach. By one measure I
|
|
might have saved myself. In the height of her morality,
|
|
good woman! she offered to forgive the past, if I would
|
|
marry Eliza. That could not be--and I was formally
|
|
dismissed from her favour and her house. The night
|
|
following this affair--I was to go the next morning--
|
|
was spent by me in deliberating on what my future conduct
|
|
should be. The struggle was great--but it ended too soon.
|
|
My affection for Marianne, my thorough conviction of her
|
|
attachment to me--it was all insufficient to outweigh
|
|
that dread of poverty, or get the better of those false
|
|
ideas of the necessity of riches, which I was naturally
|
|
inclined to feel, and expensive society had increased.
|
|
I had reason to believe myself secure of my present wife,
|
|
if I chose to address her, and I persuaded myself to think
|
|
that nothing else in common prudence remained for me to do.
|
|
A heavy scene however awaited me, before I could leave
|
|
Devonshire;--I was engaged to dine with you on that very day;
|
|
some apology was therefore necessary for my breaking
|
|
this engagement. But whether I should write this apology,
|
|
or deliver it in person, was a point of long debate.
|
|
To see Marianne, I felt, would be dreadful, and I even doubted
|
|
whether I could see her again, and keep to my resolution.
|
|
In that point, however, I undervalued my own magnanimity,
|
|
as the event declared; for I went, I saw her, and saw
|
|
her miserable, and left her miserable--and left her hoping
|
|
never to see her again."
|
|
|
|
"Why did you call, Mr. Willoughby?" said Elinor,
|
|
reproachfully; "a note would have answered every purpose.--
|
|
Why was it necessary to call?"
|
|
|
|
"It was necessary to my own pride. I could not bear
|
|
to leave the country in a manner that might lead you,
|
|
or the rest of the neighbourhood, to suspect any part
|
|
of what had really passed between Mrs. Smith and myself--
|
|
and I resolved therefore on calling at the cottage,
|
|
in my way to Honiton. The sight of your dear sister,
|
|
however, was really dreadful; and, to heighten the matter,
|
|
I found her alone. You were all gone I do not know where.
|
|
I had left her only the evening before, so fully,
|
|
so firmly resolved within my self on doing right!
|
|
A few hours were to have engaged her to me for ever;
|
|
and I remember how happy, how gay were my spirits, as I
|
|
walked from the cottage to Allenham, satisfied with myself,
|
|
delighted with every body! But in this, our last interview
|
|
of friendship, I approached her with a sense of guilt
|
|
that almost took from me the power of dissembling.
|
|
Her sorrow, her disappointment, her deep regret, when I told
|
|
her that I was obliged to leave Devonshire so immediately--I
|
|
never shall forget it--united too with such reliance,
|
|
such confidence in me!--Oh, God!--what a hard-hearted rascal
|
|
I was!"
|
|
|
|
They were both silent for a few moments.
|
|
Elinor first spoke.
|
|
|
|
"Did you tell her that you should soon return?"
|
|
|
|
"I do not know what I told her," he replied, impatiently;
|
|
"less than was due to the past, beyond a doubt, and in all
|
|
likelihood much more than was justified by the future.
|
|
I cannot think of it.--It won't do.--Then came your dear mother
|
|
to torture me farther, with all her kindness and confidence.
|
|
Thank Heaven! it DID torture me. I was miserable.
|
|
Miss Dashwood, you cannot have an idea of the comfort it
|
|
gives me to look back on my own misery. I owe such a grudge
|
|
to myself for the stupid, rascally folly of my own heart,
|
|
that all my past sufferings under it are only triumph and
|
|
exultation to me now. Well, I went, left all that I loved,
|
|
and went to those to whom, at best, I was only indifferent.
|
|
My journey to town--travelling with my own horses,
|
|
and therefore so tediously--no creature to speak to--my
|
|
own reflections so cheerful--when I looked forward
|
|
every thing so inviting!--when I looked back at Barton,
|
|
the picture so soothing!--oh, it was a blessed journey!"
|
|
|
|
He stopped.
|
|
|
|
"Well, sir," said Elinor, who, though pitying him,
|
|
grew impatient for his departure, "and this is all?"
|
|
|
|
"Ah!--no,--have you forgot what passed in town?--
|
|
That infamous letter--Did she shew it you?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, I saw every note that passed."
|
|
|
|
"When the first of hers reached me (as it immediately did,
|
|
for I was in town the whole time,) what I felt is--
|
|
in the common phrase, not to be expressed; in a more
|
|
simple one--perhaps too simple to raise any emotion--
|
|
my feelings were very, very painful.--Every line, every word
|
|
was--in the hackneyed metaphor which their dear writer,
|
|
were she here, would forbid--a dagger to my heart.
|
|
To know that Marianne was in town was--in the same language--
|
|
a thunderbolt.--Thunderbolts and daggers!--what a reproof
|
|
would she have given me!--her taste, her opinions--I believe
|
|
they are better known to me than my own,--and I am sure
|
|
they are dearer."
|
|
|
|
Elinor's heart, which had undergone many changes
|
|
in the course of this extraordinary conversation,
|
|
was now softened again;--yet she felt it her duty to check
|
|
such ideas in her companion as the last.
|
|
|
|
"This is not right, Mr. Willoughby.--Remember that
|
|
you are married. Relate only what in your conscience
|
|
you think necessary for me to hear."
|
|
|
|
"Marianne's note, by assuring me that I was still
|
|
as dear to her as in former days, that in spite of the many,
|
|
many weeks we had been separated, she was as constant
|
|
in her own feelings, and as full of faith in the constancy
|
|
of mine as ever, awakened all my remorse. I say awakened,
|
|
because time and London, business and dissipation,
|
|
had in some measure quieted it, and I had been growing
|
|
a fine hardened villain, fancying myself indifferent to her,
|
|
and chusing to fancy that she too must have become
|
|
indifferent to me; talking to myself of our past attachment
|
|
as a mere idle, trifling business, shrugging up my shoulders
|
|
in proof of its being so, and silencing every reproach,
|
|
overcoming every scruple, by secretly saying now and then,
|
|
'I shall be heartily glad to hear she is well married.'--
|
|
But this note made me know myself better. I felt that
|
|
she was infinitely dearer to me than any other woman
|
|
in the world, and that I was using her infamously.
|
|
But every thing was then just settled between Miss Grey
|
|
and me. To retreat was impossible. All that I had to do,
|
|
was to avoid you both. I sent no answer to Marianne,
|
|
intending by that to preserve myself from her farther notice;
|
|
and for some time I was even determined not to call in
|
|
Berkeley Street;--but at last, judging it wiser to affect
|
|
the air of a cool, common acquaintance than anything else,
|
|
I watched you all safely out of the house one morning,
|
|
and left my name."
|
|
|
|
"Watched us out of the house!"
|
|
|
|
"Even so. You would be surprised to hear how often
|
|
I watched you, how often I was on the point of falling
|
|
in with you. I have entered many a shop to avoid your sight,
|
|
as the carriage drove by. Lodging as I did in Bond Street,
|
|
there was hardly a day in which I did not catch a glimpse
|
|
of one or other of you; and nothing but the most constant
|
|
watchfulness on my side, a most invariably prevailing
|
|
desire to keep out of your sight, could have separated us
|
|
so long. I avoided the Middletons as much as possible,
|
|
as well as everybody else who was likely to prove
|
|
an acquaintance in common. Not aware of their being
|
|
in town, however, I blundered on Sir John, I believe,
|
|
the first day of his coming, and the day after I had called
|
|
at Mrs. Jennings's. He asked me to a party, a dance at his
|
|
house in the evening.--Had he NOT told me as an inducement
|
|
that you and your sister were to be there, I should have
|
|
felt it too certain a thing, to trust myself near him.
|
|
The next morning brought another short note from Marianne--
|
|
still affectionate, open, artless, confiding--everything
|
|
that could make MY conduct most hateful. I could not
|
|
answer it. I tried--but could not frame a sentence.
|
|
But I thought of her, I believe, every moment of the day.
|
|
If you CAN pity me, Miss Dashwood, pity my situation as it
|
|
was THEN. With my head and heart full of your sister,
|
|
I was forced to play the happy lover to another woman!--Those
|
|
three or four weeks were worse than all. Well, at last,
|
|
as I need not tell you, you were forced on me; and what a
|
|
sweet figure I cut!--what an evening of agony it was!--
|
|
Marianne, beautiful as an angel on one side, calling me
|
|
Willoughby in such a tone!--Oh, God!--holding out her hand
|
|
to me, asking me for an explanation, with those bewitching
|
|
eyes fixed in such speaking solicitude on my face!--and
|
|
Sophia, jealous as the devil on the other hand, looking
|
|
all that was--Well, it does not signify; it is over now.--
|
|
Such an evening!--I ran away from you all as soon as I could;
|
|
but not before I had seen Marianne's sweet face as white
|
|
as death.--THAT was the last, last look I ever had of her;--
|
|
the last manner in which she appeared to me. It was a horrid
|
|
sight!--yet when I thought of her to-day as really dying,
|
|
it was a kind of comfort to me to imagine that I knew
|
|
exactly how she would appear to those, who saw her last
|
|
in this world. She was before me, constantly before me,
|
|
as I travelled, in the same look and hue."
|
|
|
|
A short pause of mutual thoughtfulness succeeded.
|
|
Willoughby first rousing himself, broke it thus:
|
|
|
|
"Well, let me make haste and be gone. Your sister
|
|
is certainly better, certainly out of danger?"
|
|
|
|
"We are assured of it."
|
|
|
|
"Your poor mother, too!--doting on Marianne."
|
|
|
|
"But the letter, Mr. Willoughby, your own letter;
|
|
have you any thing to say about that?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, yes, THAT in particular. Your sister
|
|
wrote to me again, you know, the very next morning.
|
|
You saw what she said. I was breakfasting at the
|
|
Ellisons,--and her letter, with some others, was brought
|
|
to me there from my lodgings. It happened to catch
|
|
Sophia's eye before it caught mine--and its size,
|
|
the elegance of the paper, the hand-writing altogether,
|
|
immediately gave her a suspicion. Some vague report had
|
|
reached her before of my attachment to some young lady
|
|
in Devonshire, and what had passed within her observation
|
|
the preceding evening had marked who the young lady was,
|
|
and made her more jealous than ever. Affecting that air
|
|
of playfulness, therefore, which is delightful in a woman
|
|
one loves, she opened the letter directly, and read
|
|
its contents. She was well paid for her impudence.
|
|
She read what made her wretched. Her wretchedness I could
|
|
have borne, but her passion--her malice--At all events it
|
|
must be appeased. And, in short--what do you think of my
|
|
wife's style of letter-writing?--delicate--tender--
|
|
truly feminine--was it not?"
|
|
|
|
"Your wife!--The letter was in your own hand-writing."
|
|
|
|
"Yes, but I had only the credit of servilely copying
|
|
such sentences as I was ashamed to put my name to.
|
|
The original was all her own--her own happy thoughts
|
|
and gentle diction. But what could I do!--we were engaged,
|
|
every thing in preparation, the day almost fixed--But I am
|
|
talking like a fool. Preparation!--day!--In honest words,
|
|
her money was necessary to me, and in a situation like
|
|
mine, any thing was to be done to prevent a rupture.
|
|
And after all, what did it signify to my character
|
|
in the opinion of Marianne and her friends, in what language
|
|
my answer was couched?--It must have been only to one end.
|
|
My business was to declare myself a scoundrel, and whether
|
|
I did it with a bow or a bluster was of little importance.--
|
|
'I am ruined for ever in their opinion--' said I to
|
|
myself--'I am shut out for ever from their society,
|
|
they already think me an unprincipled fellow, this letter
|
|
will only make them think me a blackguard one.' Such were
|
|
my reasonings, as, in a sort of desperate carelessness,
|
|
I copied my wife's words, and parted with the last relics
|
|
of Marianne. Her three notes--unluckily they were all
|
|
in my pocketbook, or I should have denied their existence,
|
|
and hoarded them for ever--I was forced to put them up,
|
|
and could not even kiss them. And the lock of hair--that too
|
|
I had always carried about me in the same pocket-book,
|
|
which was now searched by Madam with the most ingratiating
|
|
virulence,--the dear lock--all, every memento was torn
|
|
from me."
|
|
|
|
"You are very wrong, Mr. Willoughby, very blamable,"
|
|
said Elinor, while her voice, in spite of herself,
|
|
betrayed her compassionate emotion; "you ought not to speak
|
|
in this way, either of Mrs. Willoughby or my sister.
|
|
You had made your own choice. It was not forced on you.
|
|
Your wife has a claim to your politeness, to your respect,
|
|
at least. She must be attached to you, or she would not
|
|
have married you. To treat her with unkindness, to speak
|
|
of her slightingly is no atonement to Marianne--nor can I
|
|
suppose it a relief to your own conscience."
|
|
|
|
"Do not talk to me of my wife," said he with a heavy sigh.--
|
|
"She does not deserve your compassion.--She knew I had no
|
|
regard for her when we married.--Well, married we were,
|
|
and came down to Combe Magna to be happy, and afterwards
|
|
returned to town to be gay.--And now do you pity me,
|
|
Miss Dashwood?--or have I said all this to no purpose?--
|
|
Am I--be it only one degree--am I less guilty in your opinion
|
|
than I was before?--My intentions were not always wrong.
|
|
Have I explained away any part of my guilt?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, you have certainly removed something--a little.--
|
|
You have proved yourself, on the whole, less faulty than I
|
|
had believed you. You have proved your heart less wicked,
|
|
much less wicked. But I hardly know--the misery that
|
|
you have inflicted--I hardly know what could have made
|
|
it worse."
|
|
|
|
"Will you repeat to your sister when she is recovered,
|
|
what I have been telling you?--Let me be a little lightened
|
|
too in her opinion as well as in yours. You tell me that
|
|
she has forgiven me already. Let me be able to fancy that
|
|
a better knowledge of my heart, and of my present feelings,
|
|
will draw from her a more spontaneous, more natural, more
|
|
gentle, less dignified, forgiveness. Tell her of my misery
|
|
and my penitence--tell her that my heart was never inconstant
|
|
to her, and if you will, that at this moment she is dearer
|
|
to me than ever."
|
|
|
|
"I will tell her all that is necessary to what may
|
|
comparatively be called, your justification. But you have
|
|
not explained to me the particular reason of your coming now,
|
|
nor how you heard of her illness."
|
|
|
|
"Last night, in Drury Lane lobby, I ran against Sir
|
|
John Middleton, and when he saw who I was--for the first
|
|
time these two months--he spoke to me.--That he had cut
|
|
me ever since my marriage, I had seen without surprise
|
|
or resentment. Now, however, his good-natured, honest,
|
|
stupid soul, full of indignation against me, and concern
|
|
for your sister, could not resist the temptation of telling
|
|
me what he knew ought to--though probably he did not
|
|
think it WOULD--vex me horridly. As bluntly as he could
|
|
speak it, therefore, he told me that Marianne Dashwood
|
|
was dying of a putrid fever at Cleveland--a letter that
|
|
morning received from Mrs. Jennings declared her danger
|
|
most imminent--the Palmers are all gone off in a fright,
|
|
&c.--I was too much shocked to be able to pass myself
|
|
off as insensible even to the undiscerning Sir John.
|
|
His heart was softened in seeing mine suffer; and so much
|
|
of his ill-will was done away, that when we parted,
|
|
he almost shook me by the hand while he reminded me of an
|
|
old promise about a pointer puppy. What I felt on hearing
|
|
that your sister was dying--and dying too, believing me
|
|
the greatest villain upon earth, scorning, hating me
|
|
in her latest moments--for how could I tell what horrid
|
|
projects might not have been imputed? ONE person I
|
|
was sure would represent me as capable of any thing--
|
|
What I felt was dreadful!--My resolution was soon made,
|
|
and at eight o'clock this morning I was in my carriage.
|
|
Now you know all."
|
|
|
|
Elinor made no answer. Her thoughts were silently fixed
|
|
on the irreparable injury which too early an independence
|
|
and its consequent habits of idleness, dissipation, and luxury,
|
|
had made in the mind, the character, the happiness,
|
|
of a man who, to every advantage of person and talents,
|
|
united a disposition naturally open and honest, and a
|
|
feeling, affectionate temper. The world had made him
|
|
extravagant and vain--Extravagance and vanity had made him
|
|
cold-hearted and selfish. Vanity, while seeking its own
|
|
guilty triumph at the expense of another, had involved
|
|
him in a real attachment, which extravagance, or at least
|
|
its offspring, necessity, had required to be sacrificed.
|
|
Each faulty propensity in leading him to evil, had led
|
|
him likewise to punishment. The attachment, from which
|
|
against honour, against feeling, against every better interest
|
|
he had outwardly torn himself, now, when no longer allowable,
|
|
governed every thought; and the connection, for the sake
|
|
of which he had, with little scruple, left her sister
|
|
to misery, was likely to prove a source of unhappiness
|
|
to himself of a far more incurable nature. From a reverie
|
|
of this kind she was recalled at the end of some minutes
|
|
by Willoughby, who, rousing himself from a reverie at least
|
|
equally painful, started up in preparation for going, and said--
|
|
|
|
"There is no use in staying here; I must be off."
|
|
|
|
"Are you going back to town?"
|
|
|
|
"No--to Combe Magna. I have business there;
|
|
from thence to town in a day or two. Good bye."
|
|
|
|
He held out his hand. She could not refuse to give
|
|
him hers's;--he pressed it with affection.
|
|
|
|
"And you DO think something better of me than
|
|
you did?"--said he, letting it fall, and leaning against
|
|
the mantel-piece as if forgetting he was to go.
|
|
|
|
Elinor assured him that she did;--that she forgave,
|
|
pitied, wished him well--was even interested in his
|
|
happiness--and added some gentle counsel as to the behaviour
|
|
most likely to promote it. His answer was not very encouraging.
|
|
|
|
"As to that," said he, "I must rub through the world
|
|
as well as I can. Domestic happiness is out of the question.
|
|
If, however, I am allowed to think that you and yours feel
|
|
an interest in my fate and actions, it may be the means--it
|
|
may put me on my guard--at least, it may be something to
|
|
live for. Marianne to be sure is lost to me for ever.
|
|
Were I even by any blessed chance at liberty again--"
|
|
|
|
Elinor stopped him with a reproof.
|
|
|
|
"Well,"--he replied--"once more good bye. I shall
|
|
now go away and live in dread of one event."
|
|
|
|
"What do you mean?"
|
|
|
|
"Your sister's marriage."
|
|
|
|
"You are very wrong. She can never be more lost
|
|
to you than she is now."
|
|
|
|
"But she will be gained by some one else. And if
|
|
that some one should be the very he whom, of all others,
|
|
I could least bear--but I will not stay to rob myself
|
|
of all your compassionate goodwill, by shewing
|
|
that where I have most injured I can least forgive.
|
|
Good bye,--God bless you!"
|
|
|
|
And with these words, he almost ran out of the room.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 45
|
|
|
|
Elinor, for some time after he left her, for some time
|
|
even after the sound of his carriage had died away, remained
|
|
too much oppressed by a crowd of ideas, widely differing in
|
|
themselves, but of which sadness was the general result,
|
|
to think even of her sister.
|
|
|
|
Willoughby, he, whom only half an hour ago she had
|
|
abhorred as the most worthless of men, Willoughby, in spite
|
|
of all his faults, excited a degree of commiseration
|
|
for the sufferings produced by them, which made her
|
|
think of him as now separated for ever from her family,
|
|
with a tenderness, a regret, rather in proportion, as she
|
|
soon acknowledged within herself--to his wishes than to
|
|
his merits. She felt that his influence over her mind
|
|
was heightened by circumstances which ought not in reason
|
|
to have weight; by that person of uncommon attraction,
|
|
that open, affectionate, and lively manner which it
|
|
was no merit to possess; and by that still ardent love
|
|
for Marianne, which it was not even innocent to indulge.
|
|
But she felt that it was so, long, long before she could
|
|
feel his influence less.
|
|
|
|
When at last she returned to the unconscious Marianne,
|
|
she found her just awaking, refreshed by so long and sweet
|
|
a sleep to the extent of her hopes. Elinor's heart was full.
|
|
The past, the present, the future, Willoughby's visit,
|
|
Marianne's safety, and her mother's expected arrival,
|
|
threw her altogether into an agitation of spirits
|
|
which kept off every indication of fatigue, and made
|
|
her only fearful of betraying herself to her sister.
|
|
Short was the time, however, in which that fear could
|
|
affect her, for within half an hour after Willoughby's
|
|
leaving the house, she was again called down stairs
|
|
by the sound of another carriage.--Eager to save her
|
|
mother from every unnecessary moment's horrible suspense,
|
|
she ran immediately into the hall, and reached the outward
|
|
door just in time to receive and support her as she
|
|
entered it.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood, whose terror as they drew near the
|
|
house had produced almost the conviction of Marianne's
|
|
being no more, had no voice to inquire after her,
|
|
no voice even for Elinor; but SHE, waiting neither for
|
|
salutation nor inquiry, instantly gave the joyful relief;--
|
|
and her mother, catching it with all her usual warmth,
|
|
was in a moment as much overcome by her happiness, as she
|
|
had been before by her fears. She was supported into
|
|
the drawing-room between her daughter and her friend;--
|
|
and there, shedding tears of joy, though still unable
|
|
to speak, embraced Elinor again and again, turning from her
|
|
at intervals to press Colonel Brandon's hand, with a look
|
|
which spoke at once her gratitude, and her conviction
|
|
of his sharing with herself in the bliss of the moment.
|
|
He shared it, however, in a silence even greater than
|
|
her own.
|
|
|
|
As soon as Mrs. Dashwood had recovered herself,
|
|
to see Marianne was her first desire; and in two minutes she
|
|
was with her beloved child, rendered dearer to her than ever
|
|
by absence, unhappiness, and danger. Elinor's delight,
|
|
as she saw what each felt in the meeting, was only checked
|
|
by an apprehension of its robbing Marianne of farther sleep;--
|
|
but Mrs. Dashwood could be calm, could be even prudent,
|
|
when the life of a child was at stake, and Marianne,
|
|
satisfied in knowing her mother was near her, and conscious
|
|
of being too weak for conversation, submitted readily to the
|
|
silence and quiet prescribed by every nurse around her.
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood WOULD sit up with her all night; and Elinor,
|
|
in compliance with her mother's entreaty, went to bed.
|
|
But the rest, which one night entirely sleepless,
|
|
and many hours of the most wearing anxiety seemed to
|
|
make requisite, was kept off by irritation of spirits.
|
|
Willoughby, "poor Willoughby," as she now allowed
|
|
herself to call him, was constantly in her thoughts; she
|
|
would not but have heard his vindication for the world,
|
|
and now blamed, now acquitted herself for having judged him
|
|
so harshly before. But her promise of relating it to her
|
|
sister was invariably painful. She dreaded the performance
|
|
of it, dreaded what its effect on Marianne might be;
|
|
doubted whether after such an explanation she could ever
|
|
be happy with another; and for a moment wished Willoughby
|
|
a widower. Then, remembering Colonel Brandon, reproved herself,
|
|
felt that to HIS sufferings and his constancy far more
|
|
than to his rival's, the reward of her sister was due,
|
|
and wished any thing rather than Mrs. Willoughby's death.
|
|
|
|
The shock of Colonel Brandon's errand at Barton had been
|
|
much softened to Mrs. Dashwood by her own previous alarm;
|
|
for so great was her uneasiness about Marianne, that she
|
|
had already determined to set out for Cleveland on that
|
|
very day, without waiting for any further intelligence,
|
|
and had so far settled her journey before his arrival,
|
|
that the Careys were then expected every moment to fetch
|
|
Margaret away, as her mother was unwilling to take her
|
|
where there might be infection.
|
|
|
|
Marianne continued to mend every day, and the brilliant
|
|
cheerfulness of Mrs. Dashwood's looks and spirits proved
|
|
her to be, as she repeatedly declared herself, one of
|
|
the happiest women in the world. Elinor could not hear
|
|
the declaration, nor witness its proofs without sometimes
|
|
wondering whether her mother ever recollected Edward.
|
|
But Mrs. Dashwood, trusting to the temperate account
|
|
of her own disappointment which Elinor had sent her,
|
|
was led away by the exuberance of her joy to think only
|
|
of what would increase it. Marianne was restored to her
|
|
from a danger in which, as she now began to feel,
|
|
her own mistaken judgment in encouraging the unfortunate
|
|
attachment to Willoughby, had contributed to place her;--
|
|
and in her recovery she had yet another source of joy
|
|
unthought of by Elinor. It was thus imparted to her,
|
|
as soon as any opportunity of private conference between
|
|
them occurred.
|
|
|
|
"At last we are alone. My Elinor, you do not yet
|
|
know all my happiness. Colonel Brandon loves Marianne.
|
|
He has told me so himself."
|
|
|
|
Her daughter, feeling by turns both pleased and pained,
|
|
surprised and not surprised, was all silent attention.
|
|
|
|
"You are never like me, dear Elinor, or I should
|
|
wonder at your composure now. Had I sat down to wish
|
|
for any possible good to my family, I should have fixed
|
|
on Colonel Brandon's marrying one of you as the object
|
|
most desirable. And I believe Marianne will be the most
|
|
happy with him of the two."
|
|
|
|
Elinor was half inclined to ask her reason for thinking so,
|
|
because satisfied that none founded on an impartial
|
|
consideration of their age, characters, or feelings,
|
|
could be given;--but her mother must always be carried
|
|
away by her imagination on any interesting subject,
|
|
and therefore instead of an inquiry, she passed it off with a smile.
|
|
|
|
"He opened his whole heart to me yesterday as we travelled.
|
|
It came out quite unawares, quite undesignedly. I, you may
|
|
well believe, could talk of nothing but my child;--he could
|
|
not conceal his distress; I saw that it equalled my own,
|
|
and he perhaps, thinking that mere friendship, as the world
|
|
now goes, would not justify so warm a sympathy--or rather,
|
|
not thinking at all, I suppose--giving way to irresistible
|
|
feelings, made me acquainted with his earnest, tender, constant,
|
|
affection for Marianne. He has loved her, my Elinor, ever since
|
|
the first moment of seeing her."
|
|
|
|
Here, however, Elinor perceived,--not the language,
|
|
not the professions of Colonel Brandon, but the natural
|
|
embellishments of her mother's active fancy, which fashioned
|
|
every thing delightful to her as it chose.
|
|
|
|
"His regard for her, infinitely surpassing anything
|
|
that Willoughby ever felt or feigned, as much more warm,
|
|
as more sincere or constant--which ever we are to call it--
|
|
has subsisted through all the knowledge of dear Marianne's
|
|
unhappy prepossession for that worthless young man!--and
|
|
without selfishness--without encouraging a hope!--could
|
|
he have seen her happy with another--Such a noble mind!--
|
|
such openness, such sincerity!--no one can be deceived
|
|
in HIM."
|
|
|
|
"Colonel Brandon's character," said Elinor,
|
|
"as an excellent man, is well established."
|
|
|
|
"I know it is"--replied her mother seriously, "or
|
|
after such a warning, I should be the last to encourage
|
|
such affection, or even to be pleased by it. But his coming
|
|
for me as he did, with such active, such ready friendship,
|
|
is enough to prove him one of the worthiest of men."
|
|
|
|
"His character, however," answered Elinor, "does not rest
|
|
on ONE act of kindness, to which his affection for Marianne,
|
|
were humanity out of the case, would have prompted him.
|
|
To Mrs. Jennings, to the Middletons, he has been long
|
|
and intimately known; they equally love and respect him;
|
|
and even my own knowledge of him, though lately acquired,
|
|
is very considerable; and so highly do I value and esteem him,
|
|
that if Marianne can be happy with him, I shall be as ready
|
|
as yourself to think our connection the greatest blessing
|
|
to us in the world. What answer did you give him?--Did you
|
|
allow him to hope?"
|
|
|
|
"Oh! my love, I could not then talk of hope to him
|
|
or to myself. Marianne might at that moment be dying.
|
|
But he did not ask for hope or encouragement. His was
|
|
an involuntary confidence, an irrepressible effusion
|
|
to a soothing friend--not an application to a parent.
|
|
Yet after a time I DID say, for at first I was quite
|
|
overcome--that if she lived, as I trusted she might,
|
|
my greatest happiness would lie in promoting their marriage;
|
|
and since our arrival, since our delightful security,
|
|
I have repeated it to him more fully, have given him every
|
|
encouragement in my power. Time, a very little time,
|
|
I tell him, will do everything;--Marianne's heart is
|
|
not to be wasted for ever on such a man as Willoughby.--
|
|
His own merits must soon secure it."
|
|
|
|
"To judge from the Colonel's spirits, however,
|
|
you have not yet made him equally sanguine."
|
|
|
|
"No.--He thinks Marianne's affection too deeply
|
|
rooted for any change in it under a great length of time,
|
|
and even supposing her heart again free, is too diffident
|
|
of himself to believe, that with such a difference of age
|
|
and disposition he could ever attach her. There, however,
|
|
he is quite mistaken. His age is only so much beyond
|
|
hers as to be an advantage, as to make his character and
|
|
principles fixed;--and his disposition, I am well convinced,
|
|
is exactly the very one to make your sister happy.
|
|
And his person, his manners too, are all in his favour.
|
|
My partiality does not blind me; he certainly is not
|
|
so handsome as Willoughby--but at the same time,
|
|
there is something much more pleasing in his countenance.--
|
|
There was always a something,--if you remember,--in Willoughby's
|
|
eyes at times, which I did not like."
|
|
|
|
Elinor could NOT remember it;--but her mother,
|
|
without waiting for her assent, continued,
|
|
|
|
"And his manners, the Colonel's manners are not only
|
|
more pleasing to me than Willoughby's ever were, but they
|
|
are of a kind I well know to be more solidly attaching
|
|
to Marianne. Their gentleness, their genuine attention
|
|
to other people, and their manly unstudied simplicity
|
|
is much more accordant with her real disposition, than
|
|
the liveliness--often artificial, and often ill-timed
|
|
of the other. I am very sure myself, that had Willoughby
|
|
turned out as really amiable, as he has proved himself
|
|
the contrary, Marianne would yet never have been so happy
|
|
with HIM, as she will be with Colonel Brandon."
|
|
|
|
She paused.--Her daughter could not quite agree
|
|
with her, but her dissent was not heard, and therefore
|
|
gave no offence.
|
|
|
|
"At Delaford, she will be within an easy distance of me,"
|
|
added Mrs. Dashwood, "even if I remain at Barton; and in all
|
|
probability,--for I hear it is a large village,--indeed there
|
|
certainly MUST be some small house or cottage close by,
|
|
that would suit us quite as well as our present situation."
|
|
|
|
Poor Elinor!--here was a new scheme for getting
|
|
her to Delaford!--but her spirit was stubborn.
|
|
|
|
"His fortune too!--for at my time of life you know,
|
|
everybody cares about THAT;--and though I neither know
|
|
nor desire to know, what it really is, I am sure it must be
|
|
a good one."
|
|
|
|
Here they were interrupted by the entrance of a
|
|
third person, and Elinor withdrew to think it all over
|
|
in private, to wish success to her friend, and yet
|
|
in wishing it, to feel a pang for Willoughby.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 46
|
|
|
|
Marianne's illness, though weakening in its kind,
|
|
had not been long enough to make her recovery slow;
|
|
and with youth, natural strength, and her mother's presence
|
|
in aid, it proceeded so smoothly as to enable her to remove,
|
|
within four days after the arrival of the latter,
|
|
into Mrs. Palmer's dressing-room. When there, at her own
|
|
particular request, for she was impatient to pour forth
|
|
her thanks to him for fetching her mother, Colonel Brandon
|
|
was invited to visit her.
|
|
|
|
His emotion on entering the room, in seeing her altered
|
|
looks, and in receiving the pale hand which she immediately
|
|
held out to him, was such, as, in Elinor's conjecture,
|
|
must arise from something more than his affection for Marianne,
|
|
or the consciousness of its being known to others;
|
|
and she soon discovered in his melancholy eye and varying
|
|
complexion as he looked at her sister, the probable
|
|
recurrence of many past scenes of misery to his mind,
|
|
brought back by that resemblance between Marianne and Eliza
|
|
already acknowledged, and now strengthened by the hollow eye,
|
|
the sickly skin, the posture of reclining weakness,
|
|
and the warm acknowledgment of peculiar obligation.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood, not less watchful of what passed than
|
|
her daughter, but with a mind very differently influenced,
|
|
and therefore watching to very different effect,
|
|
saw nothing in the Colonel's behaviour but what arose
|
|
from the most simple and self-evident sensations, while in
|
|
the actions and words of Marianne she persuaded herself
|
|
to think that something more than gratitude already dawned.
|
|
|
|
At the end of another day or two, Marianne growing
|
|
visibly stronger every twelve hours, Mrs. Dashwood,
|
|
urged equally by her own and her daughter's wishes,
|
|
began to talk of removing to Barton. On HER measures
|
|
depended those of her two friends; Mrs. Jennings could
|
|
not quit Cleveland during the Dashwoods' stay; and Colonel
|
|
Brandon was soon brought, by their united request,
|
|
to consider his own abode there as equally determinate,
|
|
if not equally indispensable. At his and Mrs. Jennings's
|
|
united request in return, Mrs. Dashwood was prevailed
|
|
on to accept the use of his carriage on her journey back,
|
|
for the better accommodation of her sick child; and the Colonel,
|
|
at the joint invitation of Mrs. Dashwood and Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
whose active good-nature made her friendly and hospitable
|
|
for other people as well as herself, engaged with pleasure
|
|
to redeem it by a visit at the cottage, in the course
|
|
of a few weeks.
|
|
|
|
The day of separation and departure arrived;
|
|
and Marianne, after taking so particular and lengthened
|
|
a leave of Mrs. Jennings, one so earnestly grateful, so full
|
|
of respect and kind wishes as seemed due to her own heart
|
|
from a secret acknowledgment of past inattention, and bidding
|
|
Colonel Brandon farewell with a cordiality of a friend,
|
|
was carefully assisted by him into the carriage, of which he
|
|
seemed anxious that she should engross at least half.
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor then followed, and the others
|
|
were left by themselves, to talk of the travellers,
|
|
and feel their own dullness, till Mrs. Jennings was summoned
|
|
to her chaise to take comfort in the gossip of her maid
|
|
for the loss of her two young companions; and Colonel Brandon
|
|
immediately afterwards took his solitary way to Delaford.
|
|
|
|
The Dashwoods were two days on the road, and Marianne
|
|
bore her journey on both, without essential fatigue.
|
|
Every thing that the most zealous affection, the most
|
|
solicitous care could do to render her comfortable,
|
|
was the office of each watchful companion, and each
|
|
found their reward in her bodily ease, and her calmness
|
|
of spirits. To Elinor, the observation of the latter
|
|
was particularly grateful. She, who had seen her week
|
|
after week so constantly suffering, oppressed by anguish
|
|
of heart which she had neither courage to speak of,
|
|
nor fortitude to conceal, now saw with a joy, which no other
|
|
could equally share, an apparent composure of mind, which,
|
|
in being the result as she trusted of serious reflection,
|
|
must eventually lead her to contentment and cheerfulness.
|
|
|
|
As they approached Barton, indeed, and entered
|
|
on scenes of which every field and every tree brought
|
|
some peculiar, some painful recollection, she grew silent
|
|
and thoughtful, and turning away her face from their notice,
|
|
sat earnestly gazing through the window. But here,
|
|
Elinor could neither wonder nor blame; and when she saw,
|
|
as she assisted Marianne from the carriage, that she
|
|
had been crying, she saw only an emotion too natural
|
|
in itself to raise any thing less tender than pity,
|
|
and in its unobtrusiveness entitled to praise. In the
|
|
whole of her subsequent manner, she traced the direction
|
|
of a mind awakened to reasonable exertion; for no sooner
|
|
had they entered their common sitting-room, than Marianne
|
|
turned her eyes around it with a look of resolute firmness,
|
|
as if determined at once to accustom herself to the sight
|
|
of every object with which the remembrance of Willoughby could
|
|
be connected.--She said little, but every sentence aimed
|
|
at cheerfulness, and though a sigh sometimes escaped her,
|
|
it never passed away without the atonement of a smile.
|
|
After dinner she would try her piano-forte. She went to it;
|
|
but the music on which her eye first rested was an opera,
|
|
procured for her by Willoughby, containing some of their
|
|
favourite duets, and bearing on its outward leaf her own name
|
|
in his hand-writing.--That would not do.--She shook her head,
|
|
put the music aside, and after running over the keys
|
|
for a minute, complained of feebleness in her fingers,
|
|
and closed the instrument again; declaring however
|
|
with firmness as she did so, that she should in future
|
|
practice much.
|
|
|
|
The next morning produced no abatement in these
|
|
happy symptoms. On the contrary, with a mind and body
|
|
alike strengthened by rest, she looked and spoke with
|
|
more genuine spirit, anticipating the pleasure of
|
|
Margaret's return, and talking of the dear family party
|
|
which would then be restored, of their mutual pursuits
|
|
and cheerful society, as the only happiness worth a wish.
|
|
|
|
"When the weather is settled, and I have recovered
|
|
my strength," said she, "we will take long walks together
|
|
every day. We will walk to the farm at the edge of the down,
|
|
and see how the children go on; we will walk to Sir John's
|
|
new plantations at Barton Cross, and the Abbeyland;
|
|
and we will often go the old ruins of the Priory,
|
|
and try to trace its foundations as far as we are told
|
|
they once reached. I know we shall be happy. I know
|
|
the summer will pass happily away. I mean never to be
|
|
later in rising than six, and from that time till dinner
|
|
I shall divide every moment between music and reading.
|
|
I have formed my plan, and am determined to enter on a course
|
|
of serious study. Our own library is too well known to me,
|
|
to be resorted to for any thing beyond mere amusement.
|
|
But there are many works well worth reading at the Park;
|
|
and there are others of more modern production which I
|
|
know I can borrow of Colonel Brandon. By reading only six
|
|
hours a-day, I shall gain in the course of a twelve-month
|
|
a great deal of instruction which I now feel myself
|
|
to want."
|
|
|
|
Elinor honoured her for a plan which originated
|
|
so nobly as this; though smiling to see the same eager
|
|
fancy which had been leading her to the extreme of languid
|
|
indolence and selfish repining, now at work in introducing
|
|
excess into a scheme of such rational employment and virtuous
|
|
self-control. Her smile however changed to a sigh when she
|
|
remembered that promise to Willoughby was yet unfulfilled,
|
|
and feared she had that to communicate which might again
|
|
unsettle the mind of Marianne, and ruin at least for a time
|
|
this fair prospect of busy tranquillity. Willing therefore
|
|
to delay the evil hour, she resolved to wait till her
|
|
sister's health were more secure, before she appointed it.
|
|
But the resolution was made only to be broken.
|
|
|
|
Marianne had been two or three days at home, before
|
|
the weather was fine enough for an invalid like herself
|
|
to venture out. But at last a soft, genial morning appeared;
|
|
such as might tempt the daughter's wishes and the
|
|
mother's confidence; and Marianne, leaning on Elinor's arm,
|
|
was authorised to walk as long as she could without fatigue,
|
|
in the lane before the house.
|
|
|
|
The sisters set out at a pace, slow as the feebleness
|
|
of Marianne in an exercise hitherto untried since her
|
|
illness required;--and they had advanced only so far
|
|
beyond the house as to admit a full view of the hill,
|
|
the important hill behind, when pausing with her eyes
|
|
turned towards it, Marianne calmly said,
|
|
|
|
"There, exactly there,"--pointing with one hand,
|
|
"on that projecting mound,--there I fell; and there I
|
|
first saw Willoughby."
|
|
|
|
Her voice sunk with the word, but presently reviving
|
|
she added,
|
|
|
|
"I am thankful to find that I can look with so little pain
|
|
on the spot!--shall we ever talk on that subject, Elinor?"--
|
|
hesitatingly it was said.--"Or will it be wrong?--I can talk
|
|
of it now, I hope, as I ought to do."--
|
|
|
|
Elinor tenderly invited her to be open.
|
|
|
|
"As for regret," said Marianne, "I have done with that,
|
|
as far as HE is concerned. I do not mean to talk to you
|
|
of what my feelings have been for him, but what they
|
|
are NOW.--At present, if I could be satisfied on one point,
|
|
if I could be allowed to think that he was not ALWAYS
|
|
acting a part, not ALWAYS deceiving me;--but above all,
|
|
if I could be assured that he never was so VERY wicked
|
|
as my fears have sometimes fancied him, since the story
|
|
of that unfortunate girl"--
|
|
|
|
She stopt. Elinor joyfully treasured her words
|
|
as she answered,
|
|
|
|
"If you could be assured of that, you think you
|
|
should be easy."
|
|
|
|
"Yes. My peace of mind is doubly involved in it;--
|
|
for not only is it horrible to suspect a person, who has
|
|
been what HE has been to ME, of such designs,--but what must
|
|
it make me appear to myself?--What in a situation like mine,
|
|
but a most shamefully unguarded affection could expose
|
|
me to"--
|
|
|
|
"How then," asked her sister, "would you account
|
|
for his behaviour?"
|
|
|
|
"I would suppose him,--Oh, how gladly would I suppose
|
|
him, only fickle, very, very fickle."
|
|
|
|
Elinor said no more. She was debating within herself
|
|
on the eligibility of beginning her story directly,
|
|
or postponing it till Marianne were in stronger health;--
|
|
and they crept on for a few minutes in silence.
|
|
|
|
"I am not wishing him too much good," said Marianne
|
|
at last with a sigh, "when I wish his secret reflections
|
|
may be no more unpleasant than my own. He will suffer
|
|
enough in them."
|
|
|
|
"Do you compare your conduct with his?"
|
|
|
|
"No. I compare it with what it ought to have been;
|
|
I compare it with yours."
|
|
|
|
"Our situations have borne little resemblance."
|
|
|
|
"They have borne more than our conduct.--Do not,
|
|
my dearest Elinor, let your kindness defend what I know
|
|
your judgment must censure. My illness has made me think--
|
|
It has given me leisure and calmness for serious recollection.
|
|
Long before I was enough recovered to talk, I was perfectly
|
|
able to reflect. I considered the past: I saw in my
|
|
own behaviour, since the beginning of our acquaintance
|
|
with him last autumn, nothing but a series of imprudence
|
|
towards myself, and want of kindness to others.
|
|
I saw that my own feelings had prepared my sufferings,
|
|
and that my want of fortitude under them had almost led
|
|
me to the grave. My illness, I well knew, had been
|
|
entirely brought on by myself by such negligence of my
|
|
own health, as I had felt even at the time to be wrong.
|
|
Had I died,--it would have been self-destruction. I
|
|
did not know my danger till the danger was removed;
|
|
but with such feelings as these reflections gave me,
|
|
I wonder at my recovery,--wonder that the very eagerness
|
|
of my desire to live, to have time for atonement to my God,
|
|
and to you all, did not kill me at once. Had I died,--
|
|
in what peculiar misery should I have left you, my nurse,
|
|
my friend, my sister!--You, who had seen all the fretful
|
|
selfishness of my latter days; who had known all the
|
|
murmurings of my heart!--How should I have lived in YOUR
|
|
remembrance!--My mother too! How could you have consoled
|
|
her!--I cannot express my own abhorrence of myself.
|
|
Whenever I looked towards the past, I saw some duty neglected,
|
|
or some failing indulged. Every body seemed injured by me.
|
|
The kindness, the unceasing kindness of Mrs. Jennings,
|
|
I had repaid with ungrateful contempt. To the Middletons,
|
|
to the Palmers, the Steeles, to every common acquaintance even,
|
|
I had been insolent and unjust; with a heart hardened
|
|
against their merits, and a temper irritated by their
|
|
very attention.--To John, to Fanny,--yes, even to them,
|
|
little as they deserve, I had given less than their due.
|
|
But you,--you above all, above my mother, had been wronged
|
|
by me. I, and only I, knew your heart and its sorrows;
|
|
yet to what did it influence me?--not to any compassion
|
|
that could benefit you or myself.--Your example was
|
|
before me; but to what avail?--Was I more considerate
|
|
of you and your comfort? Did I imitate your forbearance,
|
|
or lessen your restraints, by taking any part in those
|
|
offices of general complaisance or particular gratitude
|
|
which you had hitherto been left to discharge alone?--No;--
|
|
not less when I knew you to be unhappy, than when I
|
|
had believed you at ease, did I turn away from every
|
|
exertion of duty or friendship; scarcely allowing sorrow
|
|
to exist but with me, regretting only THAT heart which
|
|
had deserted and wronged me, and leaving you, for or I
|
|
professed an unbounded affection, to be miserable for my
|
|
sake."
|
|
|
|
Here ceased the rapid flow of her self-reproving spirit;
|
|
and Elinor, impatient to soothe, though too honest
|
|
to flatter, gave her instantly that praise and support
|
|
which her frankness and her contrition so well deserved.
|
|
Marianne pressed her hand and replied,
|
|
|
|
"You are very good.--The future must be my proof.
|
|
I have laid down my plan, and if I am capable of adhering
|
|
to it--my feelings shall be governed and my temper improved.
|
|
They shall no longer worry others, nor torture myself.
|
|
I shall now live solely for my family. You, my mother,
|
|
and Margaret, must henceforth be all the world to me;
|
|
you will share my affections entirely between you.
|
|
>From you, from my home, I shall never again have the smallest
|
|
incitement to move; and if I do mix in other society,
|
|
it will be only to shew that my spirit is humbled,
|
|
my heart amended, and that I can practise the civilities,
|
|
the lesser duties of life, with gentleness and forbearance.
|
|
As for Willoughby--to say that I shall soon or that I shall
|
|
ever forget him, would be idle. His remembrance can be overcome
|
|
by no change of circumstances or opinions. But it shall
|
|
be regulated, it shall be checked by religion, by reason,
|
|
by constant employment."
|
|
|
|
She paused--and added in a low voice, "If I could
|
|
but know HIS heart, everything would become easy."
|
|
|
|
Elinor, who had now been for some time reflecting
|
|
on the propriety or impropriety of speedily hazarding
|
|
her narration, without feeling at all nearer decision than
|
|
at first, heard this; and perceiving that as reflection
|
|
did nothing, resolution must do all, soon found herself
|
|
leading to the fact.
|
|
|
|
She managed the recital, as she hoped, with address;
|
|
prepared her anxious listener with caution; related simply
|
|
and honestly the chief points on which Willoughby
|
|
grounded his apology; did justice to his repentance,
|
|
and softened only his protestations of present regard.
|
|
Marianne said not a word.--She trembled, her eyes
|
|
were fixed on the ground, and her lips became whiter
|
|
than even sickness had left them. A thousand inquiries
|
|
sprung up from her heart, but she dared not urge one.
|
|
She caught every syllable with panting eagerness; her hand,
|
|
unknowingly to herself, closely pressed her sister's, and
|
|
tears covered her cheeks.
|
|
|
|
Elinor, dreading her being tired, led her towards home;
|
|
and till they reached the door of the cottage,
|
|
easily conjecturing what her curiosity must be
|
|
though no question was suffered to speak it, talked of
|
|
nothing but Willoughby, and their conversation together;
|
|
and was carefully minute in every particular of speech
|
|
and look, where minuteness could be safely indulged.
|
|
As soon as they entered the house, Marianne with a kiss
|
|
of gratitude and these two words just articulate through
|
|
her tears, "Tell mama," withdrew from her sister and
|
|
walked slowly up stairs. Elinor would not attempt
|
|
to disturb a solitude so reasonable as what she now sought;
|
|
and with a mind anxiously pre-arranging its result,
|
|
and a resolution of reviving the subject again,
|
|
should Marianne fail to do it, she turned into the parlour
|
|
to fulfill her parting injunction.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 47
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood did not hear unmoved the vindication
|
|
of her former favourite. She rejoiced in his being
|
|
cleared from some part of his imputed guilt;--she was
|
|
sorry for him;--she wished him happy. But the feelings
|
|
of the past could not be recalled.--Nothing could restore
|
|
him with a faith unbroken--a character unblemished,
|
|
to Marianne. Nothing could do away the knowledge
|
|
of what the latter had suffered through his means,
|
|
nor remove the guilt of his conduct towards Eliza.
|
|
Nothing could replace him, therefore, in her former esteem,
|
|
nor injure the interests of Colonel Brandon.
|
|
|
|
Had Mrs. Dashwood, like her daughter, heard Willoughby's
|
|
story from himself--had she witnessed his distress,
|
|
and been under the influence of his countenance and his
|
|
manner, it is probable that her compassion would have
|
|
been greater. But it was neither in Elinor's power,
|
|
nor in her wish, to rouse such feelings in another, by her
|
|
retailed explanation, as had at first been called forth
|
|
in herself. Reflection had given calmness to her judgment,
|
|
and sobered her own opinion of Willoughby's deserts;--
|
|
she wished, therefore, to declare only the simple truth,
|
|
and lay open such facts as were really due to his character,
|
|
without any embellishment of tenderness to lead the
|
|
fancy astray.
|
|
|
|
In the evening, when they were all three together,
|
|
Marianne began voluntarily to speak of him again;--
|
|
but that it was not without an effort, the restless,
|
|
unquiet thoughtfulness in which she had been for some time
|
|
previously sitting--her rising colour, as she spoke,--
|
|
and her unsteady voice, plainly shewed.
|
|
|
|
"I wish to assure you both," said she, "that I see
|
|
every thing--as you can desire me to do."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood would have interrupted her instantly
|
|
with soothing tenderness, had not Elinor, who really wished
|
|
to hear her sister's unbiased opinion, by an eager sign,
|
|
engaged her silence. Marianne slowly continued--
|
|
|
|
"It is a great relief to me--what Elinor told
|
|
me this morning--I have now heard exactly what I
|
|
wished to hear."--For some moments her voice was lost;
|
|
but recovering herself, she added, and with greater
|
|
calmness than before--"I am now perfectly satisfied,
|
|
I wish for no change. I never could have been happy
|
|
with him, after knowing, as sooner or later I must
|
|
have known, all this.--I should have had no confidence,
|
|
no esteem. Nothing could have done it away to my feelings."
|
|
|
|
"I know it--I know it," cried her mother.
|
|
"Happy with a man of libertine practices!--With one
|
|
who so injured the peace of the dearest of our friends,
|
|
and the best of men!--No--my Marianne has not a heart
|
|
to be made happy with such a man!--Her conscience, her
|
|
sensitive counscience, would have felt all that the
|
|
conscience of her husband ought to have felt."
|
|
|
|
Marianne sighed, and repeated, "I wish for no change."
|
|
|
|
"You consider the matter," said Elinor, "exactly as
|
|
a good mind and a sound understanding must consider it;
|
|
and I dare say you perceive, as well as myself, not only
|
|
in this, but in many other circumstances, reason enough
|
|
to be convinced that your marriage must have involved you
|
|
in many certain troubles and disappointments, in which
|
|
you would have been poorly supported by an affection,
|
|
on his side, much less certain. Had you married,
|
|
you must have been always poor. His expensiveness is
|
|
acknowledged even by himself, and his whole conduct declares
|
|
that self-denial is a word hardly understood by him.
|
|
His demands and your inexperience together, on a small,
|
|
very small income, must have brought on distresses which
|
|
would not be the LESS grievous to you, from having been
|
|
entirely unknown and unthought of before. YOUR sense
|
|
of honour and honesty would have led you, I know,
|
|
when aware of your situation, to attempt all the economy
|
|
that would appear to you possible: and, perhaps, as long
|
|
as your frugality retrenched only on your own comfort,
|
|
you might have been suffered to practice it, but beyond that--
|
|
and how little could the utmost of your single management
|
|
do to stop the ruin which had begun before your marriage?--
|
|
Beyond THAT, had you endeavoured, however reasonably,
|
|
to abridge HIS enjoyments, is it not to be feared, that instead
|
|
of prevailing on feelings so selfish to consent to it,
|
|
you would have lessened your own influence on his heart,
|
|
and made him regret the connection which had involved him
|
|
in such difficulties?"
|
|
|
|
Marianne's lips quivered, and she repeated the word
|
|
"Selfish?" in a tone that implied--"do you really think
|
|
him selfish?"
|
|
|
|
"The whole of his behaviour," replied Elinor,
|
|
"from the beginning to the end of the affair, has been
|
|
grounded on selfishness. It was selfishness which first
|
|
made him sport with your affections; which afterwards,
|
|
when his own were engaged, made him delay the confession
|
|
of it, and which finally carried him from Barton.
|
|
His own enjoyment, or his own ease, was, in every particular,
|
|
his ruling principle."
|
|
|
|
"It is very true. MY happiness never was his object."
|
|
|
|
"At present," continued Elinor, "he regrets what he
|
|
has done. And why does he regret it?--Because he finds
|
|
it has not answered towards himself. It has not made
|
|
him happy. His circumstances are now unembarrassed--he
|
|
suffers from no evil of that kind; and he thinks only
|
|
that he has married a woman of a less amiable temper
|
|
than yourself. But does it follow that had he married you,
|
|
he would have been happy?--The inconveniences would have
|
|
been different. He would then have suffered under the
|
|
pecuniary distresses which, because they are removed,
|
|
he now reckons as nothing. He would have had a wife
|
|
of whose temper he could make no complaint, but he would
|
|
have been always necessitous--always poor; and probably
|
|
would soon have learned to rank the innumerable comforts
|
|
of a clear estate and good income as of far more importance,
|
|
even to domestic happiness, than the mere temper of a wife."
|
|
|
|
"I have not a doubt of it," said Marianne; "and I
|
|
have nothing to regret--nothing but my own folly."
|
|
|
|
"Rather say your mother's imprudence, my child,"
|
|
said Mrs. Dashwood; "SHE must be answerable."
|
|
|
|
Marianne would not let her proceed;--and Elinor,
|
|
satisfied that each felt their own error, wished to avoid
|
|
any survey of the past that might weaken her sister's
|
|
spirits; she, therefore, pursuing the first subject,
|
|
immediately continued,
|
|
|
|
"One observation may, I think, be fairly drawn from
|
|
the whole of the story--that all Willoughby's difficulties
|
|
have arisen from the first offence against virtue, in his
|
|
behaviour to Eliza Williams. That crime has been the origin
|
|
of every lesser one, and of all his present discontents."
|
|
|
|
Marianne assented most feelingly to the remark;
|
|
and her mother was led by it to an enumeration of Colonel
|
|
Brandon's injuries and merits, warm as friendship
|
|
and design could unitedly dictate. Her daughter did
|
|
not look, however, as if much of it were heard by her.
|
|
|
|
Elinor, according to her expectation, saw on the two
|
|
or three following days, that Marianne did not continue
|
|
to gain strength as she had done; but while her resolution
|
|
was unsubdued, and she still tried to appear cheerful
|
|
and easy, her sister could safely trust to the effect
|
|
of time upon her health.
|
|
|
|
Margaret returned, and the family were again all
|
|
restored to each other, again quietly settled at the cottage;
|
|
and if not pursuing their usual studies with quite
|
|
so much vigour as when they first came to Barton,
|
|
at least planning a vigorous prosecution of them in future.
|
|
|
|
Elinor grew impatient for some tidings of Edward.
|
|
She had heard nothing of him since her leaving London,
|
|
nothing new of his plans, nothing certain even of his
|
|
present abode. Some letters had passed between her
|
|
and her brother, in consequence of Marianne's illness;
|
|
and in the first of John's, there had been this sentence:--
|
|
"We know nothing of our unfortunate Edward, and can make no
|
|
enquiries on so prohibited a subject, but conclude him
|
|
to be still at Oxford;" which was all the intelligence
|
|
of Edward afforded her by the correspondence, for his name
|
|
was not even mentioned in any of the succeeding letters.
|
|
She was not doomed, however, to be long in ignorance of
|
|
his measures.
|
|
|
|
Their man-servant had been sent one morning to Exeter
|
|
on business; and when, as he waited at table, he had
|
|
satisfied the inquiries of his mistress as to the event
|
|
of his errand, this was his voluntary communication--
|
|
|
|
"I suppose you know, ma'am, that Mr. Ferrars is married."
|
|
|
|
Marianne gave a violent start, fixed her eyes
|
|
upon Elinor, saw her turning pale, and fell back in her
|
|
chair in hysterics. Mrs. Dashwood, whose eyes, as she
|
|
answered the servant's inquiry, had intuitively taken
|
|
the same direction, was shocked to perceive by Elinor's
|
|
countenance how much she really suffered, and a moment
|
|
afterwards, alike distressed by Marianne's situation,
|
|
knew not on which child to bestow her principal attention.
|
|
|
|
The servant, who saw only that Miss Marianne was
|
|
taken ill, had sense enough to call one of the maids,
|
|
who, with Mrs. Dashwood's assistance, supported her into
|
|
the other room. By that time, Marianne was rather better,
|
|
and her mother leaving her to the care of Margaret
|
|
and the maid, returned to Elinor, who, though still
|
|
much disordered, had so far recovered the use of her reason
|
|
and voice as to be just beginning an inquiry of Thomas,
|
|
as to the source of his intelligence. Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
immediately took all that trouble on herself; and Elinor
|
|
had the benefit of the information without the exertion of seeking it.
|
|
|
|
"Who told you that Mr. Ferrars was married, Thomas?"
|
|
|
|
"I see Mr. Ferrars myself, ma'am, this morning
|
|
in Exeter, and his lady too, Miss Steele as was. They was
|
|
stopping in a chaise at the door of the New London Inn,
|
|
as I went there with a message from Sally at the Park
|
|
to her brother, who is one of the post-boys. I happened
|
|
to look up as I went by the chaise, and so I see directly
|
|
it was the youngest Miss Steele; so I took off my hat,
|
|
and she knew me and called to me, and inquired after you,
|
|
ma'am, and the young ladies, especially Miss Marianne,
|
|
and bid me I should give her compliments and Mr. Ferrars's,
|
|
their best compliments and service, and how sorry they
|
|
was they had not time to come on and see you, but they was
|
|
in a great hurry to go forwards, for they was going further
|
|
down for a little while, but howsever, when they come back,
|
|
they'd make sure to come and see you."
|
|
|
|
"But did she tell you she was married, Thomas?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, ma'am. She smiled, and said how she
|
|
had changed her name since she was in these parts.
|
|
She was always a very affable and free-spoken young lady,
|
|
and very civil behaved. So, I made free to wish her joy."
|
|
|
|
"Was Mr. Ferrars in the carriage with her?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, ma'am, I just see him leaning back in it,
|
|
but he did not look up;--he never was a gentleman much
|
|
for talking."
|
|
|
|
Elinor's heart could easily account for his not
|
|
putting himself forward; and Mrs. Dashwood probably
|
|
found the same explanation.
|
|
|
|
"Was there no one else in the carriage?"
|
|
|
|
"No, ma'am, only they two."
|
|
|
|
"Do you know where they came from?"
|
|
|
|
"They come straight from town, as Miss Lucy--
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars told me."
|
|
|
|
"And are they going farther westward?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, ma'am--but not to bide long. They will soon
|
|
be back again, and then they'd be sure and call here."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood now looked at her daughter;
|
|
but Elinor knew better than to expect them.
|
|
She recognised the whole of Lucy in the message, and was
|
|
very confident that Edward would never come near them.
|
|
She observed in a low voice, to her mother, that they
|
|
were probably going down to Mr. Pratt's, near Plymouth.
|
|
|
|
Thomas's intelligence seemed over. Elinor looked
|
|
as if she wished to hear more.
|
|
|
|
"Did you see them off, before you came away?"
|
|
|
|
"No, ma'am--the horses were just coming out, but I
|
|
could not bide any longer; I was afraid of being late."
|
|
|
|
"Did Mrs. Ferrars look well?"
|
|
|
|
"Yes, ma'am, she said how she was very well;
|
|
and to my mind she was always a very handsome young
|
|
lady--and she seemed vastly contented."
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood could think of no other question,
|
|
and Thomas and the tablecloth, now alike needless,
|
|
were soon afterwards dismissed. Marianne had already sent
|
|
to say, that she should eat nothing more. Mrs. Dashwood's
|
|
and Elinor's appetites were equally lost, and Margaret
|
|
might think herself very well off, that with so much
|
|
uneasiness as both her sisters had lately experienced,
|
|
so much reason as they had often had to be careless
|
|
of their meals, she had never been obliged to go without
|
|
her dinner before.
|
|
|
|
When the dessert and the wine were arranged,
|
|
and Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor were left by themselves,
|
|
they remained long together in a similarity of thoughtfulness
|
|
and silence. Mrs. Dashwood feared to hazard any remark,
|
|
and ventured not to offer consolation. She now found
|
|
that she had erred in relying on Elinor's representation
|
|
of herself; and justly concluded that every thing
|
|
had been expressly softened at the time, to spare her
|
|
from an increase of unhappiness, suffering as she then
|
|
had suffered for Marianne. She found that she had been
|
|
misled by the careful, the considerate attention of
|
|
her daughter, to think the attachment, which once she
|
|
had so well understood, much slighter in reality, than
|
|
she had been wont to believe, or than it was now proved
|
|
to be. She feared that under this persuasion she had
|
|
been unjust, inattentive, nay, almost unkind, to her Elinor;--
|
|
that Marianne's affliction, because more acknowledged,
|
|
more immediately before her, had too much engrossed
|
|
her tenderness, and led her away to forget that in Elinor
|
|
she might have a daughter suffering almost as much,
|
|
certainly with less self-provocation, and greater fortitude.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 48
|
|
|
|
Elinor now found the difference between the expectation
|
|
of an unpleasant event, however certain the mind may be told
|
|
to consider it, and certainty itself. She now found, that
|
|
in spite of herself, she had always admitted a hope,
|
|
while Edward remained single, that something would occur
|
|
to prevent his marrying Lucy; that some resolution of
|
|
his own, some mediation of friends, or some more eligible
|
|
opportunity of establishment for the lady, would arise
|
|
to assist the happiness of all. But he was now married;
|
|
and she condemned her heart for the lurking flattery,
|
|
which so much heightened the pain of the intelligence.
|
|
|
|
That he should be married soon, before (as she imagined)
|
|
he could be in orders, and consequently before he could
|
|
be in possession of the living, surprised her a little
|
|
at first. But she soon saw how likely it was that Lucy,
|
|
in her self-provident care, in her haste to secure him,
|
|
should overlook every thing but the risk of delay.
|
|
They were married, married in town, and now hastening
|
|
down to her uncle's. What had Edward felt on being within
|
|
four miles from Barton, on seeing her mother's servant,
|
|
on hearing Lucy's message!
|
|
|
|
They would soon, she supposed, be settled at
|
|
Delaford.--Delaford,--that place in which so much
|
|
conspired to give her an interest; which she wished
|
|
to be acquainted with, and yet desired to avoid.
|
|
She saw them in an instant in their parsonage-house; saw
|
|
in Lucy, the active, contriving manager, uniting at once
|
|
a desire of smart appearance with the utmost frugality,
|
|
and ashamed to be suspected of half her economical practices;--
|
|
pursuing her own interest in every thought, courting the
|
|
favour of Colonel Brandon, of Mrs. Jennings, and of every
|
|
wealthy friend. In Edward--she knew not what she saw,
|
|
nor what she wished to see;--happy or unhappy,--nothing
|
|
pleased her; she turned away her head from every sketch of him.
|
|
|
|
Elinor flattered herself that some one of their
|
|
connections in London would write to them to announce
|
|
the event, and give farther particulars,--but day after
|
|
day passed off, and brought no letter, no tidings.
|
|
Though uncertain that any one were to blame, she found
|
|
fault with every absent friend. They were all thoughtless
|
|
or indolent.
|
|
|
|
"When do you write to Colonel Brandon, ma'am?"
|
|
was an inquiry which sprung from the impatience
|
|
of her mind to have something going on.
|
|
|
|
"I wrote to him, my love, last week, and rather
|
|
expect to see, than to hear from him again. I earnestly
|
|
pressed his coming to us, and should not be surprised
|
|
to see him walk in today or tomorrow, or any day."
|
|
|
|
This was gaining something, something to look forward to.
|
|
Colonel Brandon must have some information to give.
|
|
|
|
Scarcely had she so determined it, when the figure
|
|
of a man on horseback drew her eyes to the window.
|
|
He stopt at their gate. It was a gentleman, it
|
|
was Colonel Brandon himself. Now she could hear more;
|
|
and she trembled in expectation of it. But--it was
|
|
NOT Colonel Brandon--neither his air--nor his height.
|
|
Were it possible, she must say it must be Edward.
|
|
She looked again. He had just dismounted;--she could not be
|
|
mistaken,--it WAS Edward. She moved away and sat down.
|
|
"He comes from Mr. Pratt's purposely to see us. I WILL be
|
|
calm; I WILL be mistress of myself."
|
|
|
|
In a moment she perceived that the others were likewise
|
|
aware of the mistake. She saw her mother and Marianne
|
|
change colour; saw them look at herself, and whisper
|
|
a few sentences to each other. She would have given
|
|
the world to be able to speak--and to make them understand
|
|
that she hoped no coolness, no slight, would appear
|
|
in their behaviour to him;--but she had no utterance,
|
|
and was obliged to leave all to their own discretion.
|
|
|
|
Not a syllable passed aloud. They all waited
|
|
in silence for the appearance of their visitor.
|
|
His footsteps were heard along the gravel path; in a moment
|
|
he was in the passage, and in another he was before them.
|
|
|
|
His countenance, as he entered the room, was not
|
|
too happy, even for Elinor. His complexion was white
|
|
with agitation, and he looked as if fearful of his
|
|
reception, and conscious that he merited no kind one.
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood, however, conforming, as she trusted,
|
|
to the wishes of that daughter, by whom she then meant
|
|
in the warmth of her heart to be guided in every thing,
|
|
met with a look of forced complacency, gave him her hand,
|
|
and wished him joy.
|
|
|
|
He coloured, and stammered out an unintelligible reply.
|
|
Elinor's lips had moved with her mother's, and, when the
|
|
moment of action was over, she wished that she had shaken
|
|
hands with him too. But it was then too late, and with a
|
|
countenance meaning to be open, she sat down again
|
|
and talked of the weather.
|
|
|
|
Marianne had retreated as much as possible
|
|
out of sight, to conceal her distress; and Margaret,
|
|
understanding some part, but not the whole of the case,
|
|
thought it incumbent on her to be dignified, and therefore
|
|
took a seat as far from him as she could, and maintained
|
|
a strict silence.
|
|
|
|
When Elinor had ceased to rejoice in the dryness
|
|
of the season, a very awful pause took place. It was put
|
|
an end to by Mrs. Dashwood, who felt obliged to hope that he
|
|
had left Mrs. Ferrars very well. In a hurried manner,
|
|
he replied in the affirmative.
|
|
|
|
Another pause.
|
|
|
|
Elinor resolving to exert herself, though fearing
|
|
the sound of her own voice, now said,
|
|
|
|
"Is Mrs. Ferrars at Longstaple?"
|
|
|
|
"At Longstaple!" he replied, with an air of surprise.--
|
|
"No, my mother is in town."
|
|
|
|
"I meant," said Elinor, taking up some work from
|
|
the table, "to inquire for Mrs. EDWARD Ferrars."
|
|
|
|
She dared not look up;--but her mother and Marianne both
|
|
turned their eyes on him. He coloured, seemed perplexed,
|
|
looked doubtingly, and, after some hesitation, said,--
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps you mean--my brother--you mean Mrs.--Mrs.
|
|
ROBERT Ferrars."
|
|
|
|
"Mrs. Robert Ferrars!"--was repeated by Marianne and her
|
|
mother in an accent of the utmost amazement;--and though
|
|
Elinor could not speak, even HER eyes were fixed on him
|
|
with the same impatient wonder. He rose from his seat,
|
|
and walked to the window, apparently from not knowing
|
|
what to do; took up a pair of scissors that lay there,
|
|
and while spoiling both them and their sheath by cutting
|
|
the latter to pieces as he spoke, said, in a hurried voice,
|
|
|
|
"Perhaps you do not know--you may not have heard
|
|
that my brother is lately married to--to the youngest--to
|
|
Miss Lucy Steele."
|
|
|
|
His words were echoed with unspeakable astonishment
|
|
by all but Elinor, who sat with her head leaning over
|
|
her work, in a state of such agitation as made her hardly
|
|
know where she was.
|
|
|
|
"Yes," said he, "they were married last week,
|
|
and are now at Dawlish."
|
|
|
|
Elinor could sit it no longer. She almost ran
|
|
out of the room, and as soon as the door was closed,
|
|
burst into tears of joy, which at first she thought would
|
|
never cease. Edward, who had till then looked any where,
|
|
rather than at her, saw her hurry away, and perhaps saw--
|
|
or even heard, her emotion; for immediately afterwards
|
|
he fell into a reverie, which no remarks, no inquiries,
|
|
no affectionate address of Mrs. Dashwood could penetrate,
|
|
and at last, without saying a word, quitted the room,
|
|
and walked out towards the village--leaving the others
|
|
in the greatest astonishment and perplexity on a change
|
|
in his situation, so wonderful and so sudden;--a perplexity
|
|
which they had no means of lessening but by their
|
|
own conjectures.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 49
|
|
|
|
Unaccountable, however, as the circumstances of his
|
|
release might appear to the whole family, it was certain
|
|
that Edward was free; and to what purpose that freedom would
|
|
be employed was easily pre-determined by all;--for after
|
|
experiencing the blessings of ONE imprudent engagement,
|
|
contracted without his mother's consent, as he had already
|
|
done for more than four years, nothing less could be expected
|
|
of him in the failure of THAT, than the immediate contraction
|
|
of another.
|
|
|
|
His errand at Barton, in fact, was a simple one.
|
|
It was only to ask Elinor to marry him;--and considering
|
|
that he was not altogether inexperienced in such a question,
|
|
it might be strange that he should feel so uncomfortable
|
|
in the present case as he really did, so much in need of
|
|
encouragement and fresh air.
|
|
|
|
How soon he had walked himself into the proper
|
|
resolution, however, how soon an opportunity of exercising
|
|
it occurred, in what manner he expressed himself,
|
|
and how he was received, need not be particularly told.
|
|
This only need be said;--that when they all sat down to
|
|
table at four o'clock, about three hours after his arrival,
|
|
he had secured his lady, engaged her mother's consent,
|
|
and was not only in the rapturous profession of
|
|
the lover, but, in the reality of reason and truth,
|
|
one of the happiest of men. His situation indeed was
|
|
more than commonly joyful. He had more than the ordinary
|
|
triumph of accepted love to swell his heart, and raise
|
|
his spirits. He was released without any reproach
|
|
to himself, from an entanglement which had long formed
|
|
his misery, from a woman whom he had long ceased to love;--
|
|
and elevated at once to that security with another,
|
|
which he must have thought of almost with despair,
|
|
as soon as he had learnt to consider it with desire.
|
|
He was brought, not from doubt or suspense, but from
|
|
misery to happiness;--and the change was openly spoken
|
|
in such a genuine, flowing, grateful cheerfulness,
|
|
as his friends had never witnessed in him before.
|
|
|
|
His heart was now open to Elinor, all its weaknesses,
|
|
all its errors confessed, and his first boyish attachment
|
|
to Lucy treated with all the philosophic dignity of twenty-four.
|
|
|
|
"It was a foolish, idle inclination on my side,"
|
|
said he, "the consequence of ignorance of the world--
|
|
and want of employment. Had my brother given me
|
|
some active profession when I was removed at eighteen
|
|
from the care of Mr. Pratt, I think--nay, I am sure,
|
|
it would never have happened; for though I left Longstaple
|
|
with what I thought, at the time, a most unconquerable
|
|
preference for his niece, yet had I then had any pursuit,
|
|
any object to engage my time and keep me at a distance
|
|
from her for a few months, I should very soon have
|
|
outgrown the fancied attachment, especially by mixing
|
|
more with the world, as in such case I must have done.
|
|
But instead of having any thing to do, instead of having any
|
|
profession chosen for me, or being allowed to chuse any myself,
|
|
I returned home to be completely idle; and for the first
|
|
twelvemonth afterwards I had not even the nominal employment,
|
|
which belonging to the university would have given me;
|
|
for I was not entered at Oxford till I was nineteen.
|
|
I had therefore nothing in the world to do, but to fancy
|
|
myself in love; and as my mother did not make my home
|
|
in every respect comfortable, as I had no friend,
|
|
no companion in my brother, and disliked new acquaintance,
|
|
it was not unnatural for me to be very often at Longstaple,
|
|
where I always felt myself at home, and was always sure
|
|
of a welcome; and accordingly I spent the greatest part
|
|
of my time there from eighteen to nineteen: Lucy appeared
|
|
everything that was amiable and obliging. She was pretty
|
|
too--at least I thought so THEN; and I had seen so little
|
|
of other women, that I could make no comparisons, and see
|
|
no defects. Considering everything, therefore, I hope,
|
|
foolish as our engagement was, foolish as it has since
|
|
in every way been proved, it was not at the time an unnatural
|
|
or an inexcusable piece of folly."
|
|
|
|
The change which a few hours had wrought in the minds
|
|
and the happiness of the Dashwoods, was such--so great--as
|
|
promised them all, the satisfaction of a sleepless night.
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood, too happy to be comfortable, knew not how
|
|
to love Edward, nor praise Elinor enough, how to be enough
|
|
thankful for his release without wounding his delicacy,
|
|
nor how at once to give them leisure for unrestrained
|
|
conversation together, and yet enjoy, as she wished,
|
|
the sight and society of both.
|
|
|
|
Marianne could speak HER happiness only by tears.
|
|
Comparisons would occur--regrets would arise;--and her joy,
|
|
though sincere as her love for her sister, was of a kind to
|
|
give her neither spirits nor language.
|
|
|
|
But Elinor--how are HER feelings to be described?--From
|
|
the moment of learning that Lucy was married to another,
|
|
that Edward was free, to the moment of his justifying
|
|
the hopes which had so instantly followed, she was every
|
|
thing by turns but tranquil. But when the second moment
|
|
had passed, when she found every doubt, every solicitude
|
|
removed, compared her situation with what so lately it
|
|
had been,--saw him honourably released from his former
|
|
engagement, saw him instantly profiting by the release,
|
|
to address herself and declare an affection as tender,
|
|
as constant as she had ever supposed it to be,--she
|
|
was oppressed, she was overcome by her own felicity;--
|
|
and happily disposed as is the human mind to be easily
|
|
familiarized with any change for the better, it required
|
|
several hours to give sedateness to her spirits, or any
|
|
degree of tranquillity to her heart.
|
|
|
|
Edward was now fixed at the cottage at least for
|
|
a week;--for whatever other claims might be made on him,
|
|
it was impossible that less than a week should be given
|
|
up to the enjoyment of Elinor's company, or suffice
|
|
to say half that was to be said of the past, the present,
|
|
and the future;--for though a very few hours spent in
|
|
the hard labor of incessant talking will despatch more
|
|
subjects than can really be in common between any two
|
|
rational creatures, yet with lovers it is different.
|
|
Between THEM no subject is finished, no communication
|
|
is even made, till it has been made at least twenty
|
|
times over.
|
|
|
|
Lucy's marriage, the unceasing and reasonable wonder
|
|
among them all, formed of course one of the earliest
|
|
discussions of the lovers;--and Elinor's particular knowledge
|
|
of each party made it appear to her in every view, as one
|
|
of the most extraordinary and unaccountable circumstances
|
|
she had ever heard. How they could be thrown together,
|
|
and by what attraction Robert could be drawn on to marry
|
|
a girl, of whose beauty she had herself heard him speak
|
|
without any admiration,--a girl too already engaged
|
|
to his brother, and on whose account that brother had been
|
|
thrown off by his family--it was beyond her comprehension
|
|
to make out. To her own heart it was a delightful affair,
|
|
to her imagination it was even a ridiculous one, but
|
|
to her reason, her judgment, it was completely a puzzle.
|
|
|
|
Edward could only attempt an explanation by supposing,
|
|
that, perhaps, at first accidentally meeting, the vanity
|
|
of the one had been so worked on by the flattery
|
|
of the other, as to lead by degrees to all the rest.
|
|
Elinor remembered what Robert had told her in Harley Street,
|
|
of his opinion of what his own mediation in his brother's
|
|
affairs might have done, if applied to in time.
|
|
She repeated it to Edward.
|
|
|
|
"THAT was exactly like Robert,"--was his immediate
|
|
observation.--"And THAT," he presently added, "might
|
|
perhaps be in HIS head when the acquaintance between
|
|
them first began. And Lucy perhaps at first might
|
|
think only of procuring his good offices in my favour.
|
|
Other designs might afterward arise."
|
|
|
|
How long it had been carrying on between them,
|
|
however, he was equally at a loss with herself to make out;
|
|
for at Oxford, where he had remained for choice ever since
|
|
his quitting London, he had had no means of hearing of her
|
|
but from herself, and her letters to the very last were
|
|
neither less frequent, nor less affectionate than usual.
|
|
Not the smallest suspicion, therefore, had ever occurred
|
|
to prepare him for what followed;--and when at last it
|
|
burst on him in a letter from Lucy herself, he had been
|
|
for some time, he believed, half stupified between
|
|
the wonder, the horror, and the joy of such a deliverance.
|
|
He put the letter into Elinor's hands.
|
|
|
|
"DEAR SIR,
|
|
|
|
"Being very sure I have long lost your affections,
|
|
I have thought myself at liberty to bestow my own
|
|
on another, and have no doubt of being as happy with
|
|
him as I once used to think I might be with you;
|
|
but I scorn to accept a hand while the heart was
|
|
another's. Sincerely wish you happy in your choice,
|
|
and it shall not be my fault if we are not always
|
|
good friends, as our near relationship now makes
|
|
proper. I can safely say I owe you no ill-will,
|
|
and am sure you will be too generous to do us any
|
|
ill offices. Your brother has gained my affections
|
|
entirely, and as we could not live without one
|
|
another, we are just returned from the altar, and
|
|
are now on our way to Dawlish for a few weeks, which
|
|
place your dear brother has great curiosity to see,
|
|
but thought I would first trouble you with these
|
|
few lines, and shall always remain,
|
|
|
|
"Your sincere well-wisher, friend, and sister,
|
|
"LUCY FERRARS.
|
|
|
|
"I have burnt all your letters, and will return
|
|
your picture the first opportunity. Please to destroy
|
|
my scrawls--but the ring with my hair you are very
|
|
welcome to keep."
|
|
|
|
Elinor read and returned it without any comment.
|
|
|
|
"I will not ask your opinion of it as a composition,"
|
|
said Edward.--"For worlds would not I have had a letter
|
|
of hers seen by YOU in former days.--In a sister it
|
|
is bad enough, but in a wife!--how I have blushed over
|
|
the pages of her writing!--and I believe I may say that
|
|
since the first half year of our foolish--business--this
|
|
is the only letter I ever received from her, of which
|
|
the substance made me any amends for the defect of the style."
|
|
|
|
"However it may have come about," said Elinor,
|
|
after a pause,--"they are certainly married. And your mother
|
|
has brought on herself a most appropriate punishment.
|
|
The independence she settled on Robert, through resentment
|
|
against you, has put it in his power to make his own choice;
|
|
and she has actually been bribing one son with a thousand
|
|
a-year, to do the very deed which she disinherited the
|
|
other for intending to do. She will hardly be less hurt,
|
|
I suppose, by Robert's marrying Lucy, than she would have
|
|
been by your marrying her."
|
|
|
|
"She will be more hurt by it, for Robert always
|
|
was her favourite.--She will be more hurt by it,
|
|
and on the same principle will forgive him much sooner."
|
|
|
|
In what state the affair stood at present between them,
|
|
Edward knew not, for no communication with any of his family
|
|
had yet been attempted by him. He had quitted Oxford
|
|
within four and twenty hours after Lucy's letter arrived,
|
|
and with only one object before him, the nearest road
|
|
to Barton, had had no leisure to form any scheme of conduct,
|
|
with which that road did not hold the most intimate connection.
|
|
He could do nothing till he were assured of his fate with
|
|
Miss Dashwood; and by his rapidity in seeking THAT fate,
|
|
it is to be supposed, in spite of the jealousy with
|
|
which he had once thought of Colonel Brandon, in spite
|
|
of the modesty with which he rated his own deserts,
|
|
and the politeness with which he talked of his doubts,
|
|
he did not, upon the whole, expect a very cruel reception.
|
|
It was his business, however, to say that he DID, and he
|
|
said it very prettily. What he might say on the subject
|
|
a twelvemonth after, must be referred to the imagination
|
|
of husbands and wives.
|
|
|
|
That Lucy had certainly meant to deceive, to go off
|
|
with a flourish of malice against him in her message
|
|
by Thomas, was perfectly clear to Elinor; and Edward himself,
|
|
now thoroughly enlightened on her character, had no
|
|
scruple in believing her capable of the utmost meanness
|
|
of wanton ill-nature. Though his eyes had been long opened,
|
|
even before his acquaintance with Elinor began, to her
|
|
ignorance and a want of liberality in some of her opinions--
|
|
they had been equally imputed, by him, to her want
|
|
of education; and till her last letter reached him,
|
|
he had always believed her to be a well-disposed,
|
|
good-hearted girl, and thoroughly attached to himself.
|
|
Nothing but such a persuasion could have prevented
|
|
his putting an end to an engagement, which, long before
|
|
the discovery of it laid him open to his mother's anger,
|
|
had been a continual source of disquiet and regret to him.
|
|
|
|
"I thought it my duty," said he, "independent of my feelings,
|
|
to give her the option of continuing the engagement or not,
|
|
when I was renounced by my mother, and stood to all
|
|
appearance without a friend in the world to assist me.
|
|
In such a situation as that, where there seemed nothing
|
|
to tempt the avarice or the vanity of any living creature,
|
|
how could I suppose, when she so earnestly, so warmly insisted
|
|
on sharing my fate, whatever it might be, that any thing
|
|
but the most disinterested affection was her inducement?
|
|
And even now, I cannot comprehend on what motive she acted,
|
|
or what fancied advantage it could be to her, to be
|
|
fettered to a man for whom she had not the smallest regard,
|
|
and who had only two thousand pounds in the world.
|
|
She could not foresee that Colonel Brandon would give me a living."
|
|
|
|
"No; but she might suppose that something would occur
|
|
in your favour; that your own family might in time relent.
|
|
And at any rate, she lost nothing by continuing the engagement,
|
|
for she has proved that it fettered neither her inclination
|
|
nor her actions. The connection was certainly a
|
|
respectable one, and probably gained her consideration among
|
|
her friends; and, if nothing more advantageous occurred,
|
|
it would be better for her to marry YOU than be single."
|
|
|
|
Edward was, of course, immediately convinced that
|
|
nothing could have been more natural than Lucy's conduct,
|
|
nor more self-evident than the motive of it.
|
|
|
|
Elinor scolded him, harshly as ladies always scold
|
|
the imprudence which compliments themselves, for having
|
|
spent so much time with them at Norland, when he must
|
|
have felt his own inconstancy.
|
|
|
|
"Your behaviour was certainly very wrong," said she;
|
|
"because--to say nothing of my own conviction, our relations
|
|
were all led away by it to fancy and expect WHAT, as you
|
|
were THEN situated, could never be."
|
|
|
|
He could only plead an ignorance of his own heart,
|
|
and a mistaken confidence in the force of his engagement.
|
|
|
|
"I was simple enough to think, that because my FAITH
|
|
was plighted to another, there could be no danger in my being
|
|
with you; and that the consciousness of my engagement was
|
|
to keep my heart as safe and sacred as my honour. I felt
|
|
that I admired you, but I told myself it was only friendship;
|
|
and till I began to make comparisons between yourself
|
|
and Lucy, I did not know how far I was got. After that,
|
|
I suppose, I WAS wrong in remaining so much in Sussex,
|
|
and the arguments with which I reconciled myself to the
|
|
expediency of it, were no better than these:--The danger
|
|
is my own; I am doing no injury to anybody but myself."
|
|
|
|
Elinor smiled, and shook her head.
|
|
|
|
Edward heard with pleasure of Colonel Brandon's
|
|
being expected at the Cottage, as he really wished
|
|
not only to be better acquainted with him, but to have an
|
|
opportunity of convincing him that he no longer resented
|
|
his giving him the living of Delaford--"Which, at present,"
|
|
said he, "after thanks so ungraciously delivered as mine
|
|
were on the occasion, he must think I have never forgiven
|
|
him for offering."
|
|
|
|
NOW he felt astonished himself that he had never yet
|
|
been to the place. But so little interest had be taken
|
|
in the matter, that he owed all his knowledge of the house,
|
|
garden, and glebe, extent of the parish, condition of
|
|
the land, and rate of the tithes, to Elinor herself,
|
|
who had heard so much of it from Colonel Brandon, and heard
|
|
it with so much attention, as to be entirely mistress of the subject.
|
|
|
|
One question after this only remained undecided,
|
|
between them, one difficulty only was to be overcome.
|
|
They were brought together by mutual affection,
|
|
with the warmest approbation of their real friends;
|
|
their intimate knowledge of each other seemed to make
|
|
their happiness certain--and they only wanted something
|
|
to live upon. Edward had two thousand pounds, and Elinor
|
|
one, which, with Delaford living, was all that they could
|
|
call their own; for it was impossible that Mrs. Dashwood
|
|
should advance anything; and they were neither of them
|
|
quite enough in love to think that three hundred and fifty
|
|
pounds a-year would supply them with the comforts of life.
|
|
|
|
Edward was not entirely without hopes of some
|
|
favourable change in his mother towards him; and on THAT
|
|
he rested for the residue of their income. But Elinor
|
|
had no such dependence; for since Edward would still
|
|
be unable to marry Miss Morton, and his chusing herself
|
|
had been spoken of in Mrs. Ferrars's flattering language
|
|
as only a lesser evil than his chusing Lucy Steele,
|
|
she feared that Robert's offence would serve no other
|
|
purpose than to enrich Fanny.
|
|
|
|
About four days after Edward's arrival Colonel
|
|
Brandon appeared, to complete Mrs. Dashwood's satisfaction,
|
|
and to give her the dignity of having, for the first time
|
|
since her living at Barton, more company with her than
|
|
her house would hold. Edward was allowed to retain the
|
|
privilege of first comer, and Colonel Brandon therefore
|
|
walked every night to his old quarters at the Park;
|
|
from whence he usually returned in the morning, early enough
|
|
to interrupt the lovers' first tete-a-tete before breakfast.
|
|
|
|
A three weeks' residence at Delaford, where,
|
|
in his evening hours at least, he had little to do
|
|
but to calculate the disproportion between thirty-six
|
|
and seventeen, brought him to Barton in a temper of mind
|
|
which needed all the improvement in Marianne's looks,
|
|
all the kindness of her welcome, and all the encouragement
|
|
of her mother's language, to make it cheerful.
|
|
Among such friends, however, and such flattery, he did revive.
|
|
No rumour of Lucy's marriage had yet reached him:--he knew
|
|
nothing of what had passed; and the first hours of his
|
|
visit were consequently spent in hearing and in wondering.
|
|
Every thing was explained to him by Mrs. Dashwood,
|
|
and he found fresh reason to rejoice in what he had done
|
|
for Mr. Ferrars, since eventually it promoted the interest of Elinor.
|
|
|
|
It would be needless to say, that the gentlemen advanced
|
|
in the good opinion of each other, as they advanced in each
|
|
other's acquaintance, for it could not be otherwise.
|
|
Their resemblance in good principles and good sense,
|
|
in disposition and manner of thinking, would probably
|
|
have been sufficient to unite them in friendship,
|
|
without any other attraction; but their being in love
|
|
with two sisters, and two sisters fond of each other,
|
|
made that mutual regard inevitable and immediate,
|
|
which might otherwise have waited the effect of time
|
|
and judgment.
|
|
|
|
The letters from town, which a few days before would
|
|
have made every nerve in Elinor's body thrill with transport,
|
|
now arrived to be read with less emotion that mirth.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings wrote to tell the wonderful tale, to vent her
|
|
honest indignation against the jilting girl, and pour forth
|
|
her compassion towards poor Mr. Edward, who, she was sure,
|
|
had quite doted upon the worthless hussy, and was now,
|
|
by all accounts, almost broken-hearted, at Oxford.--
|
|
"I do think," she continued, "nothing was ever carried
|
|
on so sly; for it was but two days before Lucy called
|
|
and sat a couple of hours with me. Not a soul suspected
|
|
anything of the matter, not even Nancy, who, poor soul!
|
|
came crying to me the day after, in a great fright
|
|
for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, as well as not knowing how to
|
|
get to Plymouth; for Lucy it seems borrowed all her
|
|
money before she went off to be married, on purpose
|
|
we suppose to make a show with, and poor Nancy had not
|
|
seven shillings in the world;--so I was very glad to give
|
|
her five guineas to take her down to Exeter, where she
|
|
thinks of staying three or four weeks with Mrs. Burgess,
|
|
in hopes, as I tell her, to fall in with the Doctor again.
|
|
And I must say that Lucy's crossness not to take them
|
|
along with them in the chaise is worse than all.
|
|
Poor Mr. Edward! I cannot get him out of my head, but you
|
|
must send for him to Barton, and Miss Marianne must try to
|
|
comfort him."
|
|
|
|
Mr. Dashwood's strains were more solemn.
|
|
Mrs. Ferrars was the most unfortunate of women--poor
|
|
Fanny had suffered agonies of sensibility--and he
|
|
considered the existence of each, under such a blow,
|
|
with grateful wonder. Robert's offence was unpardonable,
|
|
but Lucy's was infinitely worse. Neither of them were
|
|
ever again to be mentioned to Mrs. Ferrars; and even,
|
|
if she might hereafter be induced to forgive her son,
|
|
his wife should never be acknowledged as her daughter,
|
|
nor be permitted to appear in her presence. The secrecy
|
|
with which everything had been carried on between them,
|
|
was rationally treated as enormously heightening
|
|
the crime, because, had any suspicion of it occurred
|
|
to the others, proper measures would have been taken
|
|
to prevent the marriage; and he called on Elinor to join
|
|
with him in regretting that Lucy's engagement with Edward
|
|
had not rather been fulfilled, than that she should thus
|
|
be the means of spreading misery farther in the family.--
|
|
He thus continued:
|
|
|
|
"Mrs. Ferrars has never yet mentioned Edward's name,
|
|
which does not surprise us; but, to our great astonishment,
|
|
not a line has been received from him on the occasion.
|
|
Perhaps, however, he is kept silent by his fear of offending,
|
|
and I shall, therefore, give him a hint, by a line
|
|
to Oxford, that his sister and I both think a letter
|
|
of proper submission from him, addressed perhaps to Fanny,
|
|
and by her shewn to her mother, might not be taken amiss;
|
|
for we all know the tenderness of Mrs. Ferrars's heart,
|
|
and that she wishes for nothing so much as to be on good terms
|
|
with her children."
|
|
|
|
This paragraph was of some importance to the
|
|
prospects and conduct of Edward. It determined him
|
|
to attempt a reconciliation, though not exactly
|
|
in the manner pointed out by their brother and sister.
|
|
|
|
"A letter of proper submission!" repeated he;
|
|
"would they have me beg my mother's pardon for Robert's
|
|
ingratitude to HER, and breach of honour to ME?--I can
|
|
make no submission--I am grown neither humble nor
|
|
penitent by what has passed.--I am grown very happy;
|
|
but that would not interest.--I know of no submission
|
|
that IS proper for me to make."
|
|
|
|
"You may certainly ask to be forgiven," said Elinor,
|
|
"because you have offended;--and I should think you
|
|
might NOW venture so far as to profess some concern
|
|
for having ever formed the engagement which drew on you
|
|
your mother's anger."
|
|
|
|
He agreed that he might.
|
|
|
|
"And when she has forgiven you, perhaps a little humility
|
|
may be convenient while acknowledging a second engagement,
|
|
almost as imprudent in HER eyes as the first."
|
|
|
|
He had nothing to urge against it, but still
|
|
resisted the idea of a letter of proper submission;
|
|
and therefore, to make it easier to him, as he declared
|
|
a much greater willingness to make mean concessions
|
|
by word of mouth than on paper, it was resolved that,
|
|
instead of writing to Fanny, he should go to London,
|
|
and personally intreat her good offices in his favour.--
|
|
"And if they really DO interest themselves," said Marianne,
|
|
in her new character of candour, "in bringing about
|
|
a reconciliation, I shall think that even John and Fanny
|
|
are not entirely without merit."
|
|
|
|
After a visit on Colonel Brandon's side of only three
|
|
or four days, the two gentlemen quitted Barton together.--
|
|
They were to go immediately to Delaford, that Edward
|
|
might have some personal knowledge of his future home,
|
|
and assist his patron and friend in deciding on what
|
|
improvements were needed to it; and from thence,
|
|
after staying there a couple of nights, he was to proceed
|
|
on his journey to town.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER 50
|
|
|
|
After a proper resistance on the part of Mrs. Ferrars,
|
|
just so violent and so steady as to preserve her from that
|
|
reproach which she always seemed fearful of incurring,
|
|
the reproach of being too amiable, Edward was admitted
|
|
to her presence, and pronounced to be again her son.
|
|
|
|
Her family had of late been exceedingly fluctuating.
|
|
For many years of her life she had had two sons;
|
|
but the crime and annihilation of Edward a few weeks ago,
|
|
had robbed her of one; the similar annihilation of Robert
|
|
had left her for a fortnight without any; and now,
|
|
by the resuscitation of Edward, she had one again.
|
|
|
|
In spite of his being allowed once more to live,
|
|
however, he did not feel the continuance of his existence
|
|
secure, till he had revealed his present engagement;
|
|
for the publication of that circumstance, he feared,
|
|
might give a sudden turn to his constitution, and carry
|
|
him off as rapidly as before. With apprehensive caution
|
|
therefore it was revealed, and he was listened to with
|
|
unexpected calmness. Mrs. Ferrars at first reasonably
|
|
endeavoured to dissuade him from marrying Miss Dashwood,
|
|
by every argument in her power;--told him, that in Miss Morton
|
|
he would have a woman of higher rank and larger fortune;--
|
|
and enforced the assertion, by observing that Miss Morton
|
|
was the daughter of a nobleman with thirty thousand pounds,
|
|
while Miss Dashwood was only the daughter of a private
|
|
gentleman with no more than THREE; but when she found that,
|
|
though perfectly admitting the truth of her representation,
|
|
he was by no means inclined to be guided by it,
|
|
she judged it wisest, from the experience of the past,
|
|
to submit--and therefore, after such an ungracious delay
|
|
as she owed to her own dignity, and as served to prevent
|
|
every suspicion of good-will, she issued her decree
|
|
of consent to the marriage of Edward and Elinor.
|
|
|
|
What she would engage to do towards augmenting
|
|
their income was next to be considered; and here it
|
|
plainly appeared, that though Edward was now her only son,
|
|
he was by no means her eldest; for while Robert was
|
|
inevitably endowed with a thousand pounds a-year,
|
|
not the smallest objection was made against Edward's taking
|
|
orders for the sake of two hundred and fifty at the utmost;
|
|
nor was anything promised either for the present or in future,
|
|
beyond the ten thousand pounds, which had been given with Fanny.
|
|
|
|
It was as much, however, as was desired,
|
|
and more than was expected, by Edward and Elinor;
|
|
and Mrs. Ferrars herself, by her shuffling excuses,
|
|
seemed the only person surprised at her not giving more.
|
|
|
|
With an income quite sufficient to their wants
|
|
thus secured to them, they had nothing to wait for
|
|
after Edward was in possession of the living, but the
|
|
readiness of the house, to which Colonel Brandon,
|
|
with an eager desire for the accommodation of Elinor,
|
|
was making considerable improvements; and after waiting
|
|
some time for their completion, after experiencing,
|
|
as usual, a thousand disappointments and delays
|
|
from the unaccountable dilatoriness of the workmen, Elinor,
|
|
as usual, broke through the first positive resolution
|
|
of not marrying till every thing was ready, and the
|
|
ceremony took place in Barton church early in the autumn.
|
|
|
|
The first month after their marriage was spent
|
|
with their friend at the Mansion-house; from whence
|
|
they could superintend the progress of the Parsonage,
|
|
and direct every thing as they liked on the spot;--
|
|
could chuse papers, project shrubberies, and invent a sweep.
|
|
Mrs. Jennings's prophecies, though rather jumbled together,
|
|
were chiefly fulfilled; for she was able to visit Edward
|
|
and his wife in their Parsonage by Michaelmas, and she
|
|
found in Elinor and her husband, as she really believed,
|
|
one of the happiest couples in the world. They had
|
|
in fact nothing to wish for, but the marriage of Colonel
|
|
Brandon and Marianne, and rather better pasturage for
|
|
their cows.
|
|
|
|
They were visited on their first settling by almost
|
|
all their relations and friends. Mrs. Ferrars came
|
|
to inspect the happiness which she was almost ashamed
|
|
of having authorised; and even the Dashwoods were at
|
|
the expense of a journey from Sussex to do them honour.
|
|
|
|
"I will not say that I am disappointed, my dear sister,"
|
|
said John, as they were walking together one morning before
|
|
the gates of Delaford House, "THAT would be saying too much,
|
|
for certainly you have been one of the most fortunate young
|
|
women in the world, as it is. But, I confess, it would
|
|
give me great pleasure to call Colonel Brandon brother.
|
|
His property here, his place, his house, every thing is in
|
|
such respectable and excellent condition!--and his woods!--I
|
|
have not seen such timber any where in Dorsetshire, as there
|
|
is now standing in Delaford Hanger!--And though, perhaps,
|
|
Marianne may not seem exactly the person to attract him--
|
|
yet I think it would altogether be advisable for you to
|
|
have them now frequently staying with you, for as Colonel
|
|
Brandon seems a great deal at home, nobody can tell what
|
|
may happen--for, when people are much thrown together,
|
|
and see little of anybody else--and it will always be
|
|
in your power to set her off to advantage, and so forth;--
|
|
in short, you may as well give her a chance--You understand me."--
|
|
|
|
But though Mrs. Ferrars DID come to see them, and always
|
|
treated them with the make-believe of decent affection,
|
|
they were never insulted by her real favour and preference.
|
|
THAT was due to the folly of Robert, and the cunning
|
|
of his wife; and it was earned by them before many months
|
|
had passed away. The selfish sagacity of the latter,
|
|
which had at first drawn Robert into the scrape,
|
|
was the principal instrument of his deliverance from it;
|
|
for her respectful humility, assiduous attentions,
|
|
and endless flatteries, as soon as the smallest opening
|
|
was given for their exercise, reconciled Mrs. Ferrars
|
|
to his choice, and re-established him completely in
|
|
her favour.
|
|
|
|
The whole of Lucy's behaviour in the affair,
|
|
and the prosperity which crowned it, therefore, may be held
|
|
forth as a most encouraging instance of what an earnest,
|
|
an unceasing attention to self-interest, however its progress
|
|
may be apparently obstructed, will do in securing every
|
|
advantage of fortune, with no other sacrifice than that of time
|
|
and conscience. When Robert first sought her acquaintance,
|
|
and privately visited her in Bartlett's Buildings,
|
|
it was only with the view imputed to him by his brother.
|
|
He merely meant to persuade her to give up the engagement;
|
|
and as there could be nothing to overcome but the affection
|
|
of both, he naturally expected that one or two interviews
|
|
would settle the matter. In that point, however,
|
|
and that only, he erred;--for though Lucy soon gave him
|
|
hopes that his eloquence would convince her in TIME,
|
|
another visit, another conversation, was always wanted
|
|
to produce this conviction. Some doubts always lingered
|
|
in her mind when they parted, which could only be
|
|
removed by another half hour's discourse with himself.
|
|
His attendance was by this means secured, and the rest
|
|
followed in course. Instead of talking of Edward,
|
|
they came gradually to talk only of Robert,--a subject
|
|
on which he had always more to say than on any other,
|
|
and in which she soon betrayed an interest even equal
|
|
to his own; and in short, it became speedily evident
|
|
to both, that he had entirely supplanted his brother.
|
|
He was proud of his conquest, proud of tricking Edward,
|
|
and very proud of marrying privately without his
|
|
mother's consent. What immediately followed is known.
|
|
They passed some months in great happiness at Dawlish;
|
|
for she had many relations and old acquaintances to
|
|
cut--and he drew several plans for magnificent cottages;--
|
|
and from thence returning to town, procured the forgiveness
|
|
of Mrs. Ferrars, by the simple expedient of asking it,
|
|
which, at Lucy's instigation, was adopted. The forgiveness,
|
|
at first, indeed, as was reasonable, comprehended only Robert;
|
|
and Lucy, who had owed his mother no duty and therefore
|
|
could have transgressed none, still remained some weeks
|
|
longer unpardoned. But perseverance in humility of conduct
|
|
and messages, in self-condemnation for Robert's offence,
|
|
and gratitude for the unkindness she was treated with,
|
|
procured her in time the haughty notice which overcame
|
|
her by its graciousness, and led soon afterwards, by rapid
|
|
degrees, to the highest state of affection and influence.
|
|
Lucy became as necessary to Mrs. Ferrars, as either Robert
|
|
or Fanny; and while Edward was never cordially forgiven
|
|
for having once intended to marry her, and Elinor,
|
|
though superior to her in fortune and birth, was spoken
|
|
of as an intruder, SHE was in every thing considered,
|
|
and always openly acknowledged, to be a favourite child.
|
|
They settled in town, received very liberal assistance
|
|
from Mrs. Ferrars, were on the best terms imaginable
|
|
with the Dashwoods; and setting aside the jealousies
|
|
and ill-will continually subsisting between Fanny and Lucy,
|
|
in which their husbands of course took a part, as well
|
|
as the frequent domestic disagreements between Robert and
|
|
Lucy themselves, nothing could exceed the harmony in which
|
|
they all lived together.
|
|
|
|
What Edward had done to forfeit the right of eldest
|
|
son, might have puzzled many people to find out; and what
|
|
Robert had done to succeed to it, might have puzzled them
|
|
still more. It was an arrangement, however, justified in
|
|
its effects, if not in its cause; for nothing ever
|
|
appeared in Robert's style of living or of talking to give
|
|
a suspicion of his regretting the extent of his income,
|
|
as either leaving his brother too little, or bringing
|
|
himself too much;--and if Edward might be judged from
|
|
the ready discharge of his duties in every particular,
|
|
from an increasing attachment to his wife and his home,
|
|
and from the regular cheerfulness of his spirits,
|
|
he might be supposed no less contented with his lot,
|
|
no less free from every wish of an exchange.
|
|
|
|
Elinor's marriage divided her as little from her
|
|
family as could well be contrived, without rendering
|
|
the cottage at Barton entirely useless, for her mother
|
|
and sisters spent much more than half their time with her.
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood was acting on motives of policy as well
|
|
as pleasure in the frequency of her visits at Delaford;
|
|
for her wish of bringing Marianne and Colonel Brandon together
|
|
was hardly less earnest, though rather more liberal than
|
|
what John had expressed. It was now her darling object.
|
|
Precious as was the company of her daughter to her,
|
|
she desired nothing so much as to give up its constant
|
|
enjoyment to her valued friend; and to see Marianne settled at
|
|
the mansion-house was equally the wish of Edward and Elinor.
|
|
They each felt his sorrows, and their own obligations,
|
|
and Marianne, by general consent, was to be the reward
|
|
of all.
|
|
|
|
With such a confederacy against her--with a knowledge
|
|
so intimate of his goodness--with a conviction of his fond
|
|
attachment to herself, which at last, though long after it
|
|
was observable to everybody else--burst on her--what could she do?
|
|
|
|
Marianne Dashwood was born to an extraordinary fate.
|
|
She was born to discover the falsehood of her own opinions,
|
|
and to counteract, by her conduct, her most favourite maxims.
|
|
She was born to overcome an affection formed so late
|
|
in life as at seventeen, and with no sentiment
|
|
superior to strong esteem and lively friendship,
|
|
voluntarily to give her hand to another!--and THAT other,
|
|
a man who had suffered no less than herself under the
|
|
event of a former attachment, whom, two years before,
|
|
she had considered too old to be married,--and who still
|
|
sought the constitutional safeguard of a flannel waistcoat!
|
|
|
|
But so it was. Instead of falling a sacrifice
|
|
to an irresistible passion, as once she had fondly
|
|
flattered herself with expecting,--instead of remaining
|
|
even for ever with her mother, and finding her only
|
|
pleasures in retirement and study, as afterwards in her
|
|
more calm and sober judgment she had determined on,--
|
|
she found herself at nineteen, submitting to new attachments,
|
|
entering on new duties, placed in a new home, a wife,
|
|
the mistress of a family, and the patroness of a village.
|
|
|
|
Colonel Brandon was now as happy, as all those who best
|
|
loved him, believed he deserved to be;--in Marianne he
|
|
was consoled for every past affliction;--her regard and her
|
|
society restored his mind to animation, and his spirits
|
|
to cheerfulness; and that Marianne found her own happiness
|
|
in forming his, was equally the persuasion and delight
|
|
of each observing friend. Marianne could never love
|
|
by halves; and her whole heart became, in time, as much
|
|
devoted to her husband, as it had once been to Willoughby.
|
|
|
|
Willoughby could not hear of her marriage without
|
|
a pang; and his punishment was soon afterwards complete
|
|
in the voluntary forgiveness of Mrs. Smith, who, by stating
|
|
his marriage with a woman of character, as the source
|
|
of her clemency, gave him reason for believing that had he
|
|
behaved with honour towards Marianne, he might at once have
|
|
been happy and rich. That his repentance of misconduct,
|
|
which thus brought its own punishment, was sincere,
|
|
need not be doubted;--nor that he long thought of Colonel
|
|
Brandon with envy, and of Marianne with regret. But that
|
|
he was for ever inconsolable, that he fled from society,
|
|
or contracted an habitual gloom of temper, or died of a
|
|
broken heart, must not be depended on--for he did neither.
|
|
He lived to exert, and frequently to enjoy himself.
|
|
His wife was not always out of humour, nor his home
|
|
always uncomfortable; and in his breed of horses and dogs,
|
|
and in sporting of every kind, he found no inconsiderable
|
|
degree of domestic felicity.
|
|
|
|
For Marianne, however--in spite of his incivility
|
|
in surviving her loss--he always retained that decided
|
|
regard which interested him in every thing that befell her,
|
|
and made her his secret standard of perfection in woman;--
|
|
and many a rising beauty would be slighted by him in
|
|
after-days as bearing no comparison with Mrs. Brandon.
|
|
|
|
Mrs. Dashwood was prudent enough to remain at the cottage,
|
|
without attempting a removal to Delaford; and fortunately for
|
|
Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, when Marianne was taken from them,
|
|
Margaret had reached an age highly suitable for dancing,
|
|
and not very ineligible for being supposed to have a lover.
|
|
|
|
Between Barton and Delaford, there was that constant
|
|
communication which strong family affection would
|
|
naturally dictate;--and among the merits and the happiness
|
|
of Elinor and Marianne, let it not be ranked as the least
|
|
considerable, that though sisters, and living almost within
|
|
sight of each other, they could live without disagreement
|
|
between themselves, or producing coolness between their husbands.
|
|
|
|
THE END
|
|
|
|
End of The Project Gutenberg Etext of Sense and Sensibility
|
|
|